{{prhprp141.jpg}}

 

 

 

 

Pride And Prejudice

 

by Jane Austen

 

 [141]

 
{{prhprp142.jpg}}

 

 

this is a (temporary) copy of page 144...

 

Chapter XXVI ......... 295

Chapter XXVII ......... 301

Chapter XXVIII ......... 305

Chapter XXIX ......... 309

Chapter XXX ......... 316

Chapter XXXI ......... 320

Chapter XXXII ......... 325

Chapter XXXIII ......... 329

Chapter XXXIV ......... 334

Chapter XXXV ......... 340

Chapter XXXVI ......... 346

Chapter XXXVII ......... 352

Chapter XXXVIII ......... 356

Chapter XXXIX ......... 359

Chapter XL ......... 364

Chapter XLI ......... 369

Chapter XLII ......... 376

Chapter XLIII ......... 381

Chapter XLIV ......... 394

Chapter XLV ......... 401

Chapter XLVI ......... 406

Chapter XLVII ......... 414

Chapter XLVIII ......... 425

Chapter XLIX ......... 431

Chapter L ......... 437

Chapter LI ......... 443

Chapter LII ......... 449

Chapter LIII ......... 456

Chapter LIV ......... 464

Chapter LV ......... 469

Chapter LVI ......... 476

Chapter LVII ......... 484

Chapter LVIII ......... 489

Chapter LIX ......... 496

Chapter LX ......... 503

Chapter LXI ......... 508

the end ......... 512

 

 [142]

 
{{prhprp143.jpg}}

 

 

 

 

table of contents

 

Pride And Prejudice ......... 142

table of contents ......... 143

Biographical Note ......... 145

Criticisms And Interpretations ......... 148

Criticism/Interpretation I, Sir Walter Scott ......... 149

Criticism/Interpretation II, Lord Macaulay ......... 150

Criticism/Interpretation III, W.F. Pollock ......... 151

Criticism/Interpretation IV, Anne Thackeray Ritchie ......... 152

Criticism/Interpretation V, Goldwin Smith ......... 155

Criticism/Interpretation VI, W.F. Cornish ......... 158

List Of Characters ......... 161

Chapter I ......... 163

Chapter II ......... 166

Chapter III ......... 169

Chapter IV ......... 174

Chapter V ......... 177

Chapter VI ......... 180

Chapter VII ......... 187

Chapter VIII ......... 193

Chapter IX ......... 199

Chapter X ......... 204

Chapter XI ......... 211

Chapter XII ......... 216

Chapter XIII ......... 218

Chapter XIV ......... 223

Chapter XV ......... 227

Chapter XVI ......... 232

Chapter XVII ......... 241

Chapter XVIII ......... 245

Chapter XIX ......... 259

Chapter XX ......... 264

Chapter XXI ......... 269

Chapter XXII ......... 275

Chapter XXIII ......... 280

Chapter XXIV ......... 285

Chapter XXV ......... 291

 

 [143]

 
{{prhprp144.jpg}}

 

Chapter XXVI ......... 295

Chapter XXVII ......... 301

Chapter XXVIII ......... 305

Chapter XXIX ......... 309

Chapter XXX ......... 316

Chapter XXXI ......... 320

Chapter XXXII ......... 325

Chapter XXXIII ......... 329

Chapter XXXIV ......... 334

Chapter XXXV ......... 340

Chapter XXXVI ......... 346

Chapter XXXVII ......... 352

Chapter XXXVIII ......... 356

Chapter XXXIX ......... 359

Chapter XL ......... 364

Chapter XLI ......... 369

Chapter XLII ......... 376

Chapter XLIII ......... 381

Chapter XLIV ......... 394

Chapter XLV ......... 401

Chapter XLVI ......... 406

Chapter XLVII ......... 414

Chapter XLVIII ......... 425

Chapter XLIX ......... 431

Chapter L ......... 437

Chapter LI ......... 443

Chapter LII ......... 449

Chapter LIII ......... 456

Chapter LIV ......... 464

Chapter LV ......... 469

Chapter LVI ......... 476

Chapter LVII ......... 484

Chapter LVIII ......... 489

Chapter LIX ......... 496

Chapter LX ......... 503

Chapter LXI ......... 508

the end ......... 512

 

 [144]

 
{{prhprp145.jpg}}

 

 

 

 

Biographical Note

 

THE impression of the condition of the Church of

England in the eighteenth century which is conveyed

by the character and writings of Laurence Sterne

receives some necessary modification from a study of the

life and works of Jane Austen. Her father, the Reverend

George Austen, held the two rectories of Deane and

Steventon in Hampshire, having been appointed to them

by the favor of a cousin and an uncle. He thus belonged

to the gentry, and it seems likely that he entered the

church more as a profession than a vocation. He con-

sidered that he fulfilled his functions by preaching once a

week and administering the sacraments; and though he

does not seem to have been a man of spiritual gifts, the

decent and dignified performance of these formal duties

earned him the reputation of a model pastor. His abundant

leisure he occupied in farming the rectory acres, educating

his children, and sharing the social life of his class. The

environment of refined worldliness and good breeding thus

indicated was that in which his daughter lived, and which

she pictured in her books.

 

Jane Austen was born at Steventon on December 16,

1775, the youngest of seven children. She received her

education -- scanty enough, by modern standards -- at home.

Besides the usual elementary subjects, she learned French

and some Italian, sang a little, and became an expert needle-

woman. Her reading extended little beyond the literature

of the eighteenth century, and within that period she seems

to have cared most for the novels of Richardson and Miss

Burney, and the poems of Cowper and Crabbe. Dr.

Johnson, too, she admired, and later was delighted with

both the poetry and prose of Scott. The first twenty-five

years of her life she spent at Steventon; in 1801 she

moved with her family to Bath, then a great center of

 

 [145]

 
{{prhprp146.jpg}}

 

fashion; after the death of her father in 1805, she lived

with her mother and sister, first at Southampton and

then at Chawton; finally she took lodgings at Winchester

to be near a doctor, and there she died on July 18, 1817,

and was buried in the cathedral. Apart from a few visits

to friends in London and elsewhere, and the vague report

of a love affair with a gentleman who died suddenly, there

is little else to chronicle in this quiet and uneventful life.

 

But quiet and uneventful though her life was, it yet

supplied her with material for half a dozen novels as

perfect of their kind as any in the language. While still

a young girl she had experimented with various styles of

writing, and when she completed "Pride and Prejudice"

at the age of twenty-two, it was clear that she had found

her appropriate form. This novel, which in many respects

she never surpassed, was followed a year later by

"Northanger Abbey," a satire on the "Gothic" romances

then in vogue; and in 1809 she finished "Sense and Sensi-

bility," begun a dozen years before. So far she had not

succeeded in having any of her works printed; but in 1811

"Sense and Sensibility" appeared in London and won

enough recognition to make easy the publication of the

others. Success gave stimulus, and between 1811 and 1816.

she completed "Mansfield Park," "Emma," and "Persuasion."

The last of these and "Northanger Abbey" were published

posthumously.

 

The most remarkable characteristic of Jane Austen as a

novelist is her recognition of the limits of her knowledge

of life and her determination never to go beyond these

limits in her books. She describes her own class, in the

part of the country with which she was acquainted; and

both the types of character and the events are such as she

knew from first-hand observation and experience. But to

the portrayal of these she brought an extraordinary power

of delicate and subtle delineation, a gift of lively dialogue,

and a peculiar detachment. She abounds in humor, but it

is always quiet and controlled; and though one feels that

she sees through the affectations and petty hypocrisies of

her circle, she seldom becomes openly satirical. The fine-

ness of her workmanship, unexcelled in the English novel,

 

 [146]

 
{{prhprp147.jpg}}

 

makes possible the discrimination of characters who have

outwardly little or nothing to distinguish them; and the

analysis of the states of mind and feeling of ordinary peo-

ple is done so faithfully and vividly as to compensate for

the lack of passion and adventure. She herself speaks of

the "little bit (two inches wide) of ivory on which I work,"

and, in contrast with the broad canvases of Fielding or

Scott, her stories have the exquisiteness of a fine miniature.

 

W.A.N.

 

 [147]

 
{{prhprp148.jpg}}

 

 

 

 

Criticisms And Interpretations

 

Criticism/Interpretation I, Sir Walter Scott ......... 149

Criticism/Interpretation II, Lord Macaulay ......... 150

Criticism/Interpretation III, W.F. Pollock ......... 151

Criticism/Interpretation IV, Anne Thackeray Ritchie ......... 152

Criticism/Interpretation V, Goldwin Smith ......... 155

Criticism/Interpretation VI, W.F. Cornish ......... 158

 

 [148]

 
{{prhprp149.jpg}}

 

 

 

 

Criticism/Interpretation I, Sir Walter Scott

 

READ again, and for the third time at least. Miss

Austen's very finely written novel of "Pride and

Prejudice." That young lady has a talent for

describing the involvements and feelings and characters of

ordinary life which is to me the most wonderful I ever

met with. The big bow-wow strain I can do myself like

any now going; but the exquisite touch, which renders

ordinary commonplace things and characters interesting,

from the truth of the description and the sentiment, is

denied to me. -- From "The Journal of Sir Walter Scott,"

March, 1826.

 

We bestow no mean compliment upon the author of

"Emma" when we say that keeping close to common inci-

dents, and to such characters as occupy the ordinary walks

of life, she has produced sketches of such spirit and

originality that we never miss the excitation which depends

upon a narrative of uncommon events, arising from the

consideration of minds, manners, and sentiments, greatly

above our own. In this class she stands almost alone; for

the scenes of Miss Edgeworth are laid in higher life, varied

by more romantic incident, and by her remarkable power

of embodying and illustrating national character. But the

author of "Emma" confines herself chiefly to the middling

classes of society; her most distinguished characters do not

rise greatly above well-bred country gentlemen and ladies;

and those which are sketched with most originality and

precision, belong to a class rather below that standard. The

narrative of all her novels is composed of such common

occurrences as may have fallen under the observation of

most folks; and her dramatis persons conduct themselves

 

 [149]

 
{{prhprp150.jpg}}

 

upon the motives and principles which the readers may

recognize as ruling their own, and that of most of their

own acquaintances.-- From "The Quarterly Review,"

October, 1815.

 

 

 

 

Criticism/Interpretation II, Lord Macaulay

 

SHAKESPEARE has had neither equal nor second.

But among the writers who, in the point which we

have noticed, have approached nearest to the man-

ner of the great master we have no hesitation in placing

Jane Austen, a woman of whom England is justly proud.

She has given us a multitude of characters, all, in a cer-

tain sense, commonplace, all such as we meet every day.

Yet they are all as perfectly discriminated from each other

as if they were the most eccentric of human beings. There

are, for example, four clergymen, none of whom we should

be surprised to find in any parsonage in the kingdom --

Mr. Edward Ferrars, Mr. Henry Tilney, Mr. Edmund Ber-

tram, and Mr. Elton. They are all specimens of the upper

part of the middle class. They have all been liberally

educated. They all lie under the restraints of the same

sacred profession. They are all young. They are all in

love. Not one of them has any hobby-horse, to use the

phrase of Sterne. Not one has a ruling passion, such as

we read of in Pope. Who would not have expected them

to be insipid likenesses of each other? No such thing.

Harpagon is not more unlike to Jourdain, Joseph Sur-

face is not more unlike to Sir Lucius O'Trigger, than

every one of Miss Austen's young divines to all his reverend

brethren. And almost all this is done by touches so delicate

that they elude analysis, that they defy the powers of

description, and that we know them to exist only by the

general effect to which they have contributed. -- From essay

on "Madame D'Arblay," 1843.

 

 [150]

 
{{prhprp151.jpg}}

 

 

 

 

 

Criticism/Interpretation III, W.F. Pollock

 

MISS AUSTEN never attempts to describe a scene

or a class of society with which she was not her-

self thoroughly acquainted. The conversations of

ladies with ladies, or of ladies and gentlemen together,

are given, but no instance occurs of a scene in which men

only are present. The uniform quality of her work is one

most remarkable point to be observed in it. Let a volume

be opened at any place: there is the same good English,

the same refined style, the same simplicity and truth. There

is never any deviation into the unnatural or exaggerated;

and how worthy of all love and respect is the finely dis-

ciplined genius which rejects the forcible but transient

modes of stimulating interest which can so easily be em-

ployed when desired, and which knows how to trust to

the never-failing principles of human nature! This very

trust has sometimes been made an objection to Miss Austen,

and she has been accused of writing dull stories about

ordinary people. But her supposed ordinary people are

really not such very ordinary people. Let anyone who is

inclined to criticise on this score endeavor to construct

one character from among the ordinary people of his own

acquaintance that shall be capable of interesting any reader

for ten minutes. It will then be found how great has

been the discrimination of Miss Austen in the selection

of her characters, and how skillful is her treatment in the

management of them. It is true that the events are for

the most part those of daily life, and the feelings are

those connected with the usual joys and griefs of familiar

existence; but these are the very events and feelings upon

which the happiness or misery of most of us depends; and

the field which embraces them, to the exclusion of the

wonderful, the sentimental, and the historical, is surely

large enough, as it certainly admits of the most profitable

cultivation. In the end, too, the novel of daily real life

is that of which we are least apt to weary: a round of

fancy balls would tire the most vigorous admirers of

 

 [151]

 
{{prhprp152.jpg}}

 

variety in costume, and the return to plain clothes would

be hailed with greater delight than their occasional re-

linquishment ever gives. Miss Austen's personages are

always in plain clothes, but no two suits are alike: all are

worn with their appropriate differences, and under all

human thoughts and feelings are at work. -- From "Fraser's

Magazine," January, 1860.

 

 

 

 

Criticism/Interpretation IV, Anne Thackeray Ritchie

 

NOTWITHSTANDING a certain reticence and self-

control which seems to belong to their age, and

with all their quaint dresses, and ceremonies, and

manners, the ladies and gentlemen in "Pride and Preju-

dice" and its companion novels seem like living people

out of our own acquaintance transported bodily into a by-

gone age, represented in the half-dozen books that con-

tain Jane Austen's works. Dear books! bright, sparkling

with wit and animation, in which the homely heroines

charm, the dull hours fly, and the very bores are enchant-

ing.

 

She has a gift of telling a story in a way that has never

been surpassed. She rules her places, times, characters,

and marshals them with unerring precision. Her ma-

chinery is simple but complete; events group themselves

so vividly and naturally in her mind that, in describing

imaginary scenes, we seem not only to read them but to

live them, to see the people coming and going -- the gentle-

men courteous and in top-boots, the ladies demure and

piquant; we can almost hear them talking to one another.

No retrospects; no abrupt flights, as in real life: days and

events follow one another. Last Tuesday does not sud-

denly start into existence all out of place; nor does 1790

appear upon the scene when we are well on in '21. Coun-

tries and continents do not fly from hero to hero, nor do

long and divergent adventures happen to unimportant mem-

bers of the company. With Miss Austen, days, hours, min-

utes, succeed each other like clockwork; one central figure

 

 [152]

 
{{prhprp153.jpg}}

 

is always present on the scene; that figure is always pre-

pared for company...

 

Some books and people are delightful, we can scarce

tell why; they are not so clever as others that weary and

fatigue us. It is a certain effort to read a story, however

touching, that is disconnected and badly related. It is like

an ill-drawn picture, of which the coloring is good. Jane

Austen possessed both gifts of color and drawing. She

could see human nature as it was -- with near-sighted eyes,

it is true; but having seen, she could combine her picture

by her art, and color it from life...

 

It is difficult, reading the novels of succeeding gen-

erations, to determine how much each book reflects of

the time in which it was written; how much of its char-

acter depends upon the mind and mood of the writer. The

greatest minds, the most original, have the least stamp of

the age, the most of that dominant natural reality which

belongs to all great minds. We know how a landscape

changes as the day goes on, and how the scene brightens

and gains in beauty as the shadows begin to lengthen.

The clearest eyes must see by the light of their own hour.

Jane Austen's hour must have been a midday hour --

bright, unsuggestive, with objects standing clear without

relief or shadow. She did not write of herself, but of

the manners of her age. This age is essentially an age

of men and women of strained emotion, little remains of

starch, or powder, or courtly reserve. What we have lost

in calm, in happiness, in tranquillity, we have gained in

intensity. Our danger is now, not of expressing and feel-

ing too little, but of expressing more than we feel...

 

Miss Austen's heroines have a stamp of their own. They

have a certain gentle self-respect and humor and hard-

ness of heart in which modern heroines are a little want-

ing. Whatever happens they can for the most part speak

of gayly and without bitterness. Love with them does not

mean a passion so much as an interest -- deep, silent, not

quite incompatible with a secondary flirtation. Marianne

Dashwood's tears are evidently meant to be dried. Jane

Bennet smiles, sighs, and makes excuses for Bingley's neg-

lect. Emma passes one disagreeable morning making up

 

 [153]

 
{{prhprp154.jpg}}

 

her mind to the unnatural alliance between Mr. Knightley

and Harriet Smith. It was the spirit of the age, and

perhaps one not to be unenvied. It was not that Jane

Austen herself was incapable of understanding a deeper

feeling. In the last written page of her last written book

there is an expression of the deepest and truest experi-

ence. Anne Elliot's talk with Captain Harville is the touch-

ing utterance of a good woman's feelings. They are speak-

ing of men and women's affections. "You are always labor-

ing and toiling," she says, "exposed to every risk and hard-

ship. Your home, country, friends, all united; neither time

nor life to call your own. It would be hard indeed (with

a faltering voice) if a woman's feelings were to be added

to all this."

 

Farther on she says eagerly: "I hope I do justice to all

that is felt by you, and by those who resemble you. God

forbid that I should undervalue the warm and faithful

feelings of any of my fellow-creatures. I should deserve

utter contempt if I dared to suppose that true attach-

ment and constancy were known only by woman. No!

I believe you capable of everything great and good in your

married lives. I believe you equal to every important exer-

tion, and to every domestic forbearance, so long as -- if I

may be allowed the expression -- so long as you have an

object; I mean while the woman you love lives, and lives

for you. All the privilege I claim for my own (it is not

a very enviable one, you need not court it) is that of loving

longest when existence or when hope is gone."

 

She could not immediately have uttered another sen-

tence -- her heart was too full, her breath too much op-

pressed.

 

Dear Anne Elliot! sweet, impulsive, womanly, tender-

hearted! -- one can almost hear her voice pleading the cause

of all true women. In those days, when perhaps people's

nerves were stronger than they are now, sentiment may

have existed in a less degree, or have been more ruled

by judgment; it may have been calmer and more matter-

of-fact; and yet Jane Austen, at the very end of her life,

wrote thus. Her words seem to ring in our ears after

they have been spoken. Anne Elliot must have been Jane

 

 [154]

 
{{prhprp155.jpg}}

 

Austen herself, speaking for the last time. There is some-

thing so true, so womanly about her, that it is impossible

not to love her. She is the bright-eyed heroine of the

earlier novels matured, chastened, cultivated, to whom fidelity

has brought only greater depth and sweetness instead of

bitterness and pain. -- From "The Cornhill Magazine,"

August, 1871.

 

 

 

 

Criticism/Interpretation V, Goldwin Smith

 

AS we should expect from such a life, Jane Austen's

view of the world is genial, kindly, and, we repeat,

free from anything like cynicism. It is that of a

clear-sighted and somewhat satirical onlooker, loving what

deserves love, and amusing herself with the foibles, the self-

deceptions, the affectations of humanity. Refined almost to

fastidiousness, she is hard upon vulgarity; not, however,

on good-natured vulgarity, such as that of Mrs. Jennings in

"Sense and Sensibility," but on vulgarity like that of Miss

Steele, in the same novel, combined at once with effrontery

and with meanness of soul...

 

To sentimentality Jane Austen was a foe. Antipathy to

it runs through her works. She had encountered it in the

romances of the day, such as the works of Mrs. Radcliffe

and in people who had fed on them. What she would have

said if she had encountered it in the form of Rousseauism

we can only guess. The solid foundation of her own char-

acter was good sense, and her type of excellence as dis-

played in her heroines is a woman full of feeling, but with

her feelings thoroughly under control. Genuine sensibility.

however, even when too little under control, she can regard

as lovable. Marianne in "Sense and Sensibility" is an ob-

ject of sympathy, because her emotions, though they are

ungoverned and lead her into folly, are genuine, and are

matched in intensity by her sisterly affection. Rut affected

sentiment gets no quarter...

 

Jane Austen had, as she was sure to have, a feeling for

the beauties of nature. She paints in glowing language the

scenery of Lyme. She speaks almost with rapture of a

 

 [155]

 
{{prhprp156.jpg}}

 

view which she calls thoroughly English, though never hav-

ing been out of England she could hardly judge of its

scenery by contrast. She was deeply impressed by the sea,

on which, she says, "all must linger and gaze, on their first

return to it, who ever deserves to look on it at all." But

admiration of the picturesque had "become a mere jargon."

from which Jane Austen recoiled. One of her characters

is made to say that he likes a fine prospect, but not on pic-

turesque principles; that he prefers tall and flourishing trees

to those which are crooked and blasted; neat to ruined cot-

tages, snug farmhouses to watchtowers, and a troop of tidy,

happy villagers to the finest banditti in the world...

 

Jane Austen held the mirror up to her time, or at least

to a certain class of the people of her time; and her time

was two generations and more before ours. We are re-

minded of this as we read her works by a number of little

touches of manners and customs belonging to the early part

of the century, and anterior to the rush of discovery and

development which the century has brought with it. There

are no railroads, and no lucifer matches. It takes you two

days and a half, even when you are flying on the wings

of love or remorse, to get from Somersetshire to London.

A young lady who has snuffed her candle out has to go to

bed in the dark. The watchman calls the hours of the night.

Magnates go about in chariots and four with outriders,

their coachmen wearing wigs. People dine at five, and in-

stead of spending the evening in brilliant conversation as

we do, they spend it in an unintellectual rubber of whist,

or a round game. Life is unelectric, untelegraphic; it is

spent more quietly and it is spent at home. If you are capa-

ble of enjoying tranquillity, at least by way of occasional

contrast to the stir and stress of the present age, you will

find in these tales the tranquillity of a rural neighborhood

and a little country town in England a century ago.

 

That Jane Austen held up the mirror to her time must be

remembered when she is charged with want of delicacy

in dealing with the relations between the sexes, and espe-

cially in speaking of the views of women with regard to

matrimony. Women in those days evidently did consider a

happy marriage as the best thing that destiny could have

 

 [156]

 
{{prhprp157.jpg}}

 

store for them. They desired it for themselves and they

sought it for their daughters. Other views had not opened

out to them; they had not thought of professions or public,

life, nor had it entered into the mind of any of them that

maternity was not the highest duty and the crown of woman-

hood. Apparently they also confessed their aims to them-

selves and to each other with a frankness which would be

deemed indelicate in our time. The more worldly and am-

bitious of them sought in marriage rank and money, and

avowed that they did, whereas they would not avow it at

the present day. Gossip and speculation on these subjects

were common and more unrefined than they are now, and

they naturally formed a large part of the amusement of the

opulent and idle class from which Jane Austen's characters

were drawn. Often, too, she is ironical; the love of irony

is a feature of her mind, and for this also allowance must be

made. She does not approve or reward matchmaking or

husband-hunting. Mrs. Jennings, the great matchmaker in

"Sense and Sensibilty," is also a paragon of vulgarity. Mrs.

Morris's matchmaking in "Mansfield Park" leads to the most

calamitous results. Charlotte Lucas in "Pride and Preju-

dice," who unblushingly avows that her object is a husband

with a good income, gets what she sought, but you are made

to see that she has bought it dear...

 

The life which Jane Austen painted retains its leading

features, and is recognized by the reader at the present

day with little effort of the imagination. It is a life of opu-

lent quiet and rather dull enjoyment, physically and morally

healthy compared with that of a French aristocracy, though

without much of the salt of duty, a life uneventful, exempt

from arduous struggles and devoid of heroism, a life pre-

senting no materials for tragedy and hardly an element of

pathos, a life of which matrimony is the chief incident, and

the most interesting objects are the hereditary estate and the

heir.

 

Such a life could evidently furnish no material for ro-

mance. It could furnish materials only for that class of

novel which corresponds to sentimental comedy. To that

class all Jane Austen's novels belong. -- From "Life of Jane

Austen," in "Great Writers," 1890.

 

 [157]

 
{{prhprp158.jpg}}

 

 

 

 

 

Criticism/Interpretation VI, W.F. Cornish

 

JANE AUSTEN needs no testimonials; her position is

at this moment established on a firmer basis than that

of any of her contemporaries. She has completely

distanced Miss Edgeworth, Miss Ferrier, Fanny Burney,

and Hannah More, writers who eclipsed her modest reputa-

tion in her own day. The readers of "Evelina," "Ormond,"

"Marriage," or "Caelebs" are few; but hundreds know inti-

mately every character and every scene in "Pride and

Prejudice." She has survived Trollope and Mrs. Gaskell:

one may almost say that she is less out of date than Currer

Bell and George Eliot. It was not always so. In 1859 a

writer in "Blackwood's Magazine" spoke of her as "being

still unfamiliar in men's mouths" and "not even now a house-

hold word."

 

The reason for this comparative obscurity in her own

time, compared with her fame at the present day, may in

some measure be that in writing, as in other arts, finish is

now more highly prized than formerly. But conception as

well as finish is in it. The miracle in Jane Austen's writing

is not only that her presentment of each character is com-

plete and consistent, but also that every fact and particu-

lar situation is viewed in comprehensive proportion and re-

lation to the rest... Some facts and expressions

which pass almost unnoticed by the reader, and quite un-

noticed by the other actors in the story, turn up later to

take their proper place. She never drops a stitch. The

reason is not so much that she took infinite trouble, though

no doubt she did, as that everything was actual to her, as in

his larger historical manner everything was actual to Ma-

caulay.

 

It is easier to feel than to estimate a genius which has

no parallel. Jane Austen's faults are obvious. She has no

remarkable distinction of style. Her plots, though worked

out with microscopic delicacy, are neither original nor

striking; incident is almost absent; she repeats situations,

 

 [158]

 
{{prhprp159.jpg}}

 

and to some extent even characters. She cared for story

and situation only as they threw light on character. She

has little idealism, little romance, tenderness, poetry, or re-

ligion. All this may be conceded, and yet she stands by the

side of Moliere, unsurpassed among writers of prose and

poetry, within the limits which she imposed on herself, for

clear and sympathetic vision of human character.

 

She sees everything in clear outline and perspective. She

does not care to analyze by logic what she knows by intui-

tion; she does not search out the grounds of motive like

George Eliot, nor illumine them like Meredith by search-

light flashes of insight, nor like Hardy display them by irony.

sardonic or pitying, nor like Henry James thread a laby-

rinth of indications and intimations, repulsions and attrac-

tions right and left, all pointing to the central temple, where

sits the problem. She has no need to construct her char-

acters, for there they are before her, like Mozart's music,

only waiting to be written down. -- From "Jane Austen" in

"English Men of Letters."

 

 [159]

 
{{prhprp160.jpg}}

 

 

blankpage

 

 [160]

 
{{prhprp161.jpg}}

 

 

 

 

 

 

List Of Characters

 

Mr. Bennet:

a gentleman in moderate circumstances living in a small town in Hertfordshire.

 

Mrs. Bennet;

his wife.

 

Jane, Elizabeth, Mary, Catherine, Lydia;

daughters of Mr. and Mrs. Bennet.

 

Sir William Lucas;

an affable knight, formerly in trade.

 

Lady Lucas;

his wife.

 

Charlotte, Maria, Master Lucas:

children of Sir William and Lady Lucas.

 

Mr. Charles Bingley:

a rich and amiable young man of leisure.

 

Mr. Hurst:

brother-in-law of Mr. Bingley.

 

Mrs. Hurst, Miss Caroline Bingley:

sisters of Mr. Bingley.

 

Fitzwilliam Darcy:

a friend of Mr. Bingley, and a young man of wealth and high station.

 

Georgiana Darcy:

younger sister of Mr. Darcy.

 

Colonel Forster:

of the ____shire Regiment.

 

Mrs. Forster:

his wife.

 

Mr. Philips:

successor to Mrs. Bennet's father in business.

 

Mrs. Philips:

his wife, and sister to Mrs. Bennet.

 

Mr. Gardiner:

in business in London, and a brother of Mrs. Bennet.

 

Mrs. Gardiner:

his wife.

 

Several young children of the Gardiners.

 

Rev. William Collins:

a pompous and obsequious clergyman, and cousin to the Bennets.

 

Lady Catherine de Bourgh:

a domineering, rich old lady, and aunt of Mr. Darcy.

 

Miss de Bourgh:

invalid daughter of Lady Catherine.

 

Mr. Wickham:

a worthless young officer in the ____shire Regiment.

 

Miss King:

courted by Wickham.

 

Mrs. Jenkinson:

??

 

Colonel Fitzwilliam:

a cousin of Mr. Darcy, and nephew of Lady Catherine de Bourgh.

 

Mrs. Reynolds:

Darcy's housekeeper.

 

 [161]

 
{{prhprp162.jpg}}

 

 

blankpage

 

 [162]

 
{{prhprp163.jpg}}

 

 

 

 

 

Chapter I

 

IT is a truth universally acknowledged, that a single man

in possession of a good fortune must be in want of a

wife.

 

However little known the feelings or views of such a man

may be on his first entering a neighbourhood, this truth is so

well fixed in the minds of the surrounding families, that he

is considered as the rightful property of some one or other of

their daughters.

 

'My dear Mr. Bennet,' said his lady to him one day, 'have

you heard that Netherfield Park is let at last?'

 

Mr. Bennet replied that he had not.

 

'But it is,' returned she; 'for Mrs. Long has just been here,

and she told me all about it.'

 

Mr. Bennet made no answer.

 

'Do not you want to know who has taken it?' cried his wife,

impatiently.

 

'Yon want to tell me, and I have no objection to hearing it.'

 

This was invitation enough.

 

'Why, my dear, you must know, Mrs. Long says that

Netherfield is taken by a young man of large fortune from

the north of England; that he came down on Monday in a

chaise and four to see the place, and was so much delighted

with it that he agreed with Mr. Morris immediately; that he

is to take possession before Michaelmas, and some of his

servants are to be in the house by the end of next week.'

 

'What is his name?'

 

'Bingley.'

 

'Is he married or single?'

 

'Oh, single, my dear, to be sure, a single man of large

fortune; four or five thousand a year. What a fine thing for

our girls!'

 

 [163]

 
{{prhprp164.jpg}}

 

 

'How so? how can it affect them?'

 

'My dear Mr. Bennet.' replied his wife, 'how can you be

so tiresome? You must know that I am thinking of his

marrying one of them.'

 

'Is that his design in settling here?'

 

'Design? nonsense, how can you talk so! But it is very

likely that he may fall in love with one of them, and there-

fore you must visit him as soon as he comes.'

 

'I see no occasion for that. You and the girls may go, or

you may send them by themselves, which perhaps will be still

better, for, as you are as handsome as any of them, Mr.

Bingley might like you the best of the party.'

 

'My dear, you flatter me. I certainly have had my share

of beauty, but I do not pretend to be anything extraordinary

now. When a woman has five grown-up daughters, she

ought to give over thinking of her own beauty.'

 

'In such cases, a woman has not often much beauty to

think of.'

 

'But, my dear, you must indeed go and see Mr. Bingley

when he comes into the neighbourhood.'

 

'It is more than I engage for, I assure you.'

 

'But consider your daughters. Only think what an estab-

lishment it would be for one of them. Sir William and Lady

Lucas are determined to go, merely on that account; for in

general, you know, they visit no newcomers. Indeed you

must go, for it will be impossible for us to visit him, if you

do not.'

 

'You are over scrupulous, surely. I daresay Mr. Bingley

will be very glad to see you; and I will send a few lines by

you to assure him of my hearty consent to his marrying

whichever he chooses of the girls; though I must throw in

a good word for my little Lizzy.'

 

'I desire you will do no such thing. Lizzy is not a bit

better than the others: and I am sure she is not half so

handsome as Jane, nor half so good-humoured as Lydia.

But you are always giving her the preference.'

 

'They have none of them much to recommend them,'

replied he: 'they are all silly and ignorant like other girls;

but Lizzy has something more of quickness than her

sisters.'

 

 [164]

 
{{prhprp165.jpg}}

 

 

'Mr. Bennet, how can you abuse your own children in such

a way? You take delight in vexing me. You have no com-

passion on my poor nerves.'

 

'You mistake me, my dear. I have a high respect for your

nerves. They are my old friends. I have heard you mention

them with consideration these twenty years at least.'

 

'Ah, you do not know what I suffer.'

 

'But I hope you will get over it, and live to sec many

young men of four thousand a year come into the neighbour-

hood.'

 

'It will be no use to us, if twenty such should come, since

you will not visit them.'

 

'Depend upon it, my dear, that when there are twenty, I

will visit them all.'

 

Mr. Bennet was so odd a mixture of quick parts, sarcastic

humour, reserve, and caprice, that the experience of three-

and-twenty years had been insufficient to make his wife un-

derstand his character. Her mind was less difficult to de-

velop. She was a woman of mean understanding, little

information, and uncertain temper. When she was discon-

tented, she fancied herself nervous. The business of her

life was to get her daughters married: its solace was visiting

and news.

 

 [165]

 
{{prhprp166.jpg}}

 

 

 

 

Chapter II

 

MR. BENNET was among the earliest of those who

waited on Mr. Bingley. He had always intended to

visit him, though to the last always assuring his wife

that he should not go; and till the evening after the visit was

paid she had no knowledge of it. It was then disclosed in

the following manner. Observing his second daughter em-

ployed in trimming a hat, he suddenly addressed her with, --

 

'I hope Mr. Bingley will like it, Lizzy.'

 

'We are not in a way to know what Mr. Bingley likes,'

said her mother, resentfully, 'since we are not to visit.'

 

'But you forget, mamma,' said Elizabeth, 'that we shall

meet him at the assemblies, and that Mrs. Long has promised

to introduce him.'

 

'I do not believe Mrs. Long will do any such thing. She

has two nieces of her own. She is a selfish, hypocritical

woman, and I have no opinion of her.'

 

'No more have I,' said Mr. Bennet; 'and I am glad to find

that you do not depend on her serving you.'

 

Mrs. Bennet deigned not to make any reply; but, unable

to contain herself, began scolding one of her daughters.

 

'Don't keep coughing so. Kitty, for heaven's sake! Have

a little compassion on my nerves. You tear them to pieces.'

 

'Kitty has no discretion in her coughs,' said her father;

'she times them ill.'

 

'I do not cough for my own amusement.' replied Kitty,

fretfully. 'When is your next ball to be, Lizzy?'

 

'To-morrow fortnight.'

 

'Ay, so it is,' cried her mother, 'and Mrs. Long does not

come back till the day before; so, it will be impossible for

her to introduce him, for she will not know him herself.'

 

'Then, my dear, you may have the advantage of your

friend, and introduce Mr. Bingley to her?'

 

'Impossible, Mr. Bennet, impossible, when I am not ac-

quainted with him myself; how can you be so teasing?'

 

 [166]

 
{{prhprp167.jpg}}

 

 

'I honour your circumspection. A fortnight's acquaint-

ance is certainly very little. One cannot know what a man

really is by the end of a fortnight. But if we do not venture,'

somebody else will; and after all, Mrs. Long and her nieces

must stand their chance; and, therefore, as she will think it

an act of kindness, if you decline the office, I will take it on

myself.'

 

The girls stared at their father. Mrs. Bennet said only,

'Nonsense, nonsense!'

 

'What can be the meaning of that emphatic exclamation?'

cried he. 'Do you consider the forms of introduction, and

the stress that is laid on them, as nonsense? I cannot quite

agree with you there. What say you, Mary? for you are a

young lady of deep reflection, I know, and read great books,

and make extracts.'

 

Mary wished to say something very sensible, but knew not

how.

 

'While Mary is adjusting her ideas,' he continued, 'let us

return to Mr. Bingley.'

 

'I am sick of Mr. Bingley,' cried his wife.

 

'I am sorry to hear that; but why did not you tell me so

before? If I had known as much this morning, I certainly

would not have called on him. It is very unlucky; but as I

have actually paid the visit, we cannot escape the acquaint-

ance now.'

 

The astonishment of the ladies was just what he wished;

that of Mrs. Bennet perhaps surpassing the rest; though

when the first tumult of joy was over, she began to declare

that it was what she had expected all the while.

 

'How good it was in you, my dear Mr. Bennet. But I

knew I should persuade you at last. I was sure you loved

your girls too well to neglect such an acquaintance. Well,

how pleased I am! and it is such a good joke, too, that you

should have gone this morning, and never said a word about

it till now.'

 

'Now, Kitty, you may cough as much as you choose.' said

Mr. Bennet; and, as he spoke, he left the room, fatigued

with the raptures of his wife.

 

'What an excellent father you have, girls.' said she, when

the door was shut. 'I do not know how you will ever make

 

 [167]

 
{{prhprp168.jpg}}

 

him amends for his kindness; or me either, for that matter.

At our time of life, it is not so pleasant, I can tell you, to be

making new acquaintance every day; but for your sakes we

would do anything. Lydia, my love, though you are the

youngest, I daresay Mr. Bingley will dance with you at the

next ball.'

 

'Oh,' said Lydia, stoutly. 'I am not afraid; for though I

am the youngest, I'm the tallest.'

 

The rest of the evening was spent in conjecturing how

soon he would return Mr. Bennet's visit, and determining

when they should ask him to dinner.

 

 [168]

 
{{prhprp169.jpg}}

 

 

 

 

Chapter III

 

NOT all that Mrs. Bennet, however, with the assistance

of her five daughters, could ask on the subject, was

sufficient to draw from her husband any satisfactory

description of Mr. Bingley. They attacked him in various

ways; with barefaced questions, ingenious suppositions, and

distant surmises; but he eluded the skill of them all; and they

were at last obliged to accept the second-hand intelligence of

their neighbour. Lady Lucas. Her report was highly favour-

able. Sir William had been delighted with him. He was

quite young, wonderfully handsome, extremely agreeable, and,

to crown the whole, he meant to be at the next assembly with

a large party. Nothing could be more delightful! To be

fond of dancing was a certain step towards falling in love;

and very lively hopes of Mr. Bingley's heart were enter-

tained.

 

'If I can but sec one of my daughters happily settled at

Netherfield.' said Mrs. Bennet to her husband, 'and all the

others equally well married, I shall have nothing to wish for.'

 

In a few days Mr. Bingley returned Mr. Bennet's visit, and

sat about ten minutes with him in his library. He had enter-

tained hopes of being admitted to a sight of the young ladies,

of whose beauty he had heard much; but he saw only the

father. The ladies were somewhat more fortunate, for they

had the advantage of ascertaining, from an upper window,

that he wore a blue coat and rode a black horse.

 

An invitation to dinner was soon afterwards despatched;

and already had Mrs. Bennet planned the courses that were

to do credit to her housekeeping, when an answer arrived

which deferred it all. Mr. Bingley was obliged to be in town

the following day, and consequently unable lo accept the

honour of their invitation, etc. Mrs. Bennet was quite dis-

concerted. She could not imagine what business he could

have in town so soon after his arrival in Hertfordshire; and

she began to fear that he might always be flying about from

 

 [169]

 
{{prhprp170.jpg}}

 

one place to another, and never settled at Netherfield as he

ought to he. Lady Lucas quieted her fears a little by starting

the idea of his being gone to London only to get a large party

for the ball; and a report soon followed that Mr. Bingley was

to bring twelve ladies and seven gentlemen with him to the

assembly. The girls grieved over such a number of ladies;

but were comforted the day before the ball by hearing that,

instead of twelve, he had brought only six with him from

London, his five sisters and a cousin. And when the party

entered the assembly-room, it consisted of only five alto-

gether: Mr. Bingley, his two sisters, the husband of the

eldest, and another young man.

 

Mr. Bingley was good-looking and gentlemanlike: he had

a pleasant countenance, and easy, unaffected manners. His

sisters were fine women, with an air of decided fashion. His

brother-in-law, Mr. Hurst, merely looked the gentleman; but

his friend Mr. Darcy soon drew the attention of the room by

his fine, tall person, handsome features, noble mien, and the

report, which was in general circulation within five minutes

after his entrance, of his having ten thousand a year. The

gentlemen pronounced him to be a fine figure of a man, the

ladies declared he was much handsomer than Mr. Bingley,

and he was looked at with great admiration for about half

the evening, till his manners gave a disgust which turned the

tide of his popularity; for he was discovered to be proud, to

be above his company, and above being pleased; and not all

his large estate in Derbyshire could then save him from

having a most forbidding, disagreeable countenance, and

being unworthy to be compared with his friend.

 

Mr. Bingley had soon made himself acquainted with all

the principal people in the room: he was lively and unre-

served, danced every dance, was angry that the ball closed so

early, and talked of giving one himself at Netherfield. Such

amiable qualities must speak for themselves. What a con-

trast between him and his friend! Mr. Darcy danced only

once with Mrs. Hurst and once with Miss Bingley, declined

being introduced to any other lady, and spent the rest of the

evening in walking about the room, speaking occasionally to

one of his own party. His character was decided. He was

the proudest, most disagreeable man in the world, and every-

 

 [170]

 
{{prhprp171.jpg}}

 

body hoped that he would never come there again. Amongst

the most violent against him was Mrs. Bennet, whose dis-

like of his general behaviour was sharpened into particular

resentment by his having slighted one of her daughters.

 

Elizabeth Bennet had been obliged, by the scarcity of gen-

tlemen, to sit down for two dances; and during part of that

time, Mr. Darcy had been standing near enough for her to

overhear a conversation between him and Mr. Bingley, who

came from the dance for a few minutes to press his friend

to join it.

 

'Come, Darcy,' said he, 'I must have you dance. I hate to

see you standing about by yourself in this stupid manner.

You had much better dance.'

 

'I certainly shall not. You know how I detest it, unless

I am particularly acquainted with my partner. At such an

assembly as this, it would be insupportable. Your sisters are

engaged, and there is not another woman in the room whom

it would not be a punishment to me to stand up with.'

 

'I would not be so fastidious as you are.' cried Bingley,

'for a kingdom! Upon my honour, I never met with so

many pleasant girls in my life as I have this evening; and

there are several of them, you see, uncommonly pretty.'

 

'You are dancing with the only handsome girl in the room.'

said Mr. Darcy, looking at the eldest Miss Bennet.

 

'Oh, she is the most beautiful creature I ever beheld!

But there is one of her sisters sitting down just behind you,

who is very pretty, and I daresay very agreeable. Do let

me ask my partner to introduce you.'

 

'Which do you mean?' and turning round, he looked for

a moment at Elizabeth, till, catching her eye, he withdrew

his own, and coldly said, 'She is tolerable; but not handsome

enough to tempt me; and I am in no humour at present to

give consequence to young ladies who are slighted by other

men. You had better return to your partner and enjoy her

smiles, for you are wasting your time with me.'

 

Mr. Bingley followed his advice. Mr. Darcy walked off;

and Elizabeth remained with no very cordial feelings towards

him. She told the story, however, with great spirit among

her friends; for she had a lively, playful disposition, which

delighted in anything ridiculous.

 

 [171]

 
{{prhprp172.jpg}}

 

 

The evening altogether passed off pleasantly to the whole

family. Mrs. Bennet had seen her eldest daughter much

admired by the Netherfield party. Mr. Bingley had danced

with her twice, and she had been distinguished by his sisters.

Jane was as much gratified by this as her mother could be,

though in a quieter way. Elizabeth felt Jane's pleasure.

Mary had heard herself mentioned to Miss Bingley as the

most accomplished girl in the neighbourhood; and Catherine

and Lydia had been fortunate enough to be never without

partners, which was all that they had yet learned to care for

at a ball.

 

They returned, therefore, in good spirits to Longbourn,

the village where they lived, and of which they were

the principal inhabitants. They found Mr. Bennet still up.

With a book, he was regardless of time; and on the present

occasion he had a good deal of curiosity as to the event of an

evening which had raised such splendid expectations. He

had rather hoped that all his wife's views on the stranger

would be disappointed; but he soon found that he had a very

different story to hear.

 

'Oh, my dear Mr. Bennet,' as she entered the room, 'we

have had a most delightful evening, a most excellent ball. I

wish you had been there. Jane was so admired, nothing

could be like it. Everybody said how well she looked; and

Mr. Bingley thought her quite beautiful, and danced with her

twice. Only think of that, my dear; he actually danced with

her twice; and she was the only creature in the room that he

asked a second time. First of all, he asked Miss Lucas. I

was so vexed to see him stand up with her; but, however, he

did not admire her at all; indeed, nobody can, you know;

and he seemed quite struck with Jane as she was going down

the dance. So he inquired who she was, and got introduced,

and asked her for the two next. Then, the two third he

danced with Miss King, and the two fourth with Maria Lucas,

and the two fifth with Jane again, and the two sixth with

Lizzy, and the Boulanger '

 

'If he had had any compassion for me,' cried her husband

impatiently, 'he would not have danced half so much! For

God's sake, say no more of his partners. Oh that he had

sprained his ankle in the first dance!'

 

 [172]

 
{{prhprp173.jpg}}

 

 

'Oh, my dear,' continued Mrs. Bennet, 'I am quite delighted

with him. He is so excessively handsome! and his sisters

are charming women. I never in my life saw anything more

elegant than their dresses. I daresay the lace upon Mrs.

Hurst's gown '

 

Here she was interrupted again. Mr. Bennet protested

against any description of finery. She was therefore obliged

to seek another branch of the subject, and related, with much

bitterness of spirit, and some exaggeration, the shocking

rudeness of Mr. Darcy.

 

'But I can assure you.' she added, 'that Lizzy does not lose

much by not suiting his fancy: for he is a most disagreeable,

horrid man, not at all worth pleasing. So high and so con-

ceited, that there was no enduring him! He walked here,

and he walked there, fancying himself so very great! Not

handsome enough to dance with! I wish you had been there,

my dear, to have given him one of your set-downs. I quite

detest the man.'

 

 [173]

 
{{prhprp174.jpg}}

 

 

 

 

Chapter IV

 

WHEN Jane and Elizabeth were alone, the former,

who had been cautious in her praise of Mr. Bing-

ley before, expressed to her sister how very much

she admired him.

 

'He is just what a young man ought to be,' said she, 'sen-

sible, good-humoured, lively; and I never saw such happy

manners! so much ease, with such perfect good breeding!'

 

'He is also handsome,' replied Elizabeth, 'which a young

man ought likewise to be if he possibly can. His character

is thereby complete.'

 

'I was very much flattered by his asking me to dance a

second time. I did not expect such a compliment.'

 

'Did not you? I did for you. But that is one great

difference between us. Compliments always take you by

surprise, and me never. What could be more natural than

his asking you again? He could not help seeing that you

were about five times as pretty as every other woman in the

room. No thanks to his gallantry for that. Well, he cer-

tainly is very agreeable, and I give you leave to like him.

You have liked many a stupider person.'

 

'Dear Lizzy!'

 

'Oh, you are a great deal too apt, you know, to like people

in general. You never see a fault in anybody. All the

world are good and agreeable in your eyes. I never heard

you speak ill of a human being in my life.'

 

'I would wish not to be hasty in censuring any one; but I

always speak what I think.'

 

'I know you do; and it is that which makes the wonder.

With your good sense, to be so honestly blind to the follies

and nonsense of others! Affectation of candour is common

enough; one meets with it everywhere. But to be candid

without ostentation or design, -- to take the good of every-

body's character and make it still better, and say nothing of

the bad, -- belongs to you alone. And so, you like this man's

sisters, too, do you? Their manners are not equal to his.'

 

 [174]

 
{{prhprp175.jpg}}

 

 

'Certainly not, at first; but they are very pleasing women

when you converse with them. Miss Bingley is to live with

her brother, and keep his house; and I am much mistaken if

we shall not find a very charming neighbour in her.'

 

Elizabeth listened in silence, but was not convinced: their

behaviour at the assembly had not been calculated to please

in general; and with more quickness of observation and less

pliancy of temper than her sister, and with a judgment, too,

unassailed by any attention to herself, she was very little

disposed to approve them. They were, in fact, very fine

ladies; not deficient in good-humour when they were pleased,

nor in the power of being agreeable where they chose it; but

proud and conceited. They were rather handsome; had been

educated in one of the first private seminaries in town; had a

fortune of twenty thousand pounds; were in the habit of

spending more than they ought, and of associating with people

of rank; and were, therefore, in every respect entitled to

think well of themselves and meanly of others. They were of

a respectable family in the north of England; a circum-

stance more deeply impressed on their memories than that

their brother's fortune and their own had been acquired by

trade.

 

Mr. Bingley inherited property to the amount of nearly a

hundred thousand pounds from his father who had intended

to purchase an estate, but did not live to do it. Mr. Bingley

intended it likewise, and sometimes made choice of his

county; but, as he was now provided with a good house and

the liberty of a manor, it was doubtful to many of those

who best knew the easiness of his temper, whether he might

not spend the remainder of his days at Netherfield, and leave

the next generation to purchase.

 

His sisters were very anxious for his having an estate of

his own; but though he was now established only as a tenant.

Miss Bingley was by no means unwilling to preside at his

table; nor was Mrs. Hurst, who had married a man of more

fashion than fortune, less disposed to consider his house as

her home when it suited her. Mr. Bingley had not been of

age two years when he was tempted, by an accidental recom-

mendation, to look at Netherfield House. He did look at it,

and into it, for half an hour; was pleased with the situation

 

 [175]

 
{{prhprp176.jpg}}

 

and the principal rooms, satisfied with what the owner said

in its praise, and took it immediately--

 

Between him and Darcy there was a very steady friend-

ship, in spite of a great opposition of character. Bingley

was endeared to Darcy by the easiness, openness, and ductil-

ity of his temper, though no disposition could offer a greater

contrast to his own, and though with his own he never ap-

peared dissatisfied. On the strength of Darcy's regard Bing-

ley had the firmest reliance, and of his judgment the highest

opinion. In understanding, Darcy was the superior. Bing-

ley was by no means deficient; but Darcy was clever. He

was at the same time haughty, reserved, and fastidious; and

his manners, though well bred, were not inviting. In that

respect his friend had greatly the advantage. Bingley was

sure of being liked wherever he appeared; Darcy was con-

tinually giving offence.

 

The manner in which they spoke of the Meryton assembly

was sufficiently characteristic. Bingley had never met with

pleasanter people or prettier girls in his life; everybody had

been most kind and attentive to him; there had been no

formality, no stiffness; he had soon felt acquainted with all

the room; and as to Miss Bennet, he could not conceive an

angel more beautiful. Darcy, on the contrary, had seen a

collection of people in whom there was little beauty and no

fashion, for none of whom he had felt the smallest interest,

and from none received either attention or pleasure. Miss

Bennet he acknowledged to be pretty; but she smiled too

much.

 

Mrs. Hurst and her sister allowed it to be so; but still they

admired her and liked her, and pronounced her to be a sweet

girl, and one whom they should not object to know more of.

Miss Bennet was therefore established as a sweet girl; and

their brother felt authorised by such commendation to think

of her as he chose.

 

 [176]

 
{{prhprp177.jpg}}

 

 

 

 

Chapter V

 

WITHIN a short walk of Longbourn lived a family

with whom the Bennets were particularly intimate.

Sir William Lucas had been formerly in trade in

Meryton, where he had made a tolerable fortune, and risen

to the honour of knighthood by an address to the king dur-

ing his mayoralty. The distinction had, perhaps, been felt

too strongly. It had given him a disgust to his business and

to his residence in a small market town; and, quitting them

both, he had removed with his family to a house about a

mile from Meryton, denominated from that period Lucas

Lodge; where he could think with pleasure of his own im-

portance and, unshackled by business, occupy himself solely

in being civil to all the world. For, though elated by his

rank, it did not render him supercilious; on the contrary, he

was all attention to everybody. By nature inoffensive.

friendly, and obliging, his presentation at St. James's had

made him courteous.

 

Lady Lucas was a very good kind of woman, not too clever

to be a valuable neighbour to Mrs. Bennet. They had sev-

eral children. The eldest of them, a sensible, intelligent

young woman, about twenty-seven, was Elizabeth's inti-

mate friend.

 

That the Miss Lucases and the Miss Bennets should meet

to talk over a ball was absolutely necessary; and the morn-

ing after the assembly brought the former to Longbourn to

hear and to communicate.

 

'You began the evening well, Charlotte,' said Mrs. Bennet,

with civil self-command, to Miss Lucas. 'You were Mr.

Bingley's first choice.'

 

'Yes; but he seemed to like his second better.'

 

'Oh, you mean Jane, I suppose, because he danced with

her twice. To be sure that did seem as if he admired her --

indeed. I rather believe he did -- I heard something about it --

but I hardly know what -- something about Mr. Robinson.'

 

 [177]

 
{{prhprp178.jpg}}

 

 

'Perhaps you mean what I overheard between him and

Mr. Robinson: did not I mention it to you? Mr. Robinson's

asking him how he liked our Meryton assemblies, and whether

he did not think there were a great many pretty women in

the room, and which he thought the prettiest? and his an-

swering immediately to the last question. Oh, the eldest Miss

Bennet, beyond a doubt: there cannot be two opinions on that

point.'

 

Upon my word! Well, that was very decided, indeed --

that does seem as if -- but, however, it may all come to noth-

ing, you know.'

 

'My overhearings were more to the purpose than yours,

Eliza,' said Charlotte. 'Mr. Darcy is not so well worth

listening to as his friend, is he? Poor Eliza! to be only just

tolerable'

 

'I beg you will not put it into Lizzy's head to be vexed by

his ill-treatment, for he is such a disagreeable man that it

would be quite a misfortune to be liked by him. Mrs. Long

told me last night that he sat close to her for half an hour

without once opening his lips.'

 

Are you quite sure ma'am? Is not there a little mistake?'

said Jane. 'I certainly saw Mr. Darcy speaking to her.'

 

'Ay, because she asked him at last how he liked Nether-

field, and he could not help answering her; but she said he

seemed very angry at being spoke to.'

 

'Miss Bingley told me,' said Jane, 'that he never speaks

much unless among his intimate acquaintance. With them

he is remarkably agreeable.'

 

'I do not believe a word of it, my dear. If he had been

so very agreeable, he would have talked to Mrs. Long. Rut

I can guess how it was; everybody says that he is eat up

with pride, and I daresay he had heard somehow that Mrs.

Long does not keep a carriage, and had to come to the ball

in a hack chaise.'

 

'I do not mind his not talking to Mrs. Long,' said Miss

Lucas, 'but I wish he had danced with Eliza.'

 

'Another time, Lizzy,' said her mother, 'I would not dance

with him, if I were you.'

 

'I believe, ma'am, I may safely promise you never to

dance with him.'

 

 [178]

 
{{prhprp179.jpg}}

 

 

'His pride,' said Miss Lucas, 'does not offend me so much

as pride often does, because there is an excuse for it. One

cannot wonder that so very fine a young man, with family,

fortune, everything in his favour, should think highly of

himself. If I may so express it, he has a right to be proud.'

 

'That is very true,' replied Elizabeth, 'and I could easily

forgive his pride, if he had not mortified mine.'

 

'Pride,' observed Mary, who piqued herself upon the

solidity of her reflections, 'is a very common failing, I be-

lieve. By all that I have ever read, I am convinced that

it is very common indeed; that human nature is particularly

prone to it, and that there are very few of us who do not

cherish a feeling of self-complacency on the score of some

quality or other, real or imaginary. Vanity and pride are

different things, though the words are often used

synonymously. A person may be proud without being vain.

Pride relates more to our opinion of ourselves; vanity to

what we would have others think of us.'

 

'If I were as rich as Mr. Darcy,' cried a young Lucas,

who came with his sisters, I should not care how proud I

was. I would keep a pack of foxhounds, and drink a bottle

of wine every day.'

 

Then you would drink a great deal more than you ought.'

said Mrs. Bennet; 'and if I were to see you at it, I should

take away your bottle directly.'

 

The boy protested that she should not; she continued to

declare that she would; and the argument ended only with

the visit.

 

 [179]

 
{{prhprp180.jpg}}

 

 

 

 

Chapter VI

 

THE ladies of Longbourn soon waited on those of

Netherfield. The visit was returned in due form.

Miss Bennet's pleasing manners grew on the good-

will of Mrs. Hurst and Miss Bingley; and though the

mother was found to be intolerable, and the younger sisters

not worth speaking to, a wish of being better acquainted

with them was expressed towards the two eldest. By Jane

this attention was received with the greatest pleasure; but

Elizabeth still saw superciliousness in their treatment of

everybody, hardly excepting even her sister, and could not

like them; though their kindness to Jane, such as it was,

had a value, as arising, in all probability, from the in-

fluence of their brother's admiration. It was generally evi-

dent, whenever they met, that he did admire her; and to

her it was equally evident that Jane was yielding to the

preference which she had begun to entertain for him from

the first, and was in a way to be very much in love; but she

considered with pleasure that it was not likely to be dis-

covered by the world in general, since Jane united with

great strength of feeling, a composure of temper and a

uniform cheerfulness of manner which would guard her

from the suspicions of the impertinent. She mentioned

this to her friend Miss Lucas.

 

'It may, perhaps, be pleasant,' replied Charlotte, 'to be

able to impose on the public in such a case; but it is some-

times a disadvantage to be so very guarded. If a woman

conceals her attention with the same skill from the object of

it, she may lose the opportunity of fixing him; and it will

then be but poor consolation to believe the world equally

in the dark. There is so much of gratitude or vanity in

almost every attachment, that it is not safe to leave any to

itself. We can all begin freely -- a slight preference is

natural enough; but there are very few of us who have

heart enough to be really in love without encouragement.

 

 [180]

 
{{prhprp181.jpg}}

 

 

In nine cases out of ten, a woman had better show more

affection than she feels. Bingley likes your sister un-

doubtedly; but he may never do more than like her, if she

does not help him on.'

 

'But she does help him on, as much as her nature will

allow. If I can perceive her regard for him, he must be a

simpleton indeed not to discover it too.'

 

'Remember, Eliza, that he does not know Jane's disposi-

tion as you do.'

 

'But if a woman is partial to a man, and does not en-

deavour to conceal it, he must find it out.'

 

'Perhaps he must, if he sees enough of her. But though

Bingley and Jane meet tolerably often, it is never for many

hours together; and as they always see each other in large

mixed parties, it is impossible that every moment should

be employed in conversing together. Jane should there-

fore make the most of every half-hour in which she

can command his attention. When she is secure of

him, there will be leisure for falling in love as much as she

chooses.'

 

'Your plan is a good one,' replied Elizabeth, 'where

nothing is in question but the desire of being well married;

and if I were determined to get a rich husband, or any

husband, I daresay I should adopt it. But these are not

Jane's feelings; she is not acting by design. As yet she

cannot even be certain of the degree of her own regard, nor

of its reasonableness. She has known him only a fortnight.

She danced four dances with him at Meryton; she saw him

one morning at his own house, and has since dined in com-

pany with him four times. This is not quite enough to

make her understand his character.'

 

'Not as you represent it. Had she merely dined with

him, she might only have discovered whether he had a good

appetite; but you must remember that four evenings have

been also spent together -- and four evenings may do a

great deal.'

 

'Yes: these four evenings have enabled them to ascertain

that they both like Vingt-un better than Commerce, but with

respect to any other leading characteristic. I do not imagine

that much has been unfolded.'

 

 [181]

 
{{prhprp182.jpg}}

 

 

'Well,' said Charlotte, 'I wish Jane success with all my

heart; and if she were married to him to-morrow, I should

think she had as good a chance of happiness as if she were

to be studying his character for a twelvemonth. Happiness

in marriage is entirely a matter of chance. If the disposi-

tions of the parties are ever so well known to each other,

or ever so similar beforehand, it does not advance their

felicity in the least. They always continue to grow suf-

ficiently unlike afterwards to have their share of vexation;

and it is better to know as little as possible of the defects

of the person with whom you are to pass your life.'

 

'You make me laugh, Charlotte; but it is not sound. You

know it is not sound, and that you would never act in this

way yourself.'

 

Occupied in observing Mr. Bingley's attentions to her

sister, Elizabeth was far from suspecting that she was her-

self becoming an object of some interest in the eyes of his

friend. Mr. Darcy had at first scarcely allowed her to be

pretty: he had looked at her without admiration at the

ball; and when they next met, he looked at her only to

criticise. But no sooner had he made it clear to himself and

his friends that she had hardly a good feature in her face,

than he began to find it was rendered uncommonly in-

telligent by the beautiful expression of her dark eyes. To

this discovery succeeded some others equally mortifying.

Though he had detected with a critical eye more than one

failure of perfect symmetry in her form, he was forced

to acknowledge her figure to be light and pleasing; and in

spite of his asserting that her manners were not those of

the fashionable world, he was caught by their easy playful-

ness. Of this she was perfectly unaware: to her he was

only the man who made himself agreeable nowhere, and

who had not thought her handsome enough to dance with.

 

He began to wish to know more of her; and, as a step

towards conversing with her himself, attended to her con-

versation with others. His doing so drew her notice. It

was at Sir William Lucas's, where a large party were

assembled.

 

'What does Mr. Darcy mean,' said she to Charlotte, 'by

listening to my conversation with Colonel Forster?'

 

 [182]

 
{{prhprp183.jpg}}

 

 

'That is a question which Mr. Darcy only can answer.'

 

'But if he does it any more, I shall certainly let him know

that I see what he is about. He has a very satirical eye,

and if I do not begin by being impertinent myself, I shall

soon grow afraid of him.'

 

On his approaching them soon afterwards, though with-

out seeming to have any intention of speaking. Miss Lucas

defied her friend to mention such a subject to him, which

immediately provoking Elizabeth to do it, she turned to

him and said, --

 

'Did not you think, Mr. Darcy, that I expressed myself

uncommonly well just now, when I was teasing Colonel

Forster to give us a ball at Meryton?'

 

'With great energy; but it is a subject which always

makes a lady energetic'

 

'You are severe on us.'

 

'It will be her turn soon to be teased,' said Miss Lucas.

'I am going to open the instrument, Eliza, and you know

what follows.'

 

'You are a very strange creature by way of a friend! --

always wanting me to play and sing before anybody and

everybody! If my vanity had taken a musical turn, you

would have been invaluable; but as it is, I would really

rather not sit down before those who must be in the habit

of hearing the very best performers.' On Miss Lucas's

persevering, however, she added, 'Very well; if it must be

so, it must.' And gravely glancing at Mr. Darcy, 'There is

a very fine old saying, which everybody here is of course

familiar with -- "Keep your breath to cool your porridge," --

and I shall keep mine to swell ray song.'

 

Her performance was pleasing, though by no means

capital. After a song or two, and before she could reply to

the entreaties of several that she would sing again, she

was eagerly succeeded at the instrument by her sister Mary,

who having, in consequence of being the only plain one in

the family, worked hard for knowledge and accomplish-

ments, was always impatient for display.

 

Mary had neither genius nor taste; and though vanity

had given her application, it had given her likewise a

pedantic air and conceited manner, which would have in-

 

 [183]

 
{{prhprp184.jpg}}

 

jured a higher degree of excellence than she had reached.

Elizabeth, easy and unaffected, had been listened to with

much more pleasure, though not playing half so well; and

Mary, at the end of a long concerto, was glad to purchase

praise and gratitude by Scotch and Irish airs, at the re-

quest of her younger sisters, who with some of the Lucases,

and two or three officers, joined eagerly in dancing at one

end of the room.

 

Mr. Darcy stood near them in silent indignation at such

a mode of passing the evening, to the exclusion of all con-

versation, and was too much engrossed by his own thoughts

to perceive that Sir William Lucas was his neighbour, till

Sir William thus began: --

 

'What a charming amusement for young people this is.

Mr. Darcy! There is nothing like dancing, after all. I con-

sider it as one of the first refinements of polished societies.'

 

'Certainly, sir; and it has the advantage also of being in

vogue amongst the less polished societies of the world; every

savage can dance.'

 

Sir William only smiled. 'Your friend performs delight-

fully,' he continued, after a pause, on seeing Bingley join

the group; 'and I doubt not that you are an adept in the

science yourself, Mr. Darcy.'

 

'You saw me dance at Meryton, I believe, sir.'

 

'Yes, indeed, and received no inconsiderable pleasure from

the sight. Do you often dance at St. James's?'

 

'Never, sir.'

 

'Do you not think it would be a proper compliment to

the place?'

 

'It is a compliment which I never pay to any place if I

can avoid it.'

 

'You have a house in town. I conclude.'

 

Mr. Darcy bowed.

 

'I had once some thoughts of fixing in town myself, for I

am fond of superior society; but I did not feel quite certain

that the air of London would agree with Lady Lucas.'

 

He paused in hopes of an answer; but his companion was

not disposed to make any; and Elizabeth at that instant

moving towards them, he was struck with the notion of

doing a very gallant thing, and called out to her, --

 

 [184]

 
{{prhprp185.jpg}}

 

 

'My dear Miss Eliza, why are not you dancing? Mr.

Darcy, you must allow me to present this young lady to you

as a very desirable partner. You cannot refuse to dance, I

am sure, when so much beauty is before you.' And, taking

her hand, he would have given it to Mr. Darcy, who, though

extremely surprised, was not unwilling to receive it, when

she instantly drew back, and said with some discomposure

to Sir William, --

 

'Indeed, sir, I have not the least intention of dancing. I

entreat you not to suppose that I moved this way in order

to beg for a partner.'

 

Mr. Darcy, with grave propriety, requested to be allowed

the honour of her hand, but in vain, Elizabeth was deter-

mined; nor did Sir William at all shake her purpose by his

attempt at persuasion,

 

'You excel so much in the dance. Miss Eliza, that it is

cruel to deny me the happiness of seeing you; and though

this gentleman dislikes the amusement in general, he can

have no objection, I am sure, to oblige us for one half-

hour.'

 

'Mr, Darcy is all politeness,' said Elizabeth, smiling.

 

'He is, indeed: but considering the inducement, my dear

Miss Eliza, we cannot wonder at his complaisance; for who

would object to such a partner?'

 

Elizabeth looked archly, and turned away. Her resistance

had not injured her with the gentleman, and he was thinking

of her with some complacency, when thus accosted by Miss

Bingley,--

 

'I can guess the subject of your reverie.'

 

'I should imagine not.'

 

'You are considering how insupportable it would be to pass

many evenings in this manner, -- in such society; and, in-

deed. I am quite of your opinion. I was never more an-

noyed! The insipidity, and yet the noise -- the nothingness,

and yet the self-importance, of all these people! What

would I give to hear your strictures on them!'

 

'S'our conjecture is totally wrong, I assure you. My mind

was more agreeably engaged, I have been meditating on

the very great pleasure which a pair of fine eyes in the

face of a pretty woman can bestow.'

 

 [185]

 
{{prhprp186.jpg}}

 

 

Miss Bingley immediately fixed her eyes on his face, and

desired he would tell her what lady had the credit of in-

spiring such reflections. Mr. Darcy replied, with great

intrepidity, --

 

'Miss Elizabeth Bennet.'

 

'Miss Elizabeth Bennet!' repeated Miss Bingley. 'I am

all astonishment. How long has she been such a favourite?

and pray when am I to wish you joy?'

 

'That is exactly the question which I expected you to ask.

A lady's imagination is very rapid; it jumps from admiration

to love, from love to matrimony, in a moment. I knew you

would be wishing me joy.'

 

'Nay, if you are so serious about it, I shall consider the

matter as absolutely settled. You will have a charming

mother-in-law, indeed, and of course she will be always

at Pemberley with you.'

 

He listened to her with perfect indifference, while she

chose to entertain herself in this manner; and as his com-

posure convinced her that all was safe, her wit flowed along.

 

 [186]

 
{{prhprp187.jpg}}

 

 

 

 

Chapter VII

 

MR. BENNET'S property consisted almost entirely in

an estate of two thousand a year, which, un-

fortunately for his daughters, was entailed, in de-

fault of heirs-male, on a distant relation; and their mother's

fortune, though ample for her situation in life, could but

ill supply the deficiency of his. Her father had been an

attorney in Meryton, and had left her four thousand pounds.

 

She had a sister married to a Mr. Philips, who had been

a clerk to their father, and succeeded him in the business,

and a brother settled in London, in a respectable line of

trade.

 

The village of Longbourn was only one mile from

Meryton; a most convenient distance for the young ladies,

who were usually tempted thither three or four times a

week, to pay their duty to their aunt, and to a milliner's

shop just over the way. The two youngest of the family,

Catherine and Lydia, were particularly frequent in these

attentions: their minds were more vacant than their sisters',

and when nothing better offered, a walk to Meryton was

necessary to amuse their morning hours and furnish con-

versation for the evening; and, however bare of news the

country in general might be, they always contrived to

learn some from their aunt. At present, indeed, they were

well supplied both with news and happiness by the recent

arrival of a militia regiment in the neighbourhood; it was

to remain the whole winter, and Meryton was the head-

quarters.

 

Their visits to Mrs. Philips were now productive of the

most interesting intelligence. Every day added something

to their knowledge of the officers' names and connections.

Their lodgings were not long a secret, and at length they

began to know the officers themselves. Mr. Philips visited

them all, and this opened to his nieces a source of felicity

 

 [187]

 
{{prhprp188.jpg}}

 

unknown before. They could talk of nothing but officers;

and Mr. Bingley's large fortune, the mention of which

gave animation to their mother, was worthless in their eyes

when opposed to the regimentals of an ensign.

 

After listening one morning to their effusions on this sub-

ject, Mr. Bennet coolly observed, --

 

'From all that I can collect by your manner of talking,

you must be two of the silliest girls in the country. I have

suspected it some time, but I am now convinced.'

 

Catherine was disconcerted, and made no answer; but

Lydia, with perfect indifference, continued to express her

admiration of Captain Carter, and her hope of seeing him

in the course of the day, as he was going the next morning

to London.

 

'I am astonished, my dear,' said Mrs. Bennet, 'that you

should be so ready to think your own children silly. If I

wished to think slightingly of anybody's children, it should

not be of my own, however.'

 

'If my children are silly, I must hope to be always sensible

of it.'

 

'Yes; but as it happens, they are all of them very clever.'

 

'This is the only point, I flatter myself, on which we do

not agree. I had hoped that our sentiments coincided in

every particular, but I must so far differ from you as to

think our two youngest daughters uncommonly foolish.'

 

'My dear Mr. Bennet, you must not expect such girls to

have the sense of their father and mother. When they get

to our age, I daresay they will not think about officers any

more than we do. I remember the time when I liked a red

coat myself very well -- and, indeed, so I do still at my heart;

and if a smart young colonel, with five or six thousand a

year, should want one of my girls, I shall not say nay to

him; and I thought Colonel Forster looked very becoming

the other night at Sir William's in his regimentals.'

 

'Mamma,' cried Lydia, 'my aunt says that Colonel Forster

and Captain Carter do not go so often to Miss Watson's as

they did when they first came; she sees them now very often

standing in Clarke's library.'

 

Mrs. Bennet was prevented replying by the entrance of the

footman with a note for Miss Bennet; it came from Nether-

 

 [188]

 
{{prhprp189.jpg}}

 

field, and the servant waited for an answer. Mrs. Bennet's

eyes sparkled with pleasure, and she was eagerly calling out,

while her daughter read, --

 

'Well, Jane, who is it from? What is it about? What

docs he say? Well, Jane, make haste and tell us; make

haste, my love.'

 

'It is from Miss Bingley,' said Jane, and then read it

aloud.

 

'My Dear Friend -- If you are not so compassionate as to dine

to-day with Louisa and me, we shall be in danger of hating each

other for the rest of our lives; for a whole day's tete-a-tete between

two women can never end without a quarrel. Come as soon as you

can on the receipt of this. My brother and the gentlemen are to

dine with the officers. Yours ever,

 

'Caroline Bingley.'

 

'With the officers!' cried Lydia: 'I wonder my aunt did

not tell us of that.'

 

'Dining out,' said Mrs. Bennet; 'that is very unlucky.'

 

'Can I have the carriage?' said Jane.

 

'No, my dear, you had better go on horseback, because it

seems likely to rain; and then you must stay all night.'

 

'That would be a good scheme,' said Elizabeth, 'if you

were sure that they would not offer to send her home.'

 

'Oh, but the gentlemen will have Mr. Bingley's chaise to

go to Meryton; and the Hursts have no horses to theirs.'

 

'I had much rather go in the coach.'

 

'But, my dear, your father cannot spare the horses, I am

sure. They are wanted in the farm, Mr. Bennet, are not

they?'

 

'They are wanted in the farm much oftener than I can

get them.'

 

'But if you have got them to-day,' said Elizabeth, 'my

mother's purpose will be answered.'

 

She did at last extort from her father an acknowledgment

that the horses were engaged; Jane was therefore obliged

to go on horseback, and her mother attended her to the door

with many cheerful prognostics of a bad day. Our hopes

were answered; Jane had not been gone long before it

rained hard. Our sisters were uneasy for her, but her

mother was delighted. The rain continued the whole even-

 

 [189]

 
{{prhprp190.jpg}}

 

ing without intermission; Jane certainly could not come

back.

 

'This was a lucky idea of mine, indeed!' said Mrs. Bennet,

more than once, as if the credit of making it rain were all

her own. Till the next morning, however, she was not

aware of all the felicity of her contrivance. Breakfast was

scarcely over when a servant from Netherfield brought the

following note for Elizabeth: --

 

'My Dearest Lizzy -- I find myself very unwell this morning,

which, I suppose, is to be imputed to my getting wet through yes-

terday. My kind friends will not hear of my returning home till

I am better. They insist also on my seeing Mr. Jones -- therefore do

not be alarmed if you should hear of his having been to me -- and,

excepting a sore throat and a headache, there is not much the matter

with me.

 

'Yours, etc.'

 

'Well, my dear,' said Mr. Bennet, when Elizabeth had

read the note aloud, 'if your daughter should have a

dangerous fit of illness -- if she should die -- it would be a

comfort to know that it was all in pursuit of Mr. Bingley,

and under your orders.'

 

'Oh, I am not at all afraid of her dying. People do not

die of little trifling colds. She will be taken good care of.

As long as she stays there, it is all very well. I would go

and see her if I could have the carriage.'

 

Elizabeth, feeling really anxious, determined to go to her

though the carriage was not to be had: and as she was no

horsewoman, walking was her only alternative. She de-

clared her resolution,

 

'How can you be so silly,' cried her mother, 'as to think

of such a thing, in all this dirt! You will not be fit to be

seen when you get there.'

 

'I shall be very fit to see Jane -- which is all I want.'

 

'Is this a hint to me, Lizzy,' said her father, 'to send for

the horses?'

 

'No, indeed. I do not wish to avoid the walk. The

distance is nothing, when one has a motive; only three

miles. I shall be back by dinner.'

 

'I admire the activity of your benevolence,' observed

Mary, 'but every impulse of feeling should be guided by

 

 [190]

 
{{prhprp191.jpg}}

 

reason; and, in my opinion, exertion should always be in

proportion to what is required.'

 

'We will go as far as Meryton with you,' said Catherine

and Lydia. Elizabeth accepted their company, and the three

young ladies set off together.

 

If we make haste,' said Lydia, as they walked along,

'perhaps we may see something of Captain Carter, before

he goes.'

 

In Meryton they parted: the two youngest repaired to the

lodgings of one of the officers' wives, and Elizabeth con-

tinued her walk alone, crossing field after field at a quick

pace, jumping over stiles and springing over puddles, with

impatient activity, and finding herself at last within view

of the house, with weary ankles, dirty stockings, and a face

glowing with the warmth of exercise.

 

She was shown into the breakfast parlour, where all but

Jane were assembled, and where her appearance created a

great deal of surprise. That she should have walked three

miles so early in the day in such dirty weather, and by her-

self, was almost incredible to Mrs. Hurst and Miss Bingley;

and Elizabeth was convinced that they held her in con-

tempt for it. She was received, however, very politely by

them; and in their brother's manners there was something

better than politeness -- there was good-humour and kind-

ness. Mr. Darcy said very little, and Mr. Hurst nothing

at all. The former was divided between admiration

of the brilliancy which exercise had given to her

complexion and doubt as to the occasion's justifying her

coming so far alone. The latter was thinking only of his

breakfast.

 

Her inquiries after her sister were not very favourably

answered. Miss Bennet had slept ill, and, though up, was

very feverish, and not well enough to leave her room.

Elizabeth was glad to be taken to her immediately; and

Jane, who had only been withheld by the fear of giving

alarm or inconvenience, from expressing in her note how

much she longed for such a visit, was delighted at her en-

trance. She was not equal, however, to much conversation;

and when Miss Bingley left them together, could attempt

little beside expressions of gratitude for the extraordinary

 

 [191]

 
{{prhprp192.jpg}}

 

kindness she was treated with. Elizabeth silently attended

her.

 

When breakfast was over, they were joined by the sisters;

and Elizabeth began to like them herself, when she saw how

much affection and solicitude they showed for Jane. The

apothecary came; and having examined his patient, said, as

might be supposed, that she had caught a violent cold, and

that they must endeavour to get the better of it; advised her

to return to bed, and promised her some draughts. The

advice was followed readily, for the feverish symptoms in-

creased, and her head ached acutely. Elizabeth did not quit

her room for a moment, nor were the other ladies often

absent; the gentlemen being out, they had in fact nothing

to do elsewhere.

 

When the clock struck three, Elizabeth felt that she must

go, and very unwillingly said so. Miss Bingley offered her

the carriage, and she only wanted a little pressing to accept

it, when Jane testified such concern at parting with her that

Miss Bingley was obliged to convert the offer of the chaise

into an invitation to remain at Netherfield for the present.

Elizabeth most thankfully consented, and a servant was

despatched to Longbourn, to acquaint the family with her

stay, and bring back a supply of clothes.

 

 [192]

 
{{prhprp193.jpg}}

 

 

 

 

Chapter VIII

 

AT five o'clock the two ladies retired to dress, and at

half-past six Elizabeth was summoned to dinner.

To the civil inquiries which then poured in, and

amongst which she had the pleasure of distinguishing the

much superior solicitude of Mr. Bingley, she could not make

a very favourable answer. Jane was by no means better.

The sisters, on hearing this, repeated three or four times

how much they were grieved, how shocking it was to have

a bad cold, and how excessively they disliked being ill

themselves; and then thought no more of the matter: and

their indifference towards Jane, when not immediately be-

fore them, restored Elizabeth to the enjoyment of all her

original dislike.

 

Their brother, indeed, was the only one of the party whom

she could regard with any complacency. His anxiety for

Jane was evident, and his attentions to herself most pleas-

ing; and they prevented her feeling herself so much an

intruder as she believed she was considered by the others.

She had very little notice from any but him. Miss Bingley

was engrossed by Mr. Darcy, her sister scarcely less so;

and as for Mr. Hurst, by whom Elizabeth sat, he was an

indolent man, who lived only to eat, drink, and play at

cards, who, when he found her prefer a plain dish to a

ragout, had nothing to say to her.

 

When dinner was over, she returned directly to Jane, and

Miss Bingley began abusing her as soon as she was out of

the room. Her manners were pronounced to be very bad

indeed, -- a mixture of pride and impertinence: she had no

conversation, no style, no taste, no beauty. Mrs. Hurst

thought the same, and added, --

 

'She has nothing, in short, to recommend her, but being

an excellent walker. I shall never forget her appearance

this morning. She really looked almost wild.'

 

'She did, indeed, Louisa. I could hardly keep my counte-

nance. Very nonsensical to come at all! Why must she be

 

 [193]

 
{{prhprp194.jpg}}

 

scampering about the country, because her sister had a cold?

Her hair so untidy, so blowsy!'

 

'Yes, and her petticoat; I hope you saw her petticoat, six

inches deep in mud, I am absolutely certain, and the gown

which had been let down to hide it not doing its office.'

 

'Your picture may be very exact, Louisa,' said Bingley;

'but this was all lost upon me. I thought Miss Elizabeth

Bennet looked remarkably well when she came into the room

this morning. Her dirty petticoat quite escaped my notice.'

 

'You observed it, Mr. Darcy, I am sure,' said Miss

Bingley; 'and I am inclined to think that you would not

wish to see your sister make such an exhibition.'

 

'Certainly not.'

 

'To walk three miles, or four miles, or five miles, or what-

ever it is, above her ankles in dirt, and alone, quite alone!

what could she mean by it? It seems to me to show an

abominable sort of conceited independence, a most country-

town indifference to decorum.'

 

'It shows an affection for her sister that is very pleasing,'

said Bingley.

 

'I am afraid, Mr. Darcy,' observed Miss Bingley, in a

half whisper, 'that this adventure has rather affected your

admiration of her fine eyes.'

 

'Not at all,' he replied: 'they were brightened by the

exercise.' A short pause followed this speech, and Mrs.

Hurst began again, --

 

'I have an excessive regard for Jane Bennet, -- she is

really a very sweet girl, -- and I wish with all my heart she

were well settled. But with such a father and mother, and

such low connections, I am afraid there is no chance of it.'

 

'I think I have heard you say that their uncle is an at-

torney in Meryton?'

 

Yes; and they have another, who lives somewhere near

Cheapside.'

 

'That is capital,' added her sister; and they both laughed

heartily.

 

'If they had uncles enough to fill all Cheapside,' cried

Bingley, 'it would not make them one jot less agreeable.'

 

'But it must very materially lessen their chance of marry-

ing men of any consideration in the world,' replied Darcy.

 

 [194]

 
{{prhprp195.jpg}}

 

 

To this speech Bingley made no answer; but his sisters

gave it their hearty assent, and indulged their mirth for

some time at the expense of their dear friend's vulgar

relations.

 

With a renewal of tenderness, however, they repaired to

her room on leaving the dining-parlour, and sat with her till

summoned to coffee. She was still very poorly, and

Elizabeth would not quit her at all, till late in the evening,

when she had the comfort of seeing her asleep, and when

it appeared to her rather right than pleasant that she should

go downstairs herself. On entering the drawing-room, she

found the whole party at loo, and was immediately invited

to join them; but suspecting them to be playing high, she

declined it, and making her sister the excuse, said she would

amuse herself, for the short time she could stay below, with

a book. Mr. Hurst looked at her with astonishment.

 

'Do you prefer reading to cards?' said he; 'that is rather

singular.'

 

'Miss Eliza Bennet,' said Miss Bingley, 'despises cards.

She is a great reader, and has no pleasure in anything else.'

 

'I deserve neither such praise nor such censure,' cried

Elizabeth; 'I am not a great reader, and I have pleasure in

many things.'

 

'In nursing your sister I am sure you have pleasure,' said

Bingley; 'and I hope it will soon be increased by seeing her

quite well.'

 

Elizabeth thanked him from her heart, and then walked

towards a table where a few books were lying. He im-

mediately offered to fetch her others; all that his library

afforded.

 

'And I wish my collection were larger for your benefit

and my own credit; but I am an idle fellow; and though I

have not many, I have more than I ever looked into.'

 

Elizabeth assured him that she could suit herself perfectly

with those in the room.

 

'I am astonished,' said Miss Bingley, 'that my father

should have left so small a collection of books. What a

delightful library you have at Pemberley, Mr. Darcy!'

 

'It ought to be good,' he replied: 'it has been the work of

many generations.'

 

 [195]

 
{{prhprp196.jpg}}

 

 

'And then you have added so much to it yourself -- you are

always buying hooks.'

 

'I cannot comprehend the neglect of a family library in

such days as these.'

 

'Neglect I I am sure you neglect nothing that can add

to the beauties of that noble place. Charles, when you

build your house, I wish it may be half as delightful as

Pemberley.'

 

'I wish it may.'

 

'But I would really advise you to make your purchase

in that neighbourhood, and take Pemberley for a kind of

model. There is not a finer county in England than Derby-

shire.'

 

'With all my heart: I will buy Pemberley itself, if Darcy

will sell it.'

 

'I am talking of possibilities, Charles.'

 

'Upon my word, Caroline, I should think it more possible

to get Pemberley by purchase than by imitation.'

 

Elizabeth was so much caught by what passed as to leave

her very little attention for her book; and soon laying it

wholly aside, she drew near the card-table, and stationed

herself between Mr. Bingley and his eldest sister, to ob-

serve the game.

 

'Is Miss Darcy much grown since the spring?' said Miss

Bingley: 'will she be as tall as I am?'

 

'I think she will. She is now about Miss Elizabeth

Bennet's height, or rather taller.'

 

'How I long to see her again! I never met with anybody

who delighted me so much. Such a countenance, such

manners, and so extremely accomplished for her age. Her

performance on the pianoforte is exquisite.'

 

'It is amazing to me,' said Bingley, 'how young ladies can

have patience to be so very accomplished as they all are.'

 

'All young ladies accomplished! My dear Charles, what

do you mean?'

 

'Yes, all of them, I think. They all paint tables, cover

screens, and net purses. I scarcely know any one who

cannot do all this; and I am sure I never heard a young

lady spoken of for the first time, without being informed

that she was very accomplished.'

 

 [196]

 
{{prhprp197.jpg}}

 

 

'Your list of the common extent of accomplishments,' said

Darcy, 'has too much truth. The word is applied to many

a woman who deserves it no otherwise than by netting a

purse or covering a screen'; but I am very far from agree-

ing with you in your estimation of ladies in general. I

cannot boast of knowing more than half a dozen in the

whole range of my acquaintance that are really accomplished.'

 

'Nor I, I am sure,' said Miss Bingley.

 

'Then.' observed Elizabeth, 'you must comprehend a great

deal in your idea of an accomplished woman.'

 

'Yes; I do comprehend a great deal in it.'

 

'Oh, certainly.' cried his faithful assistant, 'no one can be

really esteemed accomplished who does not greatly surpass

what is usually met with. A woman must have a thorough

knowledge of music, singing, drawing, dancing, and the

modern languages, to deserve the word; and, besides all this,

she must possess a certain something in her air and manner

of walking, the tone of her voice, her address and expres-

sions, or the word will be but half deserved.'

 

'All this she must possess,' added Darcy; 'and to all

she must yet add something more substantial in the improve-

ment of her mind by extensive reading.'

 

I am no longer surprised at your knowing only six accom-

plished women. I rather wonder now at your knowing

any.'

 

'Are you so severe upon your own sex as to doubt the

possibility of all this?'

 

'I never saw such a woman. I never saw such capacity,

and taste, and application, and elegance, as you describe,

united.'

 

Mrs. Hurst and Miss Bingley both cried out against the

injustice of her implied doubt, and were both protesting that

they knew many women who answered this description, when

Mr. Hurst called them to order, with bitter complaints of

their inattention to what was going forward. As all con-

versation was thereby at an end, Elizabeth soon afterwards

left the room.

 

'Eliza Bennet,' said Miss Bingley, when the door was

closed on her, 'is one of those young ladies who seek to

recommend themselves to the other sex by undervaluing

 

 [197]

 
{{prhprp198.jpg}}

 

their own; and with many men, I daresay, it succeeds; but,

in my opinion, it is a paltry device, a very mean art.'

 

'Undoubtedly,' replied Darcy, to whom this remark was

chiefly addressed, 'there is meanness in all the arts which

ladies sometimes condescend to employ for captivation.

Whatever bears affinity to cunning is despicable.'

 

Miss Bingley was not so entirely satisfied with this reply

as to continue the subject.

 

Elizabeth joined them again only to say that her sister was

worse, and that she could not leave her. Bingley urged Mr.

Jones's being sent for immediately; while his sisters, con-

vinced that no country advice could be of any service, recom-

mended an express to town for one of the most eminent

physicians. This she would not hear of; but she was not

so unwilling to comply with their brother's proposal; and

it was settled that Mr. Jones should be sent for early in

the morning, if Miss Bennet were not decidedly better.

Bingley was quite uncomfortable; his sisters declared that

they were miserable. They solaced their wretchedness,

however, by duets after supper, while he could find no better

relief to his feelings than by giving his housekeeper direc-

tions that every possible attention might be paid to the sick

lady and her sister.

 

 [198]

 
{{prhprp199.jpg}}

 

 

 

 

Chapter IX

 

ELIZABETH passed the chief of the night in her sister's

room, and in the morning had the pleasure of being

able to send a tolerable answer to the inquiries which

she very early received from Mr. Bingley by a house-

maid, and some time afterwards from the two elegant ladies

who waited on his sisters. In spite of this amendment, how-

ever, she requested to have a note sent to Longbourn, desiring

her mother to visit Jane, and form her own judgment of her

situation. The note was immediately despatched, and its con-

tents as quickly complied with. Mrs. Bennet, accompanied

by her two youngest girls, reached Netherfield soon after

the family breakfast.

 

Had she found Jane in any apparent danger, Mrs. Bennet

would have been very miserable; but being satisfied on see-

ing her that her illness was not alarming, she had no wish of

her recovering immediately, as her restoration to health would

probably remove her from Netherfield. She would not

listen, therefore, to her daughter's proposal of being carried

home; neither did the apothecary, who arrived about the same

time, think it at all advisable. After sitting a little while

with Jane, on Miss Bingley's appearance and invitation, the

mother and three daughters all attended her into the break-

fast parlour. Bingley met them with hopes that Mrs. Bennet

had not found Miss Bennet worse than she expected.

 

'Indeed I have, sir,' was her answer. 'She is a great deal

too ill to be moved. Mr. Jones says we must not think of

moving her. We must trespass a little longer on your kind-

ness.'

 

'Removed!' cried Bingley. It must not be thought of.

My sister, I am sure, will not hear of her removal.'

 

'You may depend upon it, madam,' said Miss Bingley, with

cold civility, 'that Miss Bennet shall receive every possible

attention while she remains with us.'

 

Mrs. Bennet was profuse in her acknowledgments.

 

 [199]

 
{{prhprp200.jpg}}

 

 

'I am sure,' she added, 'if it was not for such good friends,

I do not know what would become of her, for she is very ill

indeed, and suffers a vast deal, though with the greatest pa-

tience in the world, which is always the way with her, for

she has, without exception, the sweetest temper I ever met

with. I often tell my other girls they are nothing to her.

You have a sweet room here, Mr. Bingley, and a charming

prospect over that gravel walk. I do not know a place in the

country that is equal to Netherfield. You will not think of

quitting it in a hurry, I hope, though you have but a short

lease.'

 

'Whatever I do is done in a hurry,' replied he; 'and there-

fore if I should resolve to quit Netherfield, I should prob-

ably be off in five minutes. At present, however, I consider

myself as quite fixed here.'

 

'That is exactly what I should have supposed of you,' said

Elizabeth.

 

'You begin to comprehend me, do you?' cried he, turning

towards her.

 

'Oh yes -- I understand you perfectly.'

 

'I wish I might take this for a compliment; but to be so

easily seen through, I am afraid, is pitiful.'

 

'That is as it happens. It does not necessarily follow that

a deep, intricate character is more or less estimable than

such a one as yours.'

 

'Lizzy,' cried her mother, 'remember where you are, and

do not run on in the wild manner that you are suffered to

do at home.'

 

'I did not know before,' continued Bingley, immediately,

'that you were a studier of character. It must be an amus-

ing study.'

 

'Yes; but intricate characters are the most amusing.

They have at least that advantage.'

 

'The country,' said Darcy, 'can in general supply but

few subjects for such a study. In a country neighbour-

hood you move in a very confined and unvarying society.'

 

'But people themselves alter so much, that there is some-

thing new to be observed in them for ever.'

 

'Yes, indeed,' cried Mrs. Bennet, offended by his manner

of mentioning a country neighbourhood. 'I assure you there

 

 [200]

 
{{prhprp201.jpg}}

 

is quite as much of that going on in the country as in

town.'

 

Everybody was surprised; and Darcy, after looking at

her for a moment, turned silently away. Mrs. Bennet, who

fancied she had gained a complete victory over him, con-

tinued her triumph, --

 

'I cannot see that London has any great advantage over

the country, for my part, except the shops and public places.

The country is a vast deal pleasanter, is not it, Mr. Bing-

ley?'

 

'When I am in the country,' he replied, 'I never wish

to leave it; and when I am in town, it is pretty much the

same. They have each their advantages, and I can be

equally happy in either.'

 

'Ay, that is because you have the right disposition. But

that gentleman,' looking at Darcy, 'seemed to think the

country was nothing at all.'

 

'Indeed, mamma, you are mistaken,' said Elizabeth, blush-

ing for her mother. 'You quite mistook Mr. Darcy. He

only meant that there was not such a variety of people

to be met with in the country as in town, which you must

acknowledge to be true.'

 

'Certainly, my dear, nobody said there were; but as to

not meeting with many people in this neighbourhood, I

believe there are few neighbourhoods larger. I know we

dine with four-and-twenty families.'

 

Nothing but concern for Elizabeth could enable Bingley

to keep his countenance. His sister was less delicate, and

directed her eye towards Mr. Darcy with a very expres-

sive smile. Elizabeth, for the sake of saying something

that might turn her mother's thoughts, now asked her if

Charlotte Lucas had been at Longbourn since her coming

away.

 

'Yes, she called yesterday with her father. What an

agreeable man Sir William is, Mr. Bingley -- is not he? so

much the man of fashion! so genteel and so easy! He has

always something to say to everybody. That is my idea

of good-breeding; and those persons who fancy themselves

very important and never open their mouths quite mistake

the matter.'

 

 [201]

 
{{prhprp202.jpg}}

 

 

'Did Charlotte dine with you?'

 

'No, she would go home. I fancy she was wanted about

the mince-pies. For my part, Mr. Bingley, I always keep

servants that can do their own work; my daughters are

brought up differently. But everybody is to judge for them-

selves, and the Lucases are a very good sort of girls, I

assure you. It is a pity they are not handsome! Not

that I think Charlotte so very plain; but then she is our

particular friend.'

 

'She seems a very pleasant young woman,' said Bingley.

 

'Oh dear, yes; but you must own she is very plain. Lady

Lucas herself has often said so, and envied me Jane's beauty.

I do not like to boast of my own child, but to be sure, Jane --

one does not often see anybody better looking. It is what

everybody says. I do not trust my own partiality. When

she was only fifteen there was a gentleman at my brother

Gardiner's in town so much in love with her, that my sister-

in-law was sure he would make her an offer before we came

away. But, however, he did not. Perhaps he thought her

too young. However, he wrote some verses on her, and very

pretty they were.'

 

'And so ended his affection,' said Elizabeth, impatiently.

'There has been many a one, I fancy, overcome in the same

way. I wonder who first discovered the efficacy of poetry

in driving away love!'

 

'I have been used to consider poetry as the food of love,'

said Darcy.

 

'Of a fine, stout, healthy love it may. Everything

nourishes what is strong already. But if it be only a slight,

thin sort of inclination, I am convinced that one good sonnet

will starve it entirely away.'

 

Darcy only smiled; and the general pause which ensued

made Elizabeth tremble lest her mother should be exposing

herself again. She longed to speak, but could think of

nothing to say; and after a short silence Mrs. Bennet began

repeating her thanks to Mr. Bingley for his kindness to Jane,

with an apology for troubling him also with Lizzy. Mr.

Bingley was unaffectedly civil in his answer, and forced his

younger sister to be civil also, and say what the occasion

required. She performed her part, indeed, without much

 

 [202]

 
{{prhprp203.jpg}}

 

graciousness, but Mrs. Bennet was satisfied, and soon after-

wards ordered her carriage. Upon this signal, the youngest

of her daughters put herself forward. The two girls had

been whispering to each other during the whole visit; and

the result of it was, that the youngest should tax Mr. Bingley

with having promised on his first coming into the country

to give a ball at Netherfield.

 

Lydia was a stout, well-grown girl of fifteen, with a fine

complexion and good-humoured countenance; a favourite

with her mother, whose affection had brought her into public

at an early age. She had high animal spirits, and a sort of

natural self-consequence, which the attentions of the officers,

to whom her uncle's good dinners and her own easy manners

recommended her, had increased into assurance. She was

very equal, therefore, to address Mr. Bingley on the subject

of the ball, and abruptly reminded him of his promise; adding,

that it would be the most shameful thing in the world if he

did not keep it. His answer to this sudden attack was

delightful to her mother's ear.

 

'I am perfectly ready, I assure you, to keep my engage-

ment; and, when your sister is recovered, you shall, if you

please, name the very day of the ball. But you would not

wish to be dancing while she is ill?'

 

Lydia declared herself satisfied. 'Oh yes -- it would be

much better to wait till Jane was well; and by that time,

most likely. Captain Carter would be at Meryton again. And

when you have given your ball,' she added. 'I shall insist on

their giving one also. I shall tell Colonel Forster it will be

quite a shame if he does not.'

 

Mrs. Bennet and her daughters then departed, and Eliza-

beth returned instantly to Jane, leaving her own and her

relations' behaviour to the remarks of the two ladies and

Mr. Darcy; the latter of whom, however, could not be pre-

vailed on to join in their censure of her, in spite of all Miss

Bingley's witticisms on fine eyes.

 

 [203]

 
{{prhprp204.jpg}}

 

 

 

 

Chapter X

 

THE day passed much as the day before had done. Mrs.

Hurst and Miss Bingley had spent some hours of

the morning with the invalid, who continued, though

slowly, to mend; and, in the evening, Elizabeth joined their

party in the drawing-room. The loo table, however, did

not appear. Mr. Darcy was writing, and Miss Bingley,

seated near him, was watching the progress of his letter,

and repeatedly calling off his attention by messages to his

sister. Mr, Hurst and Mr. Bingley were at piquet, and

Mrs. Hurst was observing their game.

 

Elizabeth took up some needlework, and was sufficiently

amused in attending to what passed between Darcy and his

companion. The perpetual commendations of the lady either

on his handwriting, or on the evenness of his lines, or on the

length of his letter, with the perfect unconcern with which

her praises were received, formed a curious dialogue, and

were exactly in unison with her opinion of each.

 

'How delighted Miss Darcy will be to receive such a

letter!'

 

He made no answer.

 

'You write uncommonly fast.'

 

'You are mistaken. I write rather slowly.'

 

'How many letters you must have occasion to write in the

course of a year! Letters of business, too! How odious I

should think them!'

 

'It is fortunate, then, that they fall to my lot instead of

to yours.'

 

'Pray tell your sister that I long to see her.'

 

'I have already told her so once, by your desire.'

 

'I am afraid you do not like your pen. Let me mend it

for you, I mend pens remarkably well.'

 

'Thank you -- but I always mend my own,'

 

'How can you contrive to write so even?'

 

He was silent.

 

 [204]

 
{{prhprp205.jpg}}

 

 

'Tell your sister I am delighted to hear of her improve-

ment on the harp, and pray let her know that I am quite

in raptures with her beautiful little design for a table, and

I think it infinitely superior to Miss Grantley's.'

 

'Will you give me leave to defer your raptures till I write

again? At present I have not room to do them justice.'

 

'Oh, it is of no consequence. I shall see her in January.

But do you always write such charming long letters to her,

Mr. Darcy?'

 

They are generally long; but whether always charming,

it is not for me to determine.'

 

'It is a rule with me, that a person who can write a long

letter with ease cannot write ill.'

 

'That will not do for a compliment to Darcy, Caroline,'

cried her brother, 'because he does not write with ease. He

studies too much for words of four syllables. Do not you,

Darcy?'

 

'My style of writing is very different from yours.'

 

'Oh,' cried Miss Bingley, 'Charles writes in the most

careless way imaginable. He leaves out half his words, and

blots the rest.'

 

'My ideas flow so rapidly that I have not time to express

them; by which means my letters sometimes convey no ideas

at all to my correspondents.'

 

'Your humility, Mr. Bingley,' said Elizabeth, 'must disarm

reproof.'

 

'Nothing is more deceitful,' said Darcy, 'than the appear-

ance of humility. It is often only carelessness of opinion,

and sometimes an indirect boast.'

 

'And which of the two do you call my little recent piece

of modesty?'

 

'The indirect boast; for you are really proud of your

defects in writing, because you consider them as proceeding

from a rapidity, of thought and carelessness of execution,

which, if not estimable, you think at least highly interesting.

The power of doing anything with quickness is always much

prized by the possessor, and often without any attention to

the imperfection of the performance. When you told Mrs.

Bennet this morning, that if you ever resolved on quitting

Netherfield you should be gone in five minutes, you meant it

 

 [205]

 
{{prhprp206.jpg}}

 

to be a sort of panegyric, of compliment to yourself; and yet

what is there so very laudable in a precipitance which must

leave very necessary business undone, and can be of no real

advantage to yourself or any one else?'

 

'Nay,' cried Bingley, 'this is too much, to remember at

night all the foolish things that were said in the morning.

And yet, upon my honour, I believed what I said of myself

to be true, and I believe it at this moment. At least, there-

fore, I did not assume the character of needless precipitance

merely to show off before the ladies.'

 

'I daresay you believed it; but I am by no means con-

vinced that you would be gone with such celerity. Your

conduct would be quite as dependent on chance as that of

any man I know; and if, as you were mounting your horse, a

friend were to say, 'Bingley, you had better stay till next

week,' you would probably do it -- you would probably not go

-- and, at another word, might stay a month.'

 

'You have only proved by this,' cried Elizabeth, 'that Mr.

Bingley did not do justice to his own disposition. You have

shown him off now much more than he did himself.'

 

'I am exceedingly gratified,' said Bingley, 'by your con-

verting what my friend says into a compliment on the sweet-

ness of my temper. But I am afraid you are giving it a turn

which that gentleman did by no means intend; for he would

certainly think the better of me if, under such a circumstance,

I were to give a flat denial, and ride off as fast as I could.'

 

'Would Mr. Darcy then consider the rashness of your

original intention as atoned for by your obstinacy in adhering

to it?'

 

'Upon my word, I cannot exactly explain the matter --

Darcy must speak for himself.'

 

'You expect me to account for opinions which you choose

to call mine, but which I have never acknowledged. Allowing

the case, however, to stand according to your representation,

you must remember. Miss Bennet, that the friend who is

supposed to desire his return to the house, and the delay of

his plan, has merely desired it, asked it without offering one

argument in favour of its propriety.'

 

'To yield readily -- easily -- to the persuasion of a friend is

no merit with you.'

 

 [206]

 
{{prhprp207.jpg}}

 

 

'To yield without conviction is no compliment to the

understanding of either.'

 

'You appear to me, Mr. Darcy, to allow nothing for the

influence of friendship and affection. A regard for the re-

quester would often make one readily yield to a request,

without waiting for arguments to reason one into it. I am

not particularly speaking of such a case as you have supposed

about Mr. Bingley. We may as well wait, perhaps, till the

circumstance occurs, before we discuss the discretion of his

behaviour thereupon. But in general and ordinary cases,

between friend and friend, where one of them is desired by

the other to change a resolution of no very great moment,

should you think ill of that person for complying with the

desire, without waiting to be argued into it?'

 

'Will it not be advisable, before we proceed on this sub-

ject, to arrange with rather more precision the degree of

importance which is to appertain to this request, as well

as the degree of intimacy subsisting between the parties?'

 

'By all means,' cried Bingley; 'let us hear all the par-

ticulars, not forgetting their comparative height and size,

for that will have more weight in the argument. Miss Ben-

net, than you may be aware of. I assure you that if Darcy

were not such a great tall fellow, in comparison with myself,

I should not pay him half so much deference. I declare I

do not know a more awful object than Darcy on particular

occasions, and in particular places; at his own house espe-

cially, and of a Sunday evening, when he has nothing to do.'

 

Mr. Darcy smiled; but Elizabeth thought she could per-

ceive that he was rather offended, and therefore checked

her laugh. Miss' Bingley warmly resented the indignity he

had received, in an expostulation with her brother for talk-

ing such nonsense.

 

'I see your design, Bingley,' said his friend. 'You dislike

an argument, and want to silence this.'

 

'Perhaps I do. Arguments are too much like disputes.

If you and Miss Bennet will defer yours till I am out of the

room, I shall be very thankful; and then you may say what-

ever you like of me.'

 

'What you ask,' said Elizabeth, 'is no sacrifice on my

side; and Mr. Darcy had much better finish his letter.'

 

 [207]

 
{{prhprp208.jpg}}

 

 

Mr. Darcy took her advice, and did finish his letter.

 

When that business was over, he applied to Miss Bingley

and Elizabeth for the indulgence of some music. Miss

Bingley moved with alacrity to the pianoforte, and after

a polite request that Elizabeth would lead the way, which

the other as politely and more earnestly negatived, she seated

herself.

 

Mrs. Hurst sang with her sister; and while they were

thus employed, Elizabeth could not help observing, as she

turned over some music-books that lay on the instrument,

how frequently Mr. Darcy's eyes were fixed on her. She

hardly knew how to suppose that she could be an object of

admiration to so great a man, and yet that he should look at

her because he disliked her was still more strange. She

could only imagine, however, at last, that she drew his notice

because there was a something about her more wrong and

reprehensible, according to his ideas of right, than in any

other person present. The supposition did not pain her. She

liked him too little to care for his approbation.

 

After playing some Italian songs. Miss Bingley varied the

charm by a lively Scotch air; and soon afterwards Mr. Darcy,

drawing near Elizabeth, said to her, --

 

'Do not you feel a great inclination. Miss Bennet, to seize

such an opportunity of dancing a reel?'

 

She smiled, but made no answer. He repeated the ques-

tion, with some surprise at her silence.

 

'Oh,' said she, 'I heard you before; but I could not im-

mediately determine what to say in reply. You wanted me,

I know, to say "Yes," that you might have the pleasure of

despising my taste; but I always delight in overthrowing

those kind of schemes, and cheating a person of their pre-

meditated contempt. I have, therefore, made up my mind to

tell you that I do not want to dance a reel at all; and now

despise me if you dare.'

 

'Indeed I do not dare.'

 

Elizabeth, having rather expected to affront him, was

amazed at his gallantry; but there was a mixture of sweet-

ness and archness in her manner which made it difficult for

her to affront anybody, and Darcy had never been so be-

witched by any woman as he was by her. He really be-

 

 [208]

 
{{prhprp209.jpg}}

 

lieved that, were it not for the inferiority of her connec-

tions, he should be in some danger.

 

Miss Bingley saw, or suspected, enough to be jealous;

and her great anxiety for the recovery of her dear friend

Jane received some assistance from her desire of getting rid

of Elizabeth.

 

She often tried to provoke Darcy into disliking her guest,

by talking of their supposed marriage, and planning his

happiness in such an alliance.

 

'I hope,' said she, as they were walking together in the

shrubbery the next day, 'you will give your mother-in-law

a few hints, when this desirable event takes place, as to the

advantage of holding her tongue; and if you can compass it,

to cure the younger girls of running after the officers. And,

if I may mention so delicate a subject, endeavour to check

that little something, bordering on conceit and impertinence,

which your lady possesses.'

 

'Have you anything else to propose for my domestic

felicity?'

 

'Oh yes. Do let the portraits of your uncle and aunt

Philips be placed in the gallery at Pemberley. Put them

next to your great uncle the judge. They are in the same

profession, you know, only in different lines. As for your

Elizabeth's picture, you must not attempt to have it taken,

for what painter could do justice to those beautiful

eyes?'

 

'It would not be easy, indeed, to catch their expression;

but their colour and shape, and the eyelashes, so remarkably

fine, might be copied.'

 

At that moment they were met from another walk by

Mrs. Hurst and Elizabeth herself.

 

'I did not know that you intended to walk,' said Miss

Bingley, in some confusion lest they had been overheard.

 

'You used us abominably ill,' answered Mrs. Hurst 'run-

ning away without telling us that you were coming out.'

 

Then taking the disengaged arm of Mr. Darcy, she left

Elizabeth to walk by herself. The path just admitted three.

Mr. Darcy felt their rudeness, and immediately said. --

 

'This walk is not wide enough for our party. We had

better go into the avenue.'

 

 [209]

 
{{prhprp210.jpg}}

 

 

But Elizabeth, who had not the least inclination to remain

with them, laughingly answered, --

 

'No, no; stay where you are. You are charmingly grouped,

and appear to uncommon advantage. The picturesque would

be spoilt by admitting a fourth. Good-bye.'

 

She then ran gaily off, rejoicing, as she rambled about, in

the hope of being at home again in a day or two. Jane was

already so much recovered as to intend leaving her room for

a couple of hours that evening.

 

 [210]

 
{{prhprp211.jpg}}

 

 

 

 

Chapter XI

 

WHEN the ladies removed after dinner Elizabeth

ran up to her sister, and seeing her well guarded

from cold, attended her into the drawing-room,

where she was welcomed by her two friends with many

professions of pleasure; and Elizabeth had never seen them

so agreeable as they were during the hour which passed

before the gentlemen appeared. Their powers of conver-

sation were considerable. They could describe an enter-

tainment with accuracy, relate an anecdote with humour,

and laugh at their acquaintance with spirit.

 

But when the gentlemen entered, Jane was no longer the

first object; Miss Bingley's eyes were instantly turned towards

Darcy, and she had something to say to him before he had

advanced many steps. He addressed himself directly to Miss

Bennet with a polite congratulation; Mr. Hurst also made her

a slight bow, and said he was 'very glad'; but diffuseness

and warmth remained for Bingley's salutation. He was full

of joy and attention. The first half-hour was spent in piling

up the fire, lest she should suffer from the change of room;

and she removed, at his desire, to the other side of the fire-

place, that she might be farther from the door. He then sat

down by her, and talked scarcely to any one else. Elizabeth,

at work in the opposite corner, saw it all with great delight.

 

When tea was over Mr. Hurst reminded his sister-in-law

of the card-table-- but in vain. She had obtained private

intelligence that Mr. Darcy did not wish for cards, and Mr.

Hurst soon found even his open petition rejected. She as-

sured him that no one intended to play, and the silence of

the whole party on the subject seemed to justify her. Mr.

Hurst had, therefore, nothing to do but to stretch himself

on one of the sofas and go to sleep. Darcy took up a book.

Miss Bingley did the same; and Mrs. Hurst, principally occu-

pied in playing with her bracelets and rings, joined now and

then in her brother's conversation with Miss Bennet.

 

 [211]

 
{{prhprp212.jpg}}

 

 

Miss Bingley's attention was quite as much engaged in

watching Mr. Darcy's progress through his book, as in read-

ing her own; and she was perpetually either making some

inquiry, or looking at his page. She could not win him, how-

ever, to any conversation; he merely answered her question

and read on. At length, quite exhausted by the attempt to

be amused with her own book, which she had only chosen

because it was the second volume of his, she gave a great

yawn and said, 'How pleasant it is to spend an evening in

this way! I declare, after all, there is no enjoyment like

reading! How much sooner one tires of anything than of

a book! When I have a house of my own, I shall be miser-

able if I have not an excellent library!'

 

No one made any reply. She then yawned again, threw

aside her book, and cast her eyes round the room in quest of

some amusement; when, hearing her brother mentioning a

ball to Miss Bennet, she turned suddenly towards him and

said. --

 

'By the bye, Charles, are you really serious in meditating

a dance at Netherfield? I would advise you, before you

determine on it, to consult the wishes of the present party;

I am much mistaken if there are not some among us to whom

a ball would be rather a punishment than a pleasure.'

 

'If you mean Darcy.' cried her brother, 'he may go to bed.

if he chooses, before it begins; but as for the ball, it is quite

a settled thing, and as soon as Nicholls has made white soup

enough I shall send round my cards.'

 

'I should like balls infinitely better.' she replied, 'if they

were carried on in a different manner; but there is something

insufferably tedious in the usual process of such a meeting.

It would surely be much more rational if conversation in-

stead of dancing made the order of the day.'

 

'Much more rational, my dear Caroline, I daresay; but it

would not be near so much like a ball.'

 

Miss Bingley made no answer, and soon afterwards got up

and walked about the room.?Ier figure was elegant, and she

walked well; but Darcy, at whom it was all aimed, was still

inflexibly studious. In the desperation of her feelings she

resolved on one effort more; and, turning to Elizabeth,

said, --

 

 [212]

 
{{prhprp213.jpg}}

 

 

'Miss Eliza Bennet, let me persuade you to follow my

example, and take a turn about the room. I assure you it is

very refreshing after sitting so long in one attitude.'

 

Elizabeth was surprised, but agreed to it immediately.

Miss Bingley succeeded no less in the real object of her

civility: Mr. Darcy looked up. He was as much awake to

the novelty of attention in that quarter as Elizabeth herself

could be, and unconsciously closed his book. He was directly

invited to join their party, but he declined it, observing that

he could imagine but two motives for their choosing to walk

up and down the room together, with either of which motives

his joining them would interfere. What could he mean?

She was dying to know what could be his meaning

-- and asked Elizabeth whether she could at all understand

him.

 

'Not at all,' was her answer; 'but, depend upon it, he

means to be severe on us, and our surest way of disappointing

him will be to ask nothing about it.'

 

Miss Bingley, however, was incapable of disappointing Mr.

Darcy in anything, and persevered, therefore, in requiring an

explanation of his two motives.

 

'I have not the smallest objection to explaining them.' said

he, as soon as she allowed him to speak. 'You either choose

this method of passing the evening because you are in each

other's confidence, and have secret affairs to discuss, or be-

cause you are conscious that your figures appear to the

greatest advantage in walking: if the first, I should be com-

pletely in your way; and if the second, I can admire you

much better as I sit by the fire.'

 

'Oh, shocking!' cried Miss Bingley. 'I never heard any-

thing so abominable. How shall we punish him for such a

speech?'

 

'Nothing so easy, if you have but the inclination,' said

Elizabeth. 'We can all plague and punish one another.

Tease him -- laugh at him. Intimate as you are, you must

know how it is to be done.'

 

'But upon my honour I do not. I do assure you that my

intimacy has not yet taught me that. Tease calmness of

temper and presence of mind! No, no; I feel he may defy

us there. And as to laughter, we will not expose ourselves,

 

 [213]

 
{{prhprp214.jpg}}

 

if you please, by attempting to laugh without a subject.

Mr. Darcy may hug himself.'

 

'Mr. Darcy is not to be laughed at!' cried Elizabeth.

'That is an uncommon advantage, and uncommon I hope it

will continue, for it would be a great loss to me to have many

such acquaintance. I dearly love a laugh.'

 

'Miss Bingley,' said he, 'has given me credit for more

than can be. The wisest and best of men, -- nay, the wisest

and best of their actions, -- may be rendered ridiculous by a

person whose first object in life is a joke.'

 

'Certainly,' replied Elizabeth, 'there are such people, but I

hope I am not one of them. I hope I never ridicule what is

wise or good. Follies and nonsense, whims and inconsist-

encies, do divert me, I own, and I laugh at them whenever I

can. But these, I suppose, are precisely what you are without.'

 

'Perhaps that is not possible for any one. But it has been

the study of my life to avoid those weaknesses which often

expose a strong understanding to ridicule.'

 

'Such as vanity and pride.'

 

'Yes, vanity is a weakness indeed. But pride -- where

there is a real superiority of mind -- pride will be always

under good regulation.'

 

Elizabeth turned away to hide a smile.

 

'Your examination of Mr. Darcy is over, I presume,' said

Miss Bingley; 'and pray what is the result?'

 

'I am perfectly convinced by it that Mr. Darcy has no

defect. He owns it himself without disguise.'

 

'No,' said Darcy, 'I have made no such pretension. I

have faults enough, but they are not, I hope, of understand-

ing. My temper I dare not vouch for. It is, I believe, too

little yielding; certainly too little for the convenience of the

world. I cannot forget the follies and vices of others so soon

as I ought, nor their offences against myself. My feelings

are not puffed about with every attempt to move them. My

temper would perhaps be called resentful. My good opinion

once lost is lost for ever.'

 

'That is a failing, indeed!' cried Elizabeth. 'Implacable

resentment is a shade in a character. But you have chosen

your fault well. I really cannot laugh at it. You are safe

from me.'

 

 [214]

 
{{prhprp215.jpg}}

 

 

'There is, I believe, in every disposition a tendency to some

particular evil, a natural defect, which not even the best

education can overcome.'

 

'And your defect is a propensity to hate everybody.'

 

'And yours,' he replied, with a smile, 'is wilfully to mis-

understand them.'

 

'Do let us have a little music,' cried Miss Bingley, tired

of a conversation in which she had no share. 'Louisa, you

will not mind my waking Mr. Hurst.'

 

Her sister made not the smallest objection, and the piano-

forte was opened; and Darcy, after a few moments' recollec-

tion, was not sorry for it. He began to feel the danger of

paying Elizabeth too much attention.

 

 [215]

 
{{prhprp216.jpg}}

 

 

 

 

Chapter XII

 

IN consequence of an agreement between the sisters,

Elizabeth wrote the next morning to her mother, to beg

that the carriage might be sent for them in the course

of the day. But Mrs. Bennet, who had calculated on her

daughters remaining at Netherfield till the following Tues-

day, which would exactly finish Jane's week, could not bring

herself to receive them with pleasure before. Her answer,

therefore, was not propitious, at least not to Elizabeth's

wishes, for she was impatient to get home. Mrs. Bennet sent

them word that they could not possibly have the carriage

before Tuesday; and in her postscript it was added, that if

Mr. Bingley and his sister pressed them to stay longer, she

could spare them very well. Against staying longer, how-

ever, Elizabeth was positively resolved -- nor did she much

expect it would be asked; and fearful, on the contrary, of

being considered as intruding themselves needlessly long, she

urged Jane to borrow Mr. Bingley's carriage immediately,

and at length it was settled that their original design of leav-

ing Netherfield that morning should be mentioned, and the

request made.

 

The communication excited many professions of concern;

and enough was said of wishing them to stay at least till the

following day to work on Jane; and till the morrow their

going was deferred. Miss Bingley was then sorry that she

had proposed the delay; for her jealousy and dislike of one

sister much exceeded her affection for the other.

 

The master of the house heard with real sorrow that they

were to go so soon, and repeatedly tried to persuade Miss

Bennet that it would not be safe for her -- that she was not

enough recovered; but Jane was firm where she felt herself

to be right.

 

To Mr. Darcy it was welcome intelligence: Elizabeth had

been at Netherfield long enough. She attracted him more

than he liked; and Miss Bingley was uncivil to her, and more

 

 [216]

 
{{prhprp217.jpg}}

 

teasing that usual to himself. He wisely resolved to be

particularly careful that no sign of admiration should now

escape him -- nothing that could elevate her with the hope of

influencing his felicity; sensible that, if such an idea had been

suggested, his behaviour during the last day must have mate-

rial weight in confirming or crushing it. Steady to his pur-

pose, he scarcely spoke ten words to her through the whole

of Saturday; and though they were at one time left by them-

selves for half an hour, he adhered most conscientiously to

his book and would not even look at her.

 

On Sunday, after morning service, the separation, so

agreeable to almost all, took place. Miss Bingley's civility

to Elizabeth increased at last very rapidly, as well as her

affection for Jane; and when they parted, after assuring the

latter of the pleasure it would always give her to see her

either at Longbourn or Netherfield, and embracing her most

tenderly, she even shook hands with the former. Elizabeth

took leave of the whole party in the liveliest spirits.

 

They were not welcomed home very cordially by their

mother. Mrs. Bennet wondered at their coming, and thought

them very wrong to give so much trouble, and was sure Jane

would have caught cold again. But their father, though very

laconic in his expressions of pleasure, was really glad to see

them; he had felt their importance in the family circle. The

evening conversation, when they were all assembled, had lost

much of its animation, and almost all its sense, by the absence

of Jane and Elizabeth.

 

They found Mary, as usual, deep in the study of thorough

bass and human nature; and had some new extracts to ad-

mire, and some new observations of threadbare morality to

listen to. Catherine and Lydia had information for them of a

different sort. Much had been done, and much had been

said in the regiment since the preceding Wednesday; several

of the officers had dined lately with their uncle; a private had

been flogged, and it had actually been hinted that Colonel

Forster was going to be married.

 

 [217]

 
{{prhprp218.jpg}}

 

 

 

 

Chapter XIII

 

'I HOPE, my dear,' said Mr. Bennet to his wife, as they

I were at breakfast the next morning, 'that you have

ordered a good dinner to-day, because I have reason to

expect an addition to our family party.'

 

'Who do you mean, my dear? I know of nobody that is

coming, I am sure, unless Charlotte Lucas should happen to

call in; and I hope my dinners are good enough for her. I

do not believe she often sees such at home.'

 

'The person of whom I speak is a gentleman and a

stranger.' Mrs. Bennet's eyes sparkled. 'A gentleman and

a stranger! It is Mr. Bingley. I am sure. Why, Jane -- you

never dropped a word of this -- you sly thing! Well, I am

sure I shall be extremely glad to see Mr. Bingley. But -- good

Lord! how unlucky! there is not a bit of fish to be got to-day.

Lydia, my love, ring the bell. I must speak to Hill this

moment.'

 

'It is not Mr. Bingley,' said her husband; 'it is a person

whom I never saw in the whole course of my life.'

 

This roused a general astonishment; and he had the

pleasure of being eagerly questioned by his wife and five

daughters at once.

 

After amusing himself some time with their curiosity, he

thus explained:-- 'About a month ago I received this letter,

and about a fortnight ago I answered it; for I thought it a

case of some delicacy, and requiring early attention. It is

from my cousin, Mr. Collins, who, when I am dead, may turn

you all out of this house as soon as he pleases.'

 

'Oh, my dear,' cried his wife, 'I cannot bear to hear that

mentioned. Pray do not talk of that odious man. I do think

it is the hardest thing in the world that your estate should be

entailed away from your own children; and I am sure, if I

had been you, I should have tried long ago to do something

or other about it.'

 

 [218]

 
{{prhprp219.jpg}}

 

 

Jane and Elizabeth attempted to explain to her the nature

of an entail. They had often attempted it before: but it was

a subject on which Mrs. Bennet was beyond the reach of

reason; and she continued to rail bitterly against the cruelty

of settling an estate away from a family of five daughters, in

favour of a man whom nobody cared anything about.

 

'It certainly is a most iniquitous affair,' said Mr. Bennet;

'and nothing can clear Mr. Collins from the guilt of inherit-

ing Longbourn. But if you will listen to his letter, you may,

perhaps, be a little softened by his manner of expressing

himself.'

 

'No, that I am sure I shall not; and I think it was very

impertinent of him to write to you at all, and very hypo-

critical. I hate such false friends. Why could not he keep

on quarrelling with you, as his father did before him?'

 

'Why, indeed, he does seem to have had some filial scruples

on that head, as you will hear: --

 

'Hunsford, near Westerham, Kent, 15th October.

 

'Dear Sir -- The disagreement subsisting between yourself and my

late honoured father always gave me much uneasiness; and, since I

have had the misfortune to lose him, I have frequently wished to

heal the breach: but, for some time, I was kept back by my own

doubts, fearing lest it might seem disrespectful to his memory for

me to be on good terms with any one with whom it had always

pleased him to be at variance.' -- "There, Mrs. Bennet." -- 'My mind,

however, is now made up on the subject; for, having received ordina-

tion at Easter, I have been so fortunate as to be distinguished by

the patronage of the Right Honourable Lady Catherine de Bourgh,

widow of Sir Lewis de Bourgh, whose bounty and beneficence has

preferred me to the valuable rectory of this parish, where it shall

be my earnest endeavour to demean myself with grateful respect

towards her Ladyship, and be ever ready to perform those rites and

ceremonies which are instituted by the Church of England. As a

clergyman, moreover, I feel it my duty to promote and establish the

blessing of peace in all families within the reach of my influence;

and on these grounds I Hatter myself that my present overtures of

goodwill are highly commendable, and that the circumstance of my

being next in the entail of Longbourn estate will be kindly over-

looked on your side, and not lead you to reject the offered olive

branch. I cannot be otherwise than concerned at being the means

of injuring your amiable daughters, and beg leave to apologise for

it, as well as to assure you of my readiness to make them every

possible amends; but of this hereafter. If you should have no ob-

jection to receive me into your house, I propose myself the satisfac-

tion of waiting on you and your family, Monday, November 18th, by

 

 [219]

 
{{prhprp220.jpg}}

 

four o'clock, and shall probably trespass on your hospitality till the

Saturday se'nnight following, which I can do without any inconven-

ience, as Lady Catherine is far from objecting to my occasional

absence on a Sunday, provided that some other clergyman is engaged

to do the duty of the day. I remain, dear sir, with respectful compli-

ments to your lady and daughters, your well-wisher and friend,

 

'WILLIAM Collins.'

 

'At four o'clock, therefore, we may expect this peacemak-

ing gentleman.' said Mr. Bennet, as he folded up the letter.

'He seems to be a most conscientious and polite young man,

upon my word; and, I doubt not, will prove a valuable ac-

quaintance, especially if Lady Catherine should be so indul-

gent as to let him come to us again.'

 

'There is some sense in what he says about the girls, how-

ever; and, if he is disposed to make them any amends, I shall

not be the person to discourage him.'

 

'Though it is difficult,' said Jane, 'to guess in what way

he can mean to make us the atonement he thinks our due, the

wish is certainly to his credit.'

 

Elizabeth was chiefly struck with his extraordinary defer-

ence for Lady Catherine, and his kind intention of christen-

ing, marrying, and burying his parishioners whenever it were

required.

 

'He must be an oddity, I think,' said she. 'I cannot make

him out. There is something very pompous in his style.

And what can he mean by apologising for being next in the

entail? We cannot suppose he would help it, if he could.

Can he be a sensible man, sir?'

 

'No, my dear; I think not. I have great hopes of finding

him quite the reverse. There is a mixture of servility and

self-importance in his letter which promises well. I am im-

patient to see him.'

 

'In point of composition,' said Mary, 'his letter does not

seem defective. The idea of the olive branch perhaps is not

wholly new, yet I think it is well expressed.'

 

To Catherine and Lydia neither the letter nor its writer

was in any degree interesting. It was next to impossible that

their cousin should come in a scarlet coat, and it was now

some weeks since they had received pleasure from the society

of a man in any other colour. As for their mother. Mr.

Collins's letter had done away much of her ill-will, and she

 

 [220]

 
{{prhprp221.jpg}}

 

was preparing to see him with a degree of composure which

astonished her husband and daughters.

 

Mr. Collins was punctual to his time, and was received with

great politeness by the whole family. Mr. Bennet indeed said

little; but the ladies were ready enough to talk, and Mr.

Collins seemed neither in need of encouragement, nor inclined

to be silent himself. He was a tall, heavy-looking young man

of five-and-twenty. His air was grave and stately, and his

manners were very formal. He had not been long seated

before he complimented Mrs. Bennet on having so fine a

family of daughters, said he had heard much of their beauty,

but that, in this instance, fame had fallen short of the truth;

and added, that he did not doubt her seeing them all in due

time well disposed of in marriage. This gallantry was not

much to the taste of some of his hearers; but Mrs. Bennet,

who quarrelled with no compliments, answered most

readily, --

 

'You are very kind, sir, I am sure; and I wish with all my

heart it may prove so; for else they will be destitute enough.

Things are settled so oddly.'

 

'You allude, perhaps, to the entail of this estate.'

 

'Ah, sir, I do indeed. It is a grievous affair to my poor

girls, you must confess. Not that I mean to find fault with

you, for such things I know are all chance in this world.

There is no knowing how estates will go when once they

come to be entailed.'

 

'I am very sensible, madam, of the hardship to my fair

cousins, and could say much on the subject, but that I am

cautious of appearing forward and precipitate. But I can

assure the young ladies that I come prepared to admire them.

At present I will not say more, but perhaps, when we are

better acquainted '

 

He was interrupted by a summons to dinner; and the girls

smiled on each other. They were not the only objects of Mr.

Collins's admiration. The hall, the dining-room, and all its

furniture, were examined and praised; and his commendation

of everything would have touched Mrs. Bennet's heart, but

for the mortifying supposition of his viewing it all as his own

future property. The dinner, too, in its turn, was highly ad-

mired; and he begged to know to which of his fair cousins

 

 [221]

 
{{prhprp222.jpg}}

 

the excellence of its cookery was owing. But here he was set

right by Mrs. Bennet, who assured him, with some asperity,

that they were very well able to keep a good cook, and that

her daughters had nothing to do in the kitchen. He begged

pardon for having displeased her. In a softened tone she

declared herself not at all offended; but he continued to apol-

ogise for about a quarter of an hour.

 

 [222]

 
{{prhprp223.jpg}}

 

 

 

 

Chapter XIV

 

DURING dinner, Mr. Bennet scarcely spoke at all; but

when the servants were withdrawn, he thought it

time to have some conversation with his guest, and

therefore started a subject in which he expected him to shine,

by observing that he seemed very fortunate in his patroness.

Lady Catherine de Bourgh's attention to his wishes, and con-

sideration for his comfort, appeared very remarkable. Mr.

Bennet could not have chosen better. Mr. Collins was elo-

quent in her praise. The subject elevated him to more than

usual solemnity of manner; and with a most important aspect

he protested that 'he had never in his life witnessed such be-

haviour in a person of rank -- such affability and condescen-

sion, as he had himself experienced from Lady Catherine.

She had been graciously pleased to approve of both the dis-

courses which he had already had the honour of preaching

before her. She had also asked him twice to dine at Rosings,

and had sent for him only the Saturday before, to make up

her pool of quadrille in the evening. Lady Catherine was

reckoned proud by many people, he knew, but he had never

seen anything but affability in her. She had always spoken

to him as she would to any other gentleman: she made not

the smallest objection to his joining in the society of the

neighbourhood, nor to his leaving his parish occasionally for

a week or two to visit his relations. She had even con-

descended to advise him to marry as soon as he could, pro-

vided he chose with discretion; and had once paid him a

visit in his humble parsonage, where she had perfectly ap-

proved all the alterations he had been making, and had even

vouchsafed to suggest some herself, -- some shelves in the

closets upstairs.'

 

'That is all very proper and civil, i am sure.' said Mrs.

Bennet, 'and I daresay she is a very agreeable woman. It

is a pity that great ladies in general are not more like her.

Does she live near you, sir?'

 

 [223]

 
{{prhprp224.jpg}}

 

 

'The garden in which stands my humble abode is separated

only by a lane from Rosings Park, her Ladyship's residence.'

 

'I think you said she was a widow, sir? has she any

family?'

 

'She has one only daughter, the heiress of Rosings, and of

very extensive property.'

 

'Ah,' cried Mrs. Bennet, shaking her head, 'then she is

better off than many girls. And what sort of young lady is

she? Is she handsome?'

 

'She is a most charming young lady, indeed. Lady

Catherine herself says that, in point of true beauty. Miss de

Bourgh is far superior to the handsomest of her sex; because

there is that in her features which marks the young woman

of distinguished birth. She is unfortunately of a sickly con-

stitution, which has prevented her making that progress in

many accomplishments which she could not otherwise have

failed of, as I am informed by the lady who superintended

her education, and who still resides with them. But she is

perfectly amiable, and often condescends to drive by my

humble abode in her little phaeton and ponies.'

 

'Has she been presented? I do not remember her name

among the ladies at court.'

 

'Her indifferent state of health unhappily prevents her

being in town: and by that means, as I told Lady Catherine

myself one day, has deprived the British Court of its brightest

ornament. Her Ladyship seemed pleased with the idea: and

you may imagine that I am happy on every occasion to offer

those little delicate compliments which are always acceptable

to ladies. I have more than once observed to Lady Catherine,

that her charming daughter seemed born to be a duchess;

and that the most elevated rank, instead of giving her con-

sequence, would be adorned by her. These are the kind

of little things which please her Ladyship, and it is a

sort of attention which I conceive myself peculiarly bound

to pay.'

 

'You judge very properly,' said Mr. Bennet; 'and it is happy

for you that you possess the talent of flattering with delicacy.

May I ask whether these pleasing attentions proceed from

the impulse of the moment, or are the result of previous

study?'

 

 [224]

 
{{prhprp225.jpg}}

 

 

'They arise chiefly from what is passing at the time: and

though I sometimes amuse myself with suggestions and ar-

ranging such little elegant compliments as may be adapted

to ordinary occasions, I always wish to give them as unstudied

an air as possible.'

 

Mr. Bennet's expectations were fully answered. His cousin

was as absurd as he had hoped; and he listened to him with

the keenest enjoyment, maintaining at the same time the

most resolute composure of countenance, and, except in an

occasional glance at Elizabeth, requiring no partner in his

pleasure.

 

By tea-time, however, the dose had been enough, and Mr.

Bennet was glad to take his guest into the drawing-room

again, and when tea was over, glad to invite him to read

aloud to the ladies. Mr. Collins readily assented, and a book

was produced; but on beholding it (for everything announced

it to be from a circulating library) he started back, and,

begging pardon, protested that he never read novels. Kitty

stared at him, and Lydia exclaimed. Other books were

produced, and after some deliberation he chose Fordyce's

Sermons. Lydia gaped as he opened the volume: and before

he had, with very monotonous solemnity, read three pages,

she interrupted him with, --

 

'Do you know, mamma, that my uncle Philips talks of

turning away Richard? and if he does. Colonel Forster will

hire him. My aunt told me so herself on Saturday. I shall

walk to Meryton to-morrow to hear more about it, and to ask

when Mr. Denny comes back from town.'

 

Lydia was bid by her two eldest sisters to hold her tongue;

but Mr. Collins, much offended, laid aside his book, and

said. --

 

'I have often observed how little young ladies are in-

terested by books of a serious stamp, though written solely

for their benefit. It amazes me, I confess; for certainly there

ran be nothing so advantageous to them as instruction. But

I will no longer importune my young cousin.'

 

Then turning to Mr. Bennet, he offered himself as his an-

tagonist at backgammon. Mr, Bennet accepted the challenge,

observing that he acted very wisely in leaving the girls to

their own trifling amusements. Mrs. Bennet and her daugh-

 

 [225]

 
{{prhprp226.jpg}}

 

ters apologised most civilly for Lydia's interruption, and

promised that it should not occur again, if he would resume

his book; but Mr. Collins, after assuring them that he bore

his young cousin no ill-will, and should never resent her be-

haviour as any affront, seated himself at another table with

Mr. Bennet, and prepared for backgammon.

 

 [226]

 
{{prhprp227.jpg}}

 

 

 

 

Chapter XV

 

MR. COLLINS was not a sensible man, and the de-

ficiency of nature had been but little assisted by

education or society; the greatest part of his life

having been spent under the guidance of an illiterate and

miserly father; and though he belonged to one of the univer-

sities, he had merely kept the necessary terms without form-

ing at it any useful acquaintance. The subjection in which

his father had brought him up had given him originally great

humility of manner; but it was now a good deal counteracted

by the self-conceit of a weak head, living in retirement, and

the consequential feelings of early and unexpected prosperity.

A fortunate chance had recommended him to Lady Catherine

de Bourgh when the living of Munsford was vacant; and

the respect which he felt for her high rank, and his veneration

for her as his patroness, mingling with a very good opinion

of himself, of his authority as a clergyman, and his right as a

rector, made him altogether a mixture of pride and obse-

quiousness, self-importance and humility.

 

Having now a good house and a very sufficient income,

he intended to marry: and in seeking a reconciliation with

the Longbourn family he had a wife in view, as he meant

to choose one of the daughters, if he found them as hand-

some and amiable as they were represented by common re-

port. This was his plan of amends -- of atonement -- for in-

heriting their father's estate; and he thought it an excellent

one, full of eligibility and suitableness, and excessively gen-

erous and disinterested on his own part.

 

His plan did not vary on seeing them. Miss Bennet's lovely

face confirmed his views, and established all his strictest

notions of what was due to seniority; and for the first eve-

ning she was his settled choice. The next morning, however,

made an alteration; for in a quarter of an hour's tete-a-tete

with Mrs. Bennet before breakfast, a conversation beginning

with his parsonage-house, and leading naturally to the avowal

 

 [227]

 
{{prhprp228.jpg}}

 

of his hopes that a mistress for it might be found at Long-

bourn, produced from her, amid very complaisant smiles and

general encouragement, a caution against the very Jane he

had fixed on. 'As to her younger daughters, she could not

take upon her to say -- she could not positively answer -- but

she did not know of any prepossession; -- her eldest daughter

she must just mention -- she felt it incumbent on her to hint,

was likely to be very soon engaged.'

 

Mr. Collins had only to change from Jane to Elizabeth --

and it was soon done -- done while Mrs. Bennet was stirring

the fire. Elizabeth, equally next to Jane in birth and beauty,

succeeded her of course.

 

Mrs. Bennet treasured up the hint, and trusted that she

might soon have two daughters married; and the man whom

she could not bear to speak of the day before was now high

in her good graces.

 

Lydia's intention of walking to Meryton was not forgot-

ten: every sister except Mary agreed to go with her; and

Mr. Collins was to attend them, at the request of Mr. Bennet.

who was most anxious to get rid of him, and have his library

to himself; for thither Mr. Collins had followed him after

breakfast, and there he would continue, nominally engaged

with one of the largest folios in the collection, but really talk-

ing to Mr. Bennet, with little cessation, of his house and

garden at Hunsford. Such doings discomposed Mr, Bennet

exceedingly. In his library he had been always sure of leisure

and tranquillity: and though prepared, as he told Elizabeth,

to meet with folly and conceit in every other room in the

house, he was used to be free from them there: his civility,

therefore, was most prompt in inviting Mr. Collins to join his

daughters in their walk: and Mr. Collins, being in fact much

better fitted for a walker than a reader, was extremely well

pleased to close his large book, and go.

 

In pompous nothings on his side, and civil assents on that

of his cousins, their time passed till they entered Meryton.

The attention of the younger ones was then no longer to be

gained by him. Their eyes were immediately wandering up

the street in quest of the officers, and nothing less than a very

smart bonnet indeed, or a really new muslin in a shop window

could recall them.

 

 [228]

 
{{prhprp229.jpg}}

 

 

But the attention of every lady was soon caught by a

young man, whom they had never seen before, of most gentle-

manlike appearance, walking with an officer on the other side

of the way. The officer was the very Mr. Denny concerning

whose return from London Lydia came to inquire, and he

bowed as they passed. All were struck with the stranger's

air, all wondered who he could be: and Kitty and Lydia,

determined if possible to find out, led the way across the

street, under pretence of wanting something in an opposite

shop, and fortunately had just gained the pavement, when

the two gentlemen, turning back, had reached the same spot.

Mr. Denny addressed them directly, and entreated permission

to introduce his friend, Dr. Wickham, who had returned with

him the day before from town, and, he was happy to say,

had accepted a commission in their corps. This was exactly

as it should be: for the young man wanted only regimentals

to make him completely charming. His appearance was

greatly in his favour; he had all the best parts of beauty, a

fine countenance, a good figure, and very pleasing address.

The introduction was followed up on his side by a happy

readiness of conversation -- a readiness at the same time per-

fectly correct and unassuming; and the whole party were

still standing and talking together very agreeably, when the

sound of horses drew their notice, and Darcy and Bingley

were seen riding down the street. On distinguishing the

ladies of the group the two gentlemen came directly towards

them, and began the usual civilities. Bingley was the prin-

cipal spokesman, and Miss Bennet the principal object. It

was then, he said, on his way to Longbourn on purpose to

inquire after her. Mr. Darcy corroborated it with a bow.

and was beginning to determine not to fix his eyes on Eliza-

beth, when they were suddenly arrested by the sight of the

stranger, and Elizabeth happening to sec the countenance of

both as they looked at each other, was all astonishment at

the effect of the meeting. Roth changed colour, one looked

white, the other red. Mr. Wickham, after a few moments,

touched his hat -- a salutation which Mr. Darcy just deigned

to return. What could be the meaning of it? It was

impossible to imagine: it was impossible not to long to

know.

 

 [229]

 
{{prhprp230.jpg}}

 

 

In another minute Mr. Bingley, but without seeming to have

noticed what passed, took leave and rode on with his friend.

 

Mr. Denny and Mr. Wickham walked with the young

ladies to the door of Mr. Philips's house, and then made their

bows, in spite of Miss Lydia's pressing entreaties that they

would come in, and even in spite of Mrs. Philips's throwing

up the parlour window, and loudly seconding the invitation.

 

Mrs. Philips was always glad to see her nieces; and the

two eldest, from their recent absence, were particularly wel-

come: and she was eagerly expressing her surprise at their

sudden return home, which, as their own carriage had not

fetched them, she should have known nothing about if she

had not happened to see Mr. Jones's shop-boy in the street,

who had told her that they were not to send any more

draughts to Netherfield, because the Miss Bennets were come

away, when her civility was claimed towards Mr. Collins by

Jane's introduction of him. She received him with her very

best politeness, which he returned with as much more, apolo-

gising for his intrusion without any previous acquaintance

with her, which he could not help flattering himself however

might be justified by his relationship to the young ladies who

introduced him to her notice. Mrs. Philips was quite awed

by such an excess of good breeding; but her contemplation

of one stranger was soon put to an end to by exclamations and

inquiries about the other, of whom, however, she could only

tell her nieces what they already knew, that Mr. Denny had

brought him from London, and that he was to have a lieu-

tenant's commission in the shire. She had been watch-

ing him the last hour, she said, as he walked up and down the

street, and had Mr. Wickham appeared. Kitty and Lydia

would certainly have continued the occupation; but unluckily

no one passed the windows now except a few of the officers,

who, in comparison with the stranger, were become 'stupid,

disagreeable fellows.' Some of them were to dine with the

Philipses the next day, and their aunt promised to make her

husband call on Mr. Wickham, and give him an invitation

also, if the family, from Longbourn would come in the eve-

ning. This was agreed to: and Mrs. Philips protested that

they would have a nice comfortable noisy game of lottery

tickets, and a little bit of hot supper afterwards. The pros-

 

 [230]

 
{{prhprp231.jpg}}

 

pect of such delights was very cheering, and they parted in

mutual good spirits. Mr. Collins repeated his apologies in

quitting the room, and was assured, with unwearying civility,

that they were perfectly needless.

 

As they walked home. Elizabeth related to Jane what she

had seen pass between the two gentlemen; but though Jane

would have defended either or both, had they appeared to

be wrong, she could no more explain such behaviour than

her sister.

 

Mr. Collins on his return highly gratified Mrs. Bennet by

admiring Mrs. Philips's manners and politeness. He pro-

tested that, except Lady Catherine and her daughter, he had

never seen a more elegant woman; for she had not only

received him with the utmost civility, but had even pointedly

included him in her invitation for the next evening, although

utterly unknown to her before. Something, he supposed,

might be attributed to his connection with them, but yet he

had never met with so much attention in the whole course

of his life.

 

 [231]

 
{{prhprp232.jpg}}

 

 

 

 

Chapter XVI

 

AS no objection was made the young people's engage-

ment with their aunt, and all Mr. Collins's scruples

of leaving Mr. and Mrs. Bennet for a single eve-

ning during his visit were most steadily resisted, the coach

conveyed him and his five cousins at a suitable hour to Mery-

ton; and the girls had the pleasure of hearing, as they

entered the drawing-room, that Mr. Wickham had accepted

their uncle's invitation, and was then in the house.

 

When this information was given, and they had all taken

their seats, Mr. Collins was at leisure to look around him

and admire, and he was so much struck with the size and

furniture of the apartment, that he declared he might almost

have supposed himself in the small summer breakfast, par-

lour at Rosings; a comparison that did not at first convey

much gratification; but when Mrs. Philips understood from

him what Rosings was, and who was its proprietor, when

she had listened to the description of only one of Lady Cath-

erine's drawing-rooms, and found that the chimney-piece

alone had cost eight hundred pounds, she felt all the force

of the compliment, and would hardly have resented a com-

parison with the housekeeper's room.

 

In describing to her all the grandeur of Lady Catherine

and her mansion, with occasional digressions in praise of

his own humble abode, and the improvements it was receiv-

ing, he was happily employed until the gentlemen joined

them; and he found in Mrs. Philips a very attentive listener,

whose opinion of his consequence increased with what she

heard, and who was resolving to retail it all among her

neighbours as soon as she could. To the girls, who could

not listen to their cousin, and who had nothing to do but

to wish for an instrument, and examine their own indif-

ferent imitations of china on the mantelpiece, the interval of

waiting appeared very long. It was over at last, however.

The gentlemen did approach: and when Mr. Wickham

walked into the room, Elizabeth felt that she had neither

 

 [232]

 
{{prhprp233.jpg}}

 

been seeing him before, nor thinking of him since, with

the smallest degree of unreasonable admiration. The offi-

cers of the shire were in general a very creditable, gen-

tlemanlike set, and the best of them were of the present

party; but Mr. Wickham was as far beyond them all in

person, countenance, air, and walk, as they were superior

to the broad-faced stuffy uncle Philips, breathing port wine,

who followed them into the room.

 

Mr. Wickham was the happy man towards whom almost

every female eye was turned, and Elizabeth was the happy

woman by whom he finally seated himself; and the agree-

able manner in which he immediately fell into conversation,

though it was only on its being a wet night, and on the

probability of a rainy season, made her feel that the com-

monest, dullest, most threadbare topic might be rendered in-

teresting by the skill of the speaker.

 

With such rivals for the notice of the fair as Mr. Wick-

ham and the officers, Mr. Collins seemed to sink into in-

significance; to the young ladies he certainly was nothing;

but he had still at intervals a kind listener in Mrs. Philips,

and was, by her watchfulness, most abundantly supplied with

coffee and muffin.

 

When the card tables were placed, he had an opportunity

of obliging her, in return, by sitting down to whist.

 

'I know little of the game at present.' said he, 'but I

shall be glad to improve myself; for in my situation of life--'

Mrs. Philips was very thankful for his compliance,

but could not wait for his reason.

 

Mr. Wickham did not play at whist, and with ready de-

light was he received at the other table between Elizabeth

and Lydia. At first there seemed danger of Lydia's en-

grossing him entirely, for she was a most determined talker;

but being likewise extremely fond of lottery tickets, she

soon grew loo much interested in the game, too eager in

making bets and exclaiming after prizes, to have attention

for any one in particular. Allowing for the common de-

mands of the game, Mr. Wickham was therefore at leisure

to talk to Elizabeth, and she was very willing to hear him,

though what she chiefly wished to hear she could not hope

to be told, the history of his acquaintance with Mr. Darcy.

 

 [233]

 
{{prhprp234.jpg}}

 

She dared not even mention that gentleman. Her curiosity,

however, was unexpectedly relieved. Mr. Wickham began

the subject himself. He inquired how far Netherfield was

from Meryton; and, after receiving her answer, asked in a

hesitating manner how long Mr. Darcy had been staying

there.

 

'About a month,' said Elizabeth; and then, unwilling to let

the subject drop, added, 'he is a man of very large property

in Derbyshire, I understand.'

 

'Yes,' replied Wickham; 'his estate there is a noble one.

A clear ten thousand per annum. You could not have met

with a person more capable of giving you certain informa-

tion on that head than myself -- for I have been connected

with his family, in a particular manner, from my infancy.'

 

Elizabeth could not but look surprised.

 

'You may well be surprised. Miss Bennet, at such an as-

sertion, after seeing, as you probably might, the very cold

manner of our meeting yesterday. Are you much acquainted

with Mr. Darcy?'

 

'As much as I ever wish to be,' cried Elizabeth, warmly.

'I have spent four days in the same house with him, and I

think him very disagreeable.'

 

'I have no right to give my opinion,' said Wickham, 'as

to his being agreeable or otherwise. I am not qualified to

form one. I have known him too long and too well to be

a fair judge. It is impossible for me to be impartial. But

I believe your opinion of him would in general astonish --

and, perhaps, you would not express it quite so strongly

anywhere else. Here you are in your own family.'

 

'Upon my word I say no more here than I might say in

any house in the neighbourhood, except Netherfield. He is

not at all liked in Hertfordshire. Everybody is disgusted

with his pride. You will not find him more favourably spoken

of by any one.'

 

'I cannot pretend to be sorry,' said Wickham, after a short

interruption, 'that he or that any man should not be esti-

mated beyond their deserts; but with him I believe it does

not often happen. The world is blinded by his fortune and

consequence, or frightened by his high and imposing man-

ners, and sees him only as he chooses to be seen.'

 

 [234]

 
{{prhprp235.jpg}}

 

 

'I should take him, even on slight acquaintance, to be

an ill-tempered man.' Wickham only shook his head.

 

'I wonder,' said he, at the next opportunity of speaking,

'whether he is likely to be in this country much longer.'

 

'I do not at all know; but I heard nothing of his going

away when I was at Netherfield. I hope your plans in favour

of the shire will not be affected by his being in the

neighbourhood.'

 

'Oh no -- it is not for me to be driven away by Air. Darcy.

If he wishes to avoid seeing me, he must go. We are not

on friendly terms, and it always gives me pain to meet him,

but I have no reason for avoiding him but what I might

proclaim to all the world -- a sense of very great ill usage,

and most painful regrets at his being what he is. His father.

Miss Bennet, the late Mr. Darcy, was one of the best men

that ever breathed, and the truest friend I ever had; and I

can never be in company with this Mr. Darcy without being

grieved to the soul by a thousand tender recollections. His

behaviour to myself has been scandalous; but I verily be-

lieve I could forgive him anything and everything, rather

than his disappointing the hopes and disgracing the memory,

of his father.'

 

Elizabeth found the interest of the subject increase, and

listened with all her heart; but the delicacy of it prevented

further inquiry.

 

Mr. Wickham began to speak on more general topics,

Meryton, the neighbourhood, the society, appearing highly

pleased with all that he had yet seen, and speaking of the

latter, especially, with gentle but very intelligible gallantry.

 

'It was the prospect of constant society, and good society,'

he added, 'which was my chief inducement to enter the

shire. I know it to be a most respectable, agree-

able corps; and my friend Denny tempted me further by

his account of their present quarters, and the very great at-

tentions and excellent acquaintance Meryton had procured

them. Society, I own, is necessary to me. I have been a

disappointed man, and my spirits will not bear solitude. I

must have employment and society. A military life is not

what I was intended for, but circumstances have now made

it eligible. The church ought to have been my profession--

 

 [235]

 
{{prhprp236.jpg}}

 

I was brought up for the church; and I should at this time

have been in possession of a most valuable living, had it

pleased the gentleman we were speaking of just now.'

 

'Indeed!'

 

'Yes -- the late Mr. Darcy bequeathed me the next presen-

tation of the best living in his gift. He was my godfather,

and excessively attached to me. I cannot do justice to his

kindness. He meant to provide for me amply, and thought

he had done it; but when the living fell, it was given else-

where.'

 

'Good heavens!' cried Elizabeth; 'but how could that be?

How could his will be disregarded? Why did not you seek

legal redress?'

 

'There was just such an informality in the terms of the

bequest as to give me no hope from law. A man of honour

could not have doubted the intention, but Mr. Darcy chose

to doubt it -- or to treat it as a merely conditional recom-

mendation, and to assert that I had forfeited all claim to it

by extravagance, imprudence, in short, anything or nothing.

Certain it is that the living became vacant two years ago,

exactly as I was of an age to hold it, and that it was given

to another man; and no less certain is it, that I cannot accuse

myself of having really done anything to deserve to lose it.

I have a warm unguarded temper, and I may perhaps have

sometimes spoken my opinion of him, and to him, too freely.

I can recall nothing worse. But the fact is, that we are

very different sort of men, and that he hates me.'

 

'This is quite shocking! He deserves to be publicly dis-

graced.'

 

'Some time or other he will be -- but it shall not be by vie.

Till I can forget his father, I can never defy or expose

him.'

 

Elizabeth honoured him for such feelings, and thought him

handsomer than ever as he expressed them.

 

'But what,' said she, after a pause, 'can have been his

motive? what can have induced him to behave so cruelly?'

 

'A thorough, determined dislike of me-- a dislike which I

cannot but attribute in some measure to jealousy. Had the

late Mr. Darcy liked me less, his son might have borne

with me better; but his father's uncommon attachment to

 

 [236]

 
{{prhprp237.jpg}}

 

me irritated him, I believe, very early in life. He had not

a temper to bear the sort of competition in which we stood --

the sort of preference which was often given me.'

 

'I had not thought Mr. Darcy so bad as this -- though I

have never liked him, I had not thought so very ill of him --

I had supposed him to be despising his fellow-creatures in

general, but did not suspect him of descending to such

malicious revenge, such injustice, such inhumanity as this!'

 

After a few minutes' reflection, however, she continued, --

'I do remember his boasting one day, at Netherfield, of

the implacability of his resentments; of his having an unfor-

giving temper. His disposition must be dreadful.'

 

'I will not trust myself on the subject,' replied Wickham:

'I can hardly be just to him.'

 

Elizabeth was again deep in thought, and after a time

exclaimed, 'To treat in such a manner the godson, the

friend, the favourite of his father!' She could have added,

'A young man, too, like yon, whose very countenance may

vouch for your being amiable.' But she contented herself

with -- 'And one, too, who had probably been his own com-

panion from childhood, connected together, as I think you

said, in the closest manner.'

 

'We were born in the same parish, within the same park;

the greatest part of our youth was passed together: in-

mates of the same house, sharing the same amusements,

objects of the same parental care. My father began life

in the profession which your uncle, Mr. Philips, appears to

do so much credit to: but he gave up everything to be of

use to the late Mr. Darcy, and devoted all his time to the

care of the Pemberley property. He was most highly es-

teemed by Air. Darcy, a most intimate, confidential friend.

Mr. Darcy often acknowledged himself to be under the

greatest obligations to my father's active superintendence;

and when, immediately before my father's death, Mr. Darcy

gave him a voluntary promise of providing for me, I am

convinced that he felt it to be as much a debt of gratitude

to him as of affection to myself.'

 

'How strange!' cried Elizabeth. 'How abominable! I

wonder that the very pride of this Mr. Darcy has not

made him just to you. If from no better motive, that he

 

 [237]

 
{{prhprp238.jpg}}

 

should not have been too proud to be dishonest, -- for dis-

honesty I must call it.'

 

'It is wonderful,' replied Wickham; 'for almost all his

actions may be traced to pride; and pride has often been

his best friend. It has connected him nearer with virtue

than any other feeling. But we are none of us consistent;

and in his behaviour to me there were stronger impulses

even than pride.'

 

'Can such abominable pride as his have ever done him

good?'

 

'Yes; it has often led him to be liberal and generous;

to give his money freely, to display hospitality, to assist

his tenants, and relieve the poor. Family pride, and filial

pride, for he is very proud of what his father was, have

done this. Not to appear to disgrace his family, to degen-

erate from the popular qualities, or lose the influence of

the Pemberley House, is a powerful motive. He has also

brotherly pride, which, with some brotherly affection, makes

him a very kind and careful guardian of his sister; and

you will hear him generally cried up as the most atten-

tive and best of brothers.'

 

'What sort of a girl is Miss Darcy?'

 

He shook his head. 'I wish I could call her amiable.

It gives me pain to speak ill of a Darcy; but she is too

much like her brother, -- very, very proud. As a child, she

was affectionate and pleasing, and extremely fond of me;

and I have devoted hours and hours to her amusement. But

she is nothing to me now. She is a handsome girl, about

fifteen or sixteen, and, I understand, highly accomplished.

Since her father's death her home has been London, where

a lady lives with her, and superintends her education.'

 

After many pauses and many trials of other subjects,

Elizabeth could not help reverting once more to the first,

and saying, --

 

'I am astonished at his intimacy with Mr. Bingley. How

can Mr. Bingley, who seems good-humour itself, and is, I

really believe, truly amiable, be in friendship with such a

man? How can they suit each other? Do you know Mr.

Bingley?'

 

'Not at all.'

 

 [238]

 
{{prhprp239.jpg}}

 

 

'He is a sweet-tempered, amiable, charming man. He

cannot know what Mr. Darcy is.'

 

'Probably not; but Mr. Darcy can please where he chooses.

He does not want abilities. He can be a conversible com-

panion if he thinks it worth his while. Among those who

are at all his equals in consequence, he is a very different

man from what he is to the less prosperous. His pride never

deserts him: but with the rich he is liberal-minded, just,

sincere, rational, honourable, and, perhaps, agreeable, -- allow-

ing something for fortune and figure.'

 

The whist party soon afterwards breaking up, the players

gathered round the other table, and Mr. Collins took his

station between his cousin Elizabeth and Mrs. Philips. The

usual inquiries as to his success were made by the latter. It

had not been very great; he had lost every point; but when

Mrs. Philips began to express her concern thereupon, he

assured her, with much earnest gravity, that it was not of

the least importance; that he considered the money as a

mere trifle, and begged she would not make herself uneasy.

 

'I know very well, madam,' said he, that when persons

sit down to a card table they must take their chance of these

things, -- and happily I am not in such circumstances as to

make five shillings any object. There are, undoubtedly, many

who could not say the same; but, thanks to Lady Catherine

de Bourgh, I am removed far beyond the necessity of regard-

ing little matters.'

 

Mr. W'ickham's attention was caught; and after observing

Mr. Collins for a few moments, he asked Elizabeth in a low

voice whether her relations were very intimately acquainted

with the family of de Bourgh.

 

'Lady Catherine de Bourgh,' she replied, 'has very lately

given him a living. I hardly know how Mr. Collins was first

introduced to her notice, but he certainly has not known her

long.'

 

'You know of course that Lady Catherine de Bourgh and

Lady Anne Darcy were sisters; consequently that she is aunt

to the present Mr. Darcy.'

 

'No, indeed. I did not. I knew nothing at all of Lady

Catherine's connections. I never heard of her existence till

the day before yesterday.'

 

 [239]

 
{{prhprp240.jpg}}

 

 

'Her daughter. Miss de Bourgh, will have a very large

fortune, and it is believed that she and her cousin will unite

the two estates.'

 

This information made Elizabeth smile, as she thought

of poor Miss Bingley. Vain indeed must be all her attentions,

vain and useless her affection for his sister and her praise

of himself, if he were already self-destined to another.

 

'Mr. Collins.' said she, 'speaks highly Loth of Lady

Catherine and her daughter; but, from some particulars that

he has related of her Ladyship, I suspect his gratitude mis-

leads him; and that, in spite of her being his patroness, she

is an arrogant, conceited woman.'

 

'I believe her to be both in a great degree,' replied Wick-

ham: I have not seen her for many years; but I very well

remember that I never liked her, and that her manners were

dictatorial and insolent. She has the reputation of being

remarkably sensible and clever; but I rather believe she de-

rives part of her abilities from her rank and fortune, part

from her authoritative manner, and the rest from the pride

of her nephew, who chooses that every one connected with

him should have an understanding of the first class.'

 

Elizabeth allowed that he had given a very rational ac-

count of it, and they continued talking together with mutual

satisfaction till supper put an end to cards, and gave the rest

of the ladies their share of Mr. Wickham's attentions. There

could be no conversation in the noise of Mrs. Philips's sup-

per party, but his manners, recommended him to everybody.

Whatever he said, was said well; and whatever he did, done

gracefully. Elizabeth went away with her head full of him.

She could think of nothing but of Mr, Wickham, and of

what he had told her, all the way home; but there was not

time for her even to mention his name as they went, for

neither Lydia nor Mr. Collins was once silent. Lydia talked

incessantly of lottery tickets, of the fish she had lost and the

fish she had won: and Mr. Collins, in describing the civility

of Mr. and Mrs. Philips, protesting that he did not in the least

regard his losses at whist, enumerating all the dishes at sup-

per, and repeatedly fearing that he crowded his cousins, had

more to say than he could well manage before the carriage

stopped at Longbourn House.

 

 [240]

 
{{prhprp241.jpg}}

 

 

 

 

Chapter XVII

 

ELIZABETH related to Jane, the next day, what had

passed between Mr. Wickham and herself. Jane lis-

tened with astonishment and concern: she knew not

how to believe that Mr. Darcy could be so unworthy of Mr.

Bingley's regard; and yet it was not in her nature to question

the veracity of a young man of such amiable appearance as

Wickham. The possibility of his having really endured such

unkindness was enough to interest all her tender feelings;

and nothing therefore remained to be done but to think well

of them both, to defend the conduct of each, and throw into

the account of accident or mistake whatever could not be

otherwise explained.

 

'They have both,' said she, 'been deceived, I daresay, in

some way or other, of which we can form no idea. Interested

people have perhaps misrepresented each to the other. It is,

in short, impossible for us to conjecture the causes or circum-

stances which may have alienated them, without actual blame

on either side.'

 

'Very true, indeed: and now, my dear Jane, what have

you got to say in behalf of the interested people who have

probably been concerned in the business? Do clear them,

too, or we shall be obliged to think ill of somebody.'

 

'Laugh as much as you choose, but you will not laugh me

out of my opinion. My dearest Lizzy, do but consider in

what a disgraceful light it places Air. Darcy, to be treating

his father's favourite in such a manner, -- one whom his father

had promised to provide for. It is impossible. No man of

common humanity, no man who had any value for his char-

acter, could be capable of it. Can his most intimate friends

be so excessively deceived in him? Oh no.'

 

'I can much more easily believe Mr. Bingley's being im-

posed on than that Mr. Wickham should invent such a history

of himself as he gave me last night; names, facts, everything

mentioned without ceremony. If it be not so, let Mr. Darcy

contradict it. Besides, there was truth in his looks.'

 

 [241]

 
{{prhprp242.jpg}}

 

 

'It is difficult, indeed -- it is distressing. One does not

know what to think.'

 

'I beg your pardon; -- one know's exactly what to think.'

 

But Jane could think with certainty on only one point. --

that Mr. Bingley, if he had been imposed on, would have

much to suffer when the affair became public.

 

The two young ladies were summoned from the shrubbery,

where this conversation passed, by the arrival of some of the

very persons of whom they had been speaking; Mr. Bingley

and his sisters came to give their personal invitation for the

long-expected ball at Netherfield, which was fixed for the

following Tuesday. The two ladies were delighted to see

their dear friend again, called it an age since they had met,

and repeatedly asked what she had been doing with herself

since their separation. To the rest of the family they paid

little attention; avoiding Mrs. Bennet as much as possible,

saying not much to Elizabeth, and nothing at all to the others.

They were soon gone again, rising from their seats with an

activity which took their brother by surprise, and hurrying

oft' as if eager to escape from Mrs. Bonnet's civilities.

 

The prospect of the Netherfield ball was extremely agree-

able to every female of the family. Mrs. Bennet chose to

consider it as given in compliment to her eldest daughter,

and was particularly flattered by receiving the invitation

from Mr. Bingley himself, instead of a ceremonious card.

Jane pictured to herself a happy evening in the society of

her two friends, and the attentions of their brother; and

Elizabeth thought with pleasure of dancing a great deal with

Mr. Wickham, and of seeing a confirmation of everything

in Mr. Darcy's look and behaviour. The happiness antici-

pated by Catherine and Lydia depended less on any single

event, or any particular person; for though they each, like

Elizabeth, meant to dance half the evening with Mr. Wick-

ham, he was by no means the only partner who could

satisfy them, and a ball was, at any rate, a ball. And even

Marv could assure her family that she had no disinclination

for it.

 

While I can have my mornings to myself,' said she, 'it is

enough. I think it is no sacrifice to join occasionally in

evening engagements. Society has claims on us all; and I

 

 [242]

 
{{prhprp243.jpg}}

 

profess myself one of those who consider intervals of recre-

ation and amusement as desirable for everybody.'

 

Elizabeth's spirits were so high on the occasion, that

though she did not often speak unnecessarily to Mr. Collins,

she could not help asking him whether he intended to accept

Mr. Bingley's invitation, and if he did, whether he would

think it proper to join in the evening's amusement; and she

was rather surprised to find that he entertained no scruple

whatever on that head, and was very far from dreading a

rebuke, either from the Archbishop or Lady Catherine de

Bourgh, by venturing to dance.

 

'I am by no means of opinion, I assure you,' said he, 'that

a ball of this kind, given by a young man of character, to

respectable people, can have any evil tendency; and I am

so far from objecting to dancing myself, that I shall hope to

be honoured with the hands of all my fair cousins in the

course of the evening; and I take this opportunity of solicit-

ing yours. Miss Elizabeth, for the two first dances especially;

a preference which I trust my cousin Jane will attribute to

the right cause, and not to any disrespect for her.'

 

Elizabeth felt herself completely taken in. She had fully

proposed being engaged by Wickham for those very

dances; and to have Mr. Collins instead! -- her liveliness had

been never worse timed. There was no help for it, however.

Mr. Wickham's happiness and her own was perforce delayed

a little longer, and Mr. Collins's proposal accepted with as

good a grace as she could. She was not the better pleased

with his gallantry, from the idea it suggested of something

more. It now first struck her that she was selected from

among her sisters as worthy of being the mistress of Huns-

ford Parsonage, and of assisting to form a quadrille table

at Rosings, in the absence of more eligible visitors. The idea

soon reached to conviction, as she observed his increasing

civilities towards herself, and heard his frequent attempt at

a compliment on her wit and vivacity; and though more as-

tonished than gratified herself by this effect of her charms,

it was not long before her mother gave her to understand

that the probability of their marriage was exceedingly agree-

able to her. Elizabeth, however, did not choose to take the

hint, being well aware that a serious dispute must be the con-

 

 [243]

 
{{prhprp244.jpg}}

 

sequence of any reply. Mr. Collins might never make the

offer, and, till he did, it was useless to quarrel about him.

 

If there had not been a Netherfield ball to prepare for

and talk of, the younger Miss Bennets would have been in

a pitiable state at this time; for from the day of the invitation

to the day of the ball there was such a succession of rain

as prevented their walking to Meryton once. No aunt, no

officers, no news could be sought after; the very shoe-roses

for Netherfield were got by proxy. Even Elizabeth might

have found some trial of her patience in weather which

totally suspended the improvement of her acquaintance with

Mr. Wickham; and nothing less than a dance on Tuesday

could have made such a Friday, Saturday, Sunday, and Mon-

day endurable to Kitty and Lydia.

 

 [244]

 
{{prhprp245.jpg}}

 

 

 

 

Chapter XVIII

 

TILL Elizabeth entered the drawing room at Nether-

field, and looked in vain for Mr. Wickham among the

cluster of red coats there assembled, a doubt of his

being present had never occurred to her. The certainty of

meeting him had not been checked by any of those recollec-

tions that might not unreasonably have alarmed her. She

had dressed with more than usual care, and prepared in the

highest spirits for the conquest of all that remained unsub-

dued of his heart, trusting that it was not more than might

be won in the course of the evening. But in an instant arose

the dreadful suspicion of his being purposely omitted, for

Mr. Darcy's pleasure, in the Bingley's invitation to the offi-

cers; and though this was not exactly the case, the absolute

fact of his absence was pronounced by his friend Mr. Denny,

to whom Lydia eagerly applied, and who told them that

Wickham had been obliged to go to town on business the

day before, and was not yet returned; adding, with a signifi-

cant smile, --

 

'I do not imagine his business would have called him away

just now, if he had not wished to avoid a certain gentleman

here.'

 

This part of his intelligence, though unheard by Lydia,

was caught by Elizabeth; and, as it assured her that Darcy

was not less answerable for Wickham's absence than if her

first surmise had been just, every feeling of displeasure

against the former was so sharpened by immediate disap-

pointment, that she could hardly reply with tolerable civility

to the polite inquiries which he directly afterwards ap-

proached to make. Attention, forbearance, patience with

Darcy, was injury to Wickham. She was resolved against

any sort of conversation with him, and turned away with

a degree of ill-humour which she could not wholly surmount

even in speaking to Mr. Bingley, whose blind partiality pro-

voked her.

 

 [245]

 
{{prhprp246.jpg}}

 

 

But Elizabeth was not formed for ill-humour; and though

every prospect of her own was destroyed for the evening, it

could not dwell long on her spirits; and, having told all her

griefs to Charlotte Lucas, whom she had not seen for a week,

she was soon able to make a voluntary transition to the

oddities of her cousin, and to point him out to her particular

notice. The two first dances, however, brought a return of

distress: they were dances of mortification. Mr. Collins,

awkward and solemn, apologising instead of attending, and

often moving wrong without being aware of it, gave her all

the shame and misery which a disagreeable partner for a

couple of dances can give. The moment of her release from

him was ecstasy.

 

She danced next with an officer, and had the refreshment

of talking of Wickham, and of hearing that he was univer-

sally liked. When those dances were over, she returned to

Charlotte Lucas, and was in conversation with her, when

she found herself suddenly addressed by Mr. Darcy, who took

her so much by surprise in his application for her hand, that,

without knowing what she did, she accepted him. He walked

away again immediately, and she was left to fret over her

own want of presence of mind: Charlotte tried to console her.

 

'I daresay you will find him very agreeable.'

 

'Heaven forbid! That would be the greatest misfortune of

all! To find a man agreeable whom one is determined to

hate! Do not wish me such an evil.'

 

When the dancing recommenced, however, and Darcy

approached to claim her hand, Charlotte could not help

cautioning her, in a whisper, not to be a simpleton, and allow

her fancy for Wickham to make her appear unpleasant in

the eyes of a man of ten times his consequence. Elizabeth

made no answer, and took her place in the set, amazed at

the dignity to which she was arrived in being allowed to

stand opposite to Mr. Darcy, and reading in her neighbours'

looks their equal amazement in beholding it. They stood for

some time without speaking a word; and she began to imag-

ine that their silence was to last through the two dances,

and, at first, was resolved not to break it; till suddenly fancy-

ing that it would be the greater punishment to her partner

to oblige him to talk, she made some slight observation on

 

 [246]

 
{{prhprp247.jpg}}

 

the dance. He replied, and was again silent. After a pause

of some minutes, she addressed him a second time, with --

 

'It is your turn to say something now, Mr. Darcy. I

talked about the dance, and yon ought to make some kind of

remark on the size of the room, or the number of couples,'

 

He smiled, and assured her that whatever she wished

him to say should be said.

 

'Very well; that will do for the present. Perhaps, by and

by, I may observe that private balls are much pleasanter

than public ones; but now we may be silent.'

 

'Do you talk by rule, then, while you are dancing?'

 

'Sometimes. One must speak a little, you know. It

would look odd to be entirely silent for half an hour to-

gether; and yet, for the advantage of some conversation

ought to be so arranged as that they may have the trouble

of saying as little as possible.'

 

'Are you consulting your own feelings in the present case,

or do you imagine that you are gratifying mine?'

 

'Both,' replied Elizabeth archly; 'for I have always seen

a great similarity in the turn of our minds. We are each of

an unsocial, taciturn disposition, unwilling to speak, unless

we expect to say something that will amaze the whole room,

and be handed down to posterity with all the eclat of a

proverb.'

 

'This is no very striking resemblance of your own charac-

ter, I am sure,' said he. 'How near it may be to mine, I can-

not pretend to say. You think it a faithful portrait, undoubt-

edly.'

 

'I must not decide on my own performance.'

 

He made no answer, and they were again silent till they

had gone down the dance, when he asked her if she and her

sisters did not very often walk to Meryton. She answered

in the affirmative; and, unable to resist the temptation, added.

'When you met us there the other day, we had just been

forming a new acquaintance.'

 

The effect was immediate. A deeper shade of hauteur

overspread his features, but he said not a word; and Eliz-

abeth, though blaming herself for her own weakness, could

not go on. At length Darcy spoke, and in a constrained

manner said, --

 

 [247]

 
{{prhprp248.jpg}}

 

 

'Mr. Wickham is blessed with such happy manners as may

insure his making friends; whether he may be equally ca-

pable of retaining them, is less certain.'

 

'He has been so unlucky as to lose your friendship,' replied

Elizabeth, with emphasis, 'and in a manner which he is

likely to suffer from all his life.'

 

Darcy made no answer, and seemed desirous of changing

the subject.

 

At that moment Sir William Lucas appeared close to

them, meaning to pass through the set to the other side

of the room; but, on perceiving Mr. Darcy, he stopped,

with a bow of superior courtesy, to compliment him on his

dancing and his partner.

 

'I have been most highly gratified, indeed, my dear sir;

such very superior dancing is not often seen. It is evident

that you belong to the first circles. Allow me to say, how-

ever, that your fair partner does not disgrace you; and that

I must hope to have this pleasure often repeated, especially

when a certain desirable event, my dear Miss Eliza (glancing

at her sister and Bingley), shall take place. What congrat-

ulations will then flow in! I appeal to Mr. Darcy; -- but let

me not interrupt you, sir. You will not thank me for detain-

ing you from the bewitching converse of that young lady,

whose bright eyes are also upbraiding me.'

 

The latter part of this address was scarcely heard by

Darcy; but Sir William's allusion to his friend seemed to

strike him forcibly, and his eyes were directed, with a very

serious expression, towards Bingley and Jane, who were

dancing together. Recovering himself, however, shortly, he

turned to his partner, and said, --

 

'Sir William's interruption has made me forget what we

were talking of.'

 

'I do not think we were speaking at all. Sir William

could not have interrupted any two people in the room who

had less to say for themselves. We have tried two or three

subjects already without success, and what we are to talk of

next I cannot imagine.'

 

'What think you of books?' said he, smiling.

 

'Books -- oh no! -- I am sure we never read the same, or

not with the same feelings.'

 

 [248]

 
{{prhprp249.jpg}}

 

 

'I am sorry you think so; but if that be the case, there

can at least be no want of subject. We may compare our

different opinions.'

 

'No -- I cannot talk of books in a ball-room; my head is

always full of something else.'

 

'The present always occupies you in such scenes -- does

it?' said he, with a look of doubt.

 

'Yes, always,' she replied, without knowing what she said;

for her thoughts had wandered far from the subject, as soon

afterwards appeared by her suddenly exclaiming, 'I remem-

ber hearing you once say, Mr. Darcy, that you hardly ever

forgave; -- that your resentment, once created, was unap-

peasable. You are very cautious, I suppose, as to its being

created?'

 

'I am,' said he, with a firm voice.

 

'And never allow yourself to be blinded by prejudice?'

 

'I hope not.'

 

'It is particularly incumbent on those who never change

their opinion, to be secure of judging properly at first.'

 

'May I ask to what these questions tend?'

 

'Merely to the illustration of your character,' said she.

endeavouring to shake oft' her gravity. 'I'm trying to make

it out.'

 

'And what is your success?'

 

She shook her head. I do not get on at all. I hear such

different accounts of you as puzzle me exceedingly.'

 

'I can readily believe,' answered he, gravely, 'that reports

may vary greatly with respect to me; and I could wish. Miss

Bennet, that you were not to sketch my character at the pres-

ent moment, as there is reason to fear that the performance

would reflect no credit on either.'

 

'But if I do not take your likeness now, I may never have

another opportunity.'

 

'I would by no means suspend any pleasure of yours,' he

coldly replied. She said no more, and they went down the

other dance and parted in silence; on each side dissatisfied,

though not to an equal degree; for in Darcy's breast there

was a tolerably powerful feeling towards her, which soon

procured her pardon, and directed all his anger against an-

other.

 

 [249]

 
{{prhprp250.jpg}}

 

 

They had not long separated when Miss Bingley came

towards her, and, with an expression of civil disdain, thus

accosted her, --

 

'So, Miss Eliza, I hear you are quite delighted with George

Wickham? Your sister has been talking to me about him,

and asking me a thousand questions; and I find that the

young man forgot to tell you, among his other communica-

tions, that he was the son of old Wickham, the late Mr.

Darcy's steward. Let me recommend you, however, as a

friend, not to give implicit confidence to all his assertions;

for, as to Mr. Darcy's using him ill, it is perfectly false: for.

on the contrary, he has been always remarkably kind to him,

though George Wickham has treated Mr. Darcy in a most

infamous manner. I do not know the particulars, but I know

very well that Mr. Darcy is not in the least to blame; that he

cannot bear to hear George Wickham mentioned; and that

though my brother thought he could not well avoid including

him in his invitation to the officers, he was excessively glad

to find that he had taken himself out of the way. His coming

into the country at all is a most insolent thing, indeed, and I

wonder how he could presume to do it. I pity you, Miss

Eliza, for this discovery of your favourite's guilt; but really,

considering his descent, one could not expect much better.'

 

'His guilt and his descent appear, by your account, to be

the same,' said Elizabeth, angrily; 'for I have heard you

accuse him of nothing worse than of being the son of Mr.

Darcy's steward, and of that, I can assure you, he informed

me himself.'

 

'I beg your pardon,' replied Miss Bingley, turning away

with a sneer. 'Excuse my interference; it was kindly meant.'

 

'Insolent girl!' said Elizabeth to herself. 'You are much

mistaken if you expect to influence me by such a paltry

attack as this. I see nothing in it but your own wilful igno-

rance and the malice of Mr. Darcy.' She then sought her

eldest sister, who had undertaken to make inquiries on the

same subject of Bingley. Jane met her with a smile of such

sweet complacency, a glow of such happy expression, as

sufficiently marked how well she was satisfied with the occur-

rences of the evening. Elizabeth instantly read her feelings;

and, at that moment, solicitude for Wickham, resentment

 

 [250]

 
{{prhprp251.jpg}}

 

against his enemies, and everything else, gave way before the

hope of Jane's being in the fairest way for happiness.

 

'I want to know,' said she, with a countenance no less

smiling than her sister's, 'what you have learnt about Mr.

Wickham. But perhaps you have been too pleasantly en-

gaged to think of any third person, in which case you may

be sure of my pardon.'

 

'No,' replied Jane, 'I have not forgotten him; but I have

nothing satisfactory to tell you. Mr. Bingley does not know

the whole of his history, and is quite ignorant of the circum-

stances which have principally offended Mr. Darcy; but he

will vouch for the good conduct, the probity and honour, of

his friend, and is perfectly convinced that Mr. Wickham has

deserved much less attention from Mr. Darcy than he has

received; and I am sorry to say that by his account, as well

as his sister's, Mr. Wickham is by no means a respectable

young man. I am afraid he has been very imprudent, and

has deserved to lose Mr. Darcy's regard.'

 

'Mr. Bingley does not know Mr. Wickham himself.'

 

'No; he never saw him till the other morning at Meryton.'

 

'This account then is what he has received from Mr.

Darcy. I am perfectly satisfied. But what does he say of the

living?'

 

'He does not exactly recollect the circumstances, though

he has heard them from Mr. Darcy more than once, but he

believes that it was left to him conditionally only.'

 

'I have not a doubt of Mr. Bingley's sincerity,' said Eliz-

abeth warmly, 'but you must excuse my not being convinced

by assurances only. Mr. Bingley's defence of his friend was

a very able one, I daresay; but since he is unacquainted

with several parts of the story, and has learnt the rest from

that friend himself, I shall venture still to think of both gen-

tlemen as I did before.'

 

She then changed the discourse to one more gratifying to

each, and on which there could be no difference of sentiment.

Elizabeth listened with delight to the happy though modest

hopes which Jane entertained of Bingley's regard, and said all

in her power to heighten her confidence in it. On their being

joined by Mr. Bingley himself, Elizabeth withdrew to Miss

Lucas; to whose inquiry after the pleasantness of her last

 

 [251]

 
{{prhprp252.jpg}}

 

partner she had scarcely replied before Mr. Collins came up

to them, and told her with great exultation that he had just

been so fortunate as to make a most important discovery.

 

'I have found out,' said he, 'by a singular accident, that

there is now in the room a near relation to my patroness. I

happened to overhear the gentleman himself mentioning to

the young lady who does the honours of this house the names

of his cousin Miss de Bourgh, and of her mother Lady

Catherine. How wonderfully these sort of things occur!

Who would have thought of my meeting with -- perhaps -- a

nephew of Lady Catherine de Bourgh in this assembly! I

am most thankful that the discovery is made in time for me

to pay my respects to him, which I am now going to do, and

trust he will excuse my not having done it before. My total

ignorance of the connection must plead my apology.'

 

'You are not going to introduce yourself to Mr. Darcy?'

 

'Indeed I am. I shall entreat his pardon for not having

done it earlier. I believe him to be Lady Catherine's nephew.

It will be in my power to assure him that her Ladyship was

quite well yesterday se'nnight.'

 

Elizabeth tried hard to dissuade him from such a scheme;

assuring him that Mr. Darcy would consider his addressing

him without introduction as an impertinent freedom, rather

than a compliment to his aunt; that it was not in the least

necessary there should be any notice on either side, and

that if it were, it must belong to Mr. Darcy, the superior in

consequence, to begin the acquaintance. Mr. Collins listened

to her with the determined air of following his own inclina-

tion, and when she ceased speaking, replied thus, --

 

'My dear Miss Elizabeth, I have the highest opinion in

the world of your excellent judgment in all matters within the

scope of your understanding, but permit me to say that there

must be a wide difference between the established forms of

ceremony amongst the laity and those which regulate the

clergy; for, give me leave to observe that I consider the

clerical office as equal in point of dignity with the highest

rank in the kingdom -- provided that a proper humility of be-

haviour is at the same time maintained. You must, therefore,

allow me to follow the dictates of my conscience on this occa-

sion, which leads me to perform what I look on as a point of

 

 [252]

 
{{prhprp253.jpg}}

 

duty. Pardon me for neglecting to profit by your advice,

which on every other subject shall be my constant guide,

though in the case before us I consider myself more fitted by

education and habitual study to decide on what is right than

a young lady like yourself; and with a low bow he left her

to attack Mr. Darcy, whose reception of his advances she

eagerly watched, and whose astonishment at being so ad-

dressed was very evident. Her cousin prefaced his speech

with a solemn bow, and though she could not hear a word

of it, she felt as if hearing it all, and saw in the motion of

his lips the words 'apology,' 'Hunsford,' and 'Lady Catherine

de Bourgh.' It vexed her to see him expose himself to such

a man. Mr. Darcy was eyeing him with unrestrained won-

der; and when at last Mr. Collins allowed him to speak, re-

plied with an air of distant civility. Mr. Collins, however,

was not discouraged from speaking again, and Mr. Darcy's

contempt seemed abundantly increasing with the length of his

second speech; and at the end of it he only made him a slight

bow, and moved another way: Mr. Collins then returned to

Elizabeth.

 

'I have no reason, I assure you,' said he, 'to be dissatisfied

with my reception. Mr. Darcy seemed much pleased with

the attention. He answered me with the utmost civility, and

even paid me the compliment of saying that he was so well

convinced of Lady Catherine's discernment as to be certain

she could never bestow a favour unworthily. It was really

a very handsome thought. Upon the whole, I am much

pleased with him.'

 

As Elizabeth had no longer any interest of her own to pur-

sue, she turned her attention almost entirely on her sister and

Mr. Bingley; and the train of agreeable reflections which her

observations gave birth to made her perhaps almost as happy

as Jane. She saw her in idea settled in that very house, in

all the felicity which a marriage of true affection could be-

stow; and she felt capable, under such circumstances, of en-

deavouring even to like Bingley's two sisters. Her mother's

thoughts she plainly saw were bent the same way, and she

determined not to venture near her, lest she might hear too

much. When they sat down to supper, therefore, she con-

sidered it a most unlucky perverseness which placed them

 

 [253]

 
{{prhprp254.jpg}}

 

within one of each other; and deeply was she vexed to find

that her mother was talking to that one person (Lady Lucas)

freely, openly, and of nothing else but of her expectation

that Jane would he soon married to Mr. Bingley. It was an

animating subject, and Mrs. Bennet seemed incapable of

fatigue while enumerating the advantages of the match. His

being such a charming young man, and so rich, and living

but three miles from them, were the first points of self-grat-

ulation; and then it was such a comfort to think how fond the

two sisters were of Jane, and to be certain that they must

desire the connection as much as she could do. It was, more-

over, such a promising thing for her younger daughters, as

Jane's marrying so greatly must throw them in the way of

other rich men; and, lastly, it was so pleasant at her time of

life to be able to consign her single daughters to the care of

their sister, that she might not be obliged to go into company

more than she liked. It was necessary to make this circum-

stance a matter of pleasure, because on such occasions it is the

etiquette; but no one was less likely than Mrs. Bennet to find

comfort in staying at home at any period of her life. She

concluded with many good wishes that Lady Lucas might

soon be equally fortunate, though evidently and triumphantly

believing there was no chance of it.

 

In vain did Elizabeth endeavour to check the rapidity of

her mother's words, or persuade her to describe her felicity in

a less audible whisper; for to her inexpressible vexation she

could perceive that the chief of it was overheard by Mr.

Darcy, who sat opposite to them. Her mother only scolded

her for being nonsensical.

 

'What is Mr. Darcy to me, pray, that I should be afraid of

him? I am sure we owe him no such particular civility as to

be obliged to say nothing he may not like to hear.'

 

'For heaven's sake, madam, speak lower. What advantage

can it be to you to offend Mr. Darcy? You will never rec-

ommend yourself to his friend by so doing.'

 

Nothing that she could say, however, had any influence.

Her mother would talk of her views in the same intelligible

tone. Elizabeth blushed and blushed again with shame and

vexation. She could not help frequently glancing her eye at

Mr. Darcy, though every glance convinced her of what she

 

 [254]

 
{{prhprp255.jpg}}

 

dreaded; for though he was not always looking at her mother,

she was convinced that his attention was invariably fixed by

her. The expression of his face changed gradually from

indignant contempt to a composed and steady gravity.

 

At length, however, Mrs. Bennet had no more to say; and

Lady Lucas, who had been long yawning at the repetition of

delights which she saw no likelihood of sharing, was left to

the comforts of cold ham and chicken. Elizabeth now began

to revive. But not long was the interval of tranquillity; for

when supper was over, singing was talked of, and she had

the mortification of seeing Mary, after very little entreaty,

preparing to oblige the company. By many significant looks

and silent entreaties did she endeavour to prevent such a

proof of complaisance, -- but in vain; Mary would not under-

stand them; such an opportunity of exhibiting was delightful

to her, and she began her song. Elizabeth's eyes were fixed

on her, with most painful sensations; and she watched her

progress through the several stanzas with an impatience

which was very ill rewarded at their close; for Mary, on re-

ceiving amongst the thanks of the table the hint of a hope

that she might be prevailed on to favour them again, after

the pause of half a minute, began another. Mary's powers

were by no means fitted for such a display; her voice was

weak, and her manner affected. Elizabeth was in agonies.

She looked at Jane to sec how she bore it; but Jane was very

composedly talking to Bingley. She looked at his two sisters,

and saw them making signs of derision at each other, and at

Darcy, who continued, however, impenetrably grave. She

looked at her father to entreat his interference, lest Mary

should be singing all night. He took the hint, and, when

Mary had finished her second song, said aloud, --

 

'That will do extremely well, child. You have delighted

us long enough. Let the other young ladies have time to

exhibit.'

 

Mary, though pretending not to hear, was somewhat dis-

concerted; and Elizabeth, sorry for her, and sorry for her

father's speech, was afraid her anxiety had done no good.

Others of the party were now applied to.

 

'If I,' said Mr. Collins, 'were so fortunate as to be able to

sing, I should have great pleasure, I am sure, in obliging the

 

 [255]

 
{{prhprp256.jpg}}

 

company with an air; for I consider music as a very innocent

diversion, and perfectly compatible with the profession of a

clergyman. I do not mean, however, to assert that we can

be justified in devoting too much of our time to music, for

there are certainly other things to be attended to. The rector

of a parish has much to do. In the first place, he must make

such an agreement for tithes as may be beneficial to himself

and not offensive to his patron. He must write his own

sermons; and the time that remains will not be too much for

his parish duties, and the care and improvement of his

dwelling, which he cannot be excused from making as com-

fortable as possible. And I do not think it of light impor-

tance that he should have attentive and conciliatory manners

toward everybody, especially towards those to whom he owes

his betterment. I cannot acquit him of that duty; nor could

I think well of the man who should omit an occasion of testi-

fying his respect towards anybody connected with the family.'

And with a bow to Mr. Darcy, he concluded his speech, which

had been spoken so loud as to be heard by half the room.

Many stared -- many smiled; but no one looked more amused

than Mr. Bennet himself, while his wife seriously commended

Mr. Collins for having spoken so sensibly, and observed, in

a half-whisper to Lady Lucas, that he was a remarkably

clever, good kind of young man.

 

To Elizabeth it appeared, that had her family made an

agreement to expose themselves as much as they could during

the evening, it would have been impossible for them to play

their parts with more spirit, or finer success; and happy did

she think it for Bingley and her sister that some of the exhi-

bition had escaped his notice, and that his feelings were not

of a sort to be much distressed by the folly which he must

have witnessed. That his two sisters and Mr. Darcy, how-

ever, should have such an opportunity of ridiculing her rela-

tions was bad enough; and she could not determine whether

the silent contempt of the gentleman, or the insolent smiles

of the ladies, were more intolerable.

 

The rest of the evening brought her little amusement. She

was teased by Mr. Collins, who continued most perseveringly

by her side; and though he could not prevail with her to

dance with him again, put it out of her power to dance with

 

 [256]

 
{{prhprp257.jpg}}

 

others. In vain did she entreat him to stand up with some-

body else, and offered to introduce him to any young lady in

the room. He assured her that, as to dancing, he was

perfectly indifferent to it; that his chief object was, by del-

icate attentions, to recommend himself to her; and that he

should therefore make a point of remaining close to her the

whole evening. There was no arguing upon such a project.

She owed her greatest relief to her friend Miss Lucas, who

often joined them, and good-naturedly engaged Mr. Collins's

conversation to herself.

 

She was at least free from the offence of Mr. Darcy's

further notice: though often standing within a very short

distance of her, quite disengaged, he never came near enough

to speak. She felt it to be the probable consequence of her

allusions to Mr. Wickham, and rejoiced in it.

 

The Longbourn party were the last of all the company to

depart; and by a manoeuvre of Mrs. Bennet had to wait for

their carriage a quarter of an hour after everybody else was

gone, which gave them time to see how heartily they were

wished away by some of the family. Mrs. Hurst and her

sister scarcely opened their mouths except to complain of

fatigue, and were evidently impatient to have the house to

themselves. They repulsed every attempt of Mrs. Bennet at

conversation, and, by so doing, threw a languor over the

whole party, which was very little relieved by the long

speeches of Mr. Collins, who was complimenting Mr. Bingley

and his sisters on the elegance of their entertainment, and the

hospitality and politeness which had marked their behaviour

to their guests. Darcy said nothing at all. Mr. Bennet, in

equal silence, was enjoying the scene. Mr. Bingley and Jane

were standing together a little detached from the rest, and

talked only to each other. Elizabeth preserved as steady a

silence as either Mrs. Hurst or Miss Bingley; and even Lydia

was too much fatigued to utter more than the occasional ex-

clamation of Lord, how tired I am!' accompanied by a

violent yawn.

 

When at length they arose to take leave, Mrs. Bennet was

most pressingly civil in her hope of seeing the whole family

soon at Longbourn; and addressed herself particularly to Mr.

Bingley, to assure him how happy he would make them by

 

 [257]

 
{{prhprp258.jpg}}

 

eating a family dinner with them at any time, without the

ceremony of a formal invitation. Bingley was all grateful

pleasure; and he readily engaged for taking the earliest

opportunity of waiting on her, after his return from London,

whither he was obliged to go the next day for a short time.

 

Mrs. Bennet was perfectly satisfied; and quitted the house??

under the delightful persuasion that, allowing for the neces-

sary preparations of settlements, new carriages, and wedding

clothes, she should undoubtedly see her daughter settled at

Netherfield in the course of three or four months. Of having

another daughter married to Mr. Collins she thought with

equal certainty, and with considerable, though not equal,

pleasure. Elizabeth was the least dear to her of all her

children; and though the man and the match were quite good

enough for her, the worth of each was eclipsed by Mr. Bing-

ley and Netherfield.

 

 [258]

 
{{prhprp259.jpg}}

 

 

 

 

Chapter XIX

 

THE next day opened a new scene at Longbourn. Mr.

Collins made his declaration in form. Having re-

solved to do it without loss of time, as his leave of

absence extended only to the following Saturday, and hav-

ing no feelings of diffidence to make it distressing to him-

self even at the moment, he set about it in a very orderly

manner, with all the observances which he supposed a regu-

lar part of the business. On finding Mrs. Bennet. Eliza-

beth, and one of the younger girls together, soon after break-

fast, he addressed the mother in these words, --

 

'May I hope, madam, for your interest with your fair

daughter Elizabeth, when I solicit for the honour of a private

audience with her in the course of this morning?'

 

Before Elizabeth had time for anything but a blush of

surprise, Mrs. Bennet instantly answered, --

 

'Oh dear! Yes, certainly. I am sure Lizzy will be very

happy -- I am sure she can have no objection. Come, Kitty,

I want you upstairs.' And gathering her work together, she

was hastening away, when Elizabeth called out, --

 

'Dear ma'am, do not go. I beg you will not go. Mr.

Collins must excuse me. He can have nothing to say to

me that anybody need not hear. I am going away myself.'

 

'No, no, nonsense, Lizzy. I desire you will stay where

you are.' And upon Elizabeth's seeming really, with vexed

and embarrassed looks, about to escape, she added, 'Lizzy

I insist upon your staying and hearing Mr. Collins.'

 

Elizabeth would not oppose such an injunction; and a

moment's consideration making her also sensible that it would

be wisest to get it over as soon and as quietly as possible,

she sat down again, and tried to conceal, by incessant em-

ployment, the feelings which were divided between distress

and diversion. Mrs. Bennet and Kitty walked off, and as

soon as they were gone, Mr. Collins began, --

 

'Believe me, my dear Miss Elizabeth, that your modesty,

 

 [259]

 
{{prhprp260.jpg}}

 

so far from doing you any dis-service, rather adds to your

other perfections. You would have been less amiable in my

eyes had there not been this little unwillingness; but allow

me to assure you that I have your respected mother's permis-

sion for this address. You can hardly doubt the purport of

my discourse, however your natural delicacy may lead you to

dissemble; my attentions have been too marked to be mis-

taken. Almost as soon as I entered the house I singled you

out as the companion of my future life. But before I am run

away with by my feelings on this subject, perhaps it will

be advisable for me to state my reasons for marrying -- and,

moreover, for coming into Hertfordshire with the design of

selecting a wife, as I certainly did.'

 

The idea of Mr, Collins, with all his solemn composure,

being run away with by his feelings, made Elizabeth so near

laughing that she could not use the short pause he allowed in

any attempt to stop him farther, and he continued, --

 

'My reasons for marrying are, first, that I think it a

right thing for every clergyman in easy circumstances (like

myself) to set the example of matrimony in his parish;

secondly, that I am convinced it will add very greatly to my

happiness; and, thirdly, which perhaps I ought to have

mentioned earlier, that it is the particular advice and recom-

mendation of the very noble lady whom I have the honour of

calling patroness. Twice has she condescended to give me

her opinion (unasked too!) on this subject; and it was but

the very Saturday night before I left Hunsford, -- between our

pools at quadrille, while Mrs. Jenkinson was arranging Miss

de Bourgh's footstool, -- that she said, "Mr. Collins, you must

marry. A clergyman like you must marry. Choose properly,

choose a gentlewoman for my sake, and for your own; let her

be an active, useful sort of person, not brought up high, but

able to make a small income go a good way. This is my

advice. Find such a woman as soon as you can, bring her to

Hunsford, and I will visit her." Allow me, by the way, to

observe, my fair cousin, that I do not reckon the notice and

kindness of Lady Catherine de Bourgh as among the least of

the advantages in my power to offer. You will find her

manners beyond anything I can describe; and your wit and

vivacity, I think, must be acceptable to her, especially when

 

 [260]

 
{{prhprp261.jpg}}

 

tempered with the silence and respect which her rank will

inevitably excite. Thus much for my general intention in

favour of matrimony; it remains to be told why my views

were directed to Longbourn instead of my own neighbour-

hood, where I assure you there are many amiable young

women. But the fact is, that being, as I am, to inherit this

estate after the death of your honoured father (who, how-

ever, may live many years longer), I could not satisfy my-

self without resolving to choose a wife from among his

daughters, that the loss to them might be as little as pos-

sible when the melancholy event takes place which, how-

ever, as I have already said, may not be for several years.

This has been my motive, my fair cousin, and I flatter my-

self it will not sink me in your esteem. And now nothing

remains for me but to assure you in the most animated lan-

guage of the violence of my affection. To fortune I am

perfectly indifferent, and shall make no demand of that

nature on your father, since I am well aware that it could

not be complied with; and that one thousand pounds in the

four per cents, which will not be yours till after your

mother's decease, is all that you may ever be entitled to. On

that head, therefore. I shall be uniformly silent: and you

may assure yourself that no ungenerous reproach shall ever

pass my lips when we are married.'

 

It was absolutely necessary to interrupt him now.

 

'You are too hasty, sir,' she cried. 'You forget that I

have made no answer. Let me do it without further loss of

time. Accept my thanks for the compliment you are pay-

ing me. I am very sensible of the honour of your proposals,

but it is impossible for me to do otherwise than decline

them.'

 

'I am not now to learn.' replied Mr. Collins, with a formal

wave of the hand, 'that it is usual with young ladies to reject

the addresses of the man whom they secretly mean to accept,

when he first applies for their favour; and that sometimes

the refusal is repeated a second or even a third time. I am,

therefore, by no means discouraged by what you have just

said, and shall hope to lead you to the altar ere long.'

 

'Upon my word, sir,' cried Elizabeth, 'your hope is rather

an extraordinary one after my declaration. I do assure you

 

 [261]

 
{{prhprp262.jpg}}

 

that I am not one of those young ladies (if such young ladies

there are) who are so daring as to risk their happiness on the

chance of being asked a second time. I am perfectly serious

in my refusal. You could not make me happy, and I am

convinced that I am the last woman in the world who would

make you so. Nay, were your friend Lady Catherine to know

me, I am persuaded she would find me in every respect ill

qualified for the situation.'

 

'Were it certain that Lady Catherine would think so,' said

Mr. Collins, very gravely -- 'but I cannot imagine that her

Ladyship would at all disapprove of you. And you may be

certain that when I have the honour of seeing her again I

shall speak in the highest terms of your modesty, economy,

and other amiable qualifications.'

 

'Indeed, Mr. Collins, all praise of me will be unnecessary.

You must give me leave to judge for myself, and pay me the

compliment of believing what I say. I wish you very happy

and very rich, and by refusing your hand, do all in my power

to prevent your being otherwise. In making me the offer,

you must have satisfied the delicacy of your feelings with

regard to my family, and may take possession of Longbourn

estate whenever it falls, without any self-reproach. This

matter may be considered, therefore, as finally settled.' And

rising as she thus spoke, she would have quitted the room,

had not Mr. Collins thus addressed her, --

 

'When I do myself the honour of speaking to you next on

the subject, I shall hope to receive a more favourable answer

than you have now given me; though I am far from accusing

you of cruelty at present, because I know it to be the es-

tablished custom of your sex to reject a man on the first

application, and, perhaps, you have even now said as much

to encourage my suit as would be consistent with the true

delicacy of the female character.'

 

'Really, Mr. Collins,' cried Elizabeth, with some warmth,

'you puzzle me exceedingly. If what I have hitherto said

can appear to you in the form of encouragement, I know

not how to express my refusal in such a way as may con-

vince you of its being one.'

 

'You must give me leave to flatter myself, my dear cousin,

that your refusal of my addresses are merely words of course.

 

 [262]

 
{{prhprp263.jpg}}

 

My reasons for believing it are briefly these:-- It does not

appear to me that my band is unworthy your acceptance, or

that the establishment I can offer would be any other than

highly desirable. My situation in life, my connections with

the family of de Bourgh, and my relationship to your own,

are circumstances highly in my favour; and you should take

it into further consideration that, in spite of your manifold

attractions, it is by no means certain that another offer of

marriage may ever be made you. Your portion is unhappily

so small, that it will in all likelihood undo the effects of your

loveliness and amiable qualifications. As I must, therefore,

conclude that you are not serious in your rejection of me. I

shall choose to attribute it to your wish of increasing my love

by suspense, according to the usual practice of elegant

females.'

 

'I do assure you, sir, that I have no pretensions whatever

to that kind of elegance which consists in tormenting a

respectable man. I would rather be paid the compliment of

being believed sincere. I thank you again and again for the

honour you have done me in your proposals, but to accept

them is absolutely impossible. My feelings in every respect

forbid it. Can I speak plainer? Do not consider me now as

an elegant female intending to plague you, but as a rational

creature speaking the truth from her heart.'

 

'You are uniformly charming!' cried he, with an air of

awkward gallantry; 'and I am persuaded that, when sanc-

tioned by the express authority of both your excellent par-

ents, my proposals will not fail of being acceptable.'

 

To such perseverance in wilful self-deception Elizabeth

would make no reply, and immediately and in silence with-

drew; determined, that if he persisted in considering her

repeated refusals as flattering encouragement, to apply to

her father, whose negative might be uttered in such a man-

ner as must be decisive, and whose behaviour at least could

not be mistaken for the affectation and coquetry of an ele-

gant female.

 

 [263]

 
{{prhprp264.jpg}}

 

 

 

 

Chapter XX

 

MR. COLLINS was not left long to the silent con-

templation of his successful love; for Mrs. Bennet,

having dawdled about in the vestibule to watch for

the end of the conference, no sooner saw Elizabeth open

the door and with quick step pass her towards the stair-

case, than she entered the breakfast-room, and congratu-

lated both him and herself in warm terms on the happy

prospect of their nearer connection. Mr. Collins received

and returned these felicitations with equal pleasure, and

then proceeded to relate the particulars of their interview,

with the result of which he trusted he had every reason to

be satisfied, since the refusal which his cousin had stead-

fastly given him would naturally flow from her bashful

modesty and the genuine delicacy of her character.

 

This information, however, startled Mrs. Bennet; she

would have been glad to be equally satisfied that her daughter

had meant to encourage him by protesting against his pro-

posals, but she dared not to believe it, and could not help

saying so.

 

'But depend upon it, Mr. Collins,' she added, 'that Lizzy

shall be brought to reason. I will speak to her about it my-

self directly. She is a very headstrong, foolish girl, and

does not know her own interest; but I will make her know it.'

 

'Pardon me for interrupting you, madam,' cried Mr. Col-

lins; 'but if she is really headstrong and foolish, I know

not whether she would altogether be a very desirable wife

to a man in my situation, who naturally looks for happiness

in the marriage state. If, therefore, she actually persists

in rejecting my suit, perhaps it were better not to force her

into accepting me, because, if liable to such defects of temper,

she could not contribute much to my felicity.'

 

'Sir, you quite misunderstand me,' said Mrs. Bennet,

alarmed. 'Lizzy is only headstrong in such matters as these.

In everything else she is as good-natured a girl as ever lived.

 

 [264]

 
{{prhprp265.jpg}}

 

I will go directly to Mr. Bennet, and we shall very soon settle

it with her, I am sure.'

 

She would not give him time to reply, but hurrying in-

stantly to her husband, called out, as she entered the library, --

 

'Oh, Mr. Bennet, you are wanted immediately; we are

all in an uproar. You must come and make Lizzy marry

Mr. Collins, for she vows she will not have him; and if

you do not make haste he will change his mind and not

have her.'

 

Mr. Bennet raised his eyes from his book as she entered,

and fixed them on her face with a calm unconcern, which

was not in the least altered by her communication.

 

'I have not the pleasure of understanding you,' said he,

when she had finished her speech. 'Of what are you

talking?'

 

'Of Mr. Collins and Lizzy. Lizzy declares she will not

have Mr. Collins, and Mr. Collins begins to say that he will

not have Lizzy.'

 

'And what am I to do on the occasion? It seems a hope-

less business.'

 

'Speak to Lizzy about it yourself. Tell her that you in-

sist upon her marrying him.'

 

'Let her be called down. She shall hear my opinion.'

 

Mrs. Bennet rang the bell, and Miss Elizabeth was sum-

moned to the library.

 

'Come here, child,' cried her father as she appeared. 'I

have sent for you on an affair of importance. I under-

stand that Mr. Collins has made yon an offer of marriage.

Is it true?' Elizabeth replied that it was. 'Very well --

and this offer of marriage you have refused?'

 

'I have, sir.'

 

'Very well. We now come to the point. Your mother

insists upon your accepting it. Is it not so, Mrs. Bennet?'

 

'Yes, or I will never see her again.'

 

'An unhappy alternative is before you, Elizabeth. From

this day you must be a stranger to one of your parents.

Your mother will never see you again if you do not marry

Mr. Collins, and I will never see you again if you do.'

 

Elizabeth could not but smile at such a conclusion of such

a beginning; but Mrs. Bennet, who had persuaded herself

 

 [265]

 
{{prhprp266.jpg}}

 

that her husband regarded the affair as she wished, was ex-

cessively disappointed.

 

'What do you mean, Mr. Bennet, by talking in this way?

You promised me to insist upon her marrying him.'

 

'My dear,' replied her husband, 'I have two small favours

to request. First, that you will allow me the free use of my

understanding on the present occasion; and, secondly, of my

room. I shall be glad to have the library to myself as soon

as may be.'

 

Not yet, however, in spite of her disappointment in her

husband, did Mrs. Bennet give up the point. She talked to

Elizabeth again and again; coaxed and threatened her by

turns. She endeavoured to secure Jane in her interest, but

Jane, with all possible mildness, declined interfering; and

Elizabeth, sometimes with real earnestness and sometimes

with playful gaiety, replied to her attacks. Though her

manner varied, however, her determination never did.

 

Mr. Collins, meanwhile, was meditating in solitude on

what had passed. He thought too well of himself to compre-

hend on what motive his cousin could refuse him; and though

his pride was hurt, he suffered in no other way. His regard

for her was quite imaginary; and the possibility of her

deserving her mother's reproach prevented his feeling any

regret.

 

While the family were in this confusion, Charlotte Lucas

came to spend the day with them. She was met in the

vestibule by Lydia, who, flying to her, cried in a half-whisper,

'I am glad you are come, for there is such fun here! What

do you think has happened this morning? Mr. Collins has

made an offer to Lizzy, and she will not have him.'

 

Charlotte had hardly time to answer before they were

joined by Kitty, who came to tell the same news; and no

sooner had they entered the breakfast-room, where Mrs.

Bennet was alone, than she likewise began on the subject,

calling on Miss Lucas for her compassion, and entreating

her to persuade her friend Lizzy to comply with the wishes

of all her family. 'Pray do, my dear Miss Lucas,' she

added, in a melancholy tone; 'for nobody is on my side,

nobody takes part with me; I am cruelly used, nobody feels

for my poor nerves.'

 

 [266]

 
{{prhprp267.jpg}}

 

 

Charlotte's reply was spared by the entrance of Jane

and Elizabeth.

 

'Ay, there she comes,' continued Mrs. Bennet, 'looking as

unconcerned as may be, and caring no more for us than if we

were at York, provided she can have her own way. But I

tell you what. Miss Lizzy, if you take it into your head

to go on refusing every offer of marriage in this way, you

will never get a husband at all -- and I am sure I do not

know who is to maintain you when your father is dead. I

shall not be able to keep you -- and so I warn you. I have

done with you from this very day. I told you in the library,

you know, that I should never speak to you again, and you

will find me as good as my word. I have no pleasure in

talking to undutiful children. Not that I have much pleasure,

indeed, in talking to anybody. People who suffer as I do

from nervous complaints can have no great inclination for

talking. Nobody can tell what I suffer! But it is always

so. Those who do not complain are never pitied.'

 

Her daughters listened in silence to this effusion, sensible

that any attempt to reason with or soothe her would only

increase the irritation. She talked on, therefore, without

interruption from any of them till they were joined by Mr.

Collins, who entered with an air more stately than usual,

and on perceiving whom, she said to the girls, --

 

'Now, I do insist upon it, that you, all of you, hold your

tongues, and let Mr. Collins and me have a little conversa-

tion together.'

 

Elizabeth passed quietly out of the room, Jane and Kitty

followed, but Lydia stood her ground, determined to hear all

she could; and Charlotte, detained first by the civility of Mr.

Collins, whose inquiries after herself and all her family were

very minute, and then by a little curiosity, satisfied herself

with walking to the window and pretending not to hear.

In a doleful voice Mrs. Bennet thus began the projected con-

versation: -- 'Oh, Mr. Collins.'

 

'My dear madam,' replied he, 'let us be for ever silent on

this point, far be it from me,' he presently continued, in a

voice that marked his displeasure, 'to resent the behaviour of

your daughter. Resignation to inevitable evils is the duty of

us all: the peculiar duty of a young man who has been so

 

 [267]

 
{{prhprp268.jpg}}

 

fortunate as I have been, in early preferment; and, I trust, I

am resigned. Perhaps not the less so from feeling a doubt of

my positive happiness had my fair cousin honoured me with

her hand: for I have often observed that resignation is never

so perfect as when the blessing denied begins to lose some-

what of its value in our estimation. You will not, I hope,

consider me as showing any disrespect to your family, my

dear madam, by thus withdrawing my pretensions to your

daughter's favour, without having paid yourself and Mr.

Bennet the compliment of requesting you to interpose your

authority in my behalf. My conduct may. I fear, be objec-

tionable in having accepted my dismission from your daugh-

ter's lips instead of your own; but we are all liable to error.

I have certainly meant well through the whole affair. My

object has been to secure an amiable companion for myself,

with due consideration for the advantage of all your family;

and if my manner has been at all reprehensible, I here beg

leave to apologise,'

 

 [268]

 
{{prhprp269.jpg}}

 

 

 

 

Chapter XXI

 

THE discussion of Mr. Collins's offer was now nearly at

an end, and Elizabeth had only to suffer from the un-

comfortable feelings necessarily attending it, and oc-

casionally from some peevish allusion of her mother. As

for the gentleman himself, his feelings were chiefly expressed,

not by embarrassment or dejection, or by trying to avoid

her, but by stiffness of manner and resentful silence. He

scarcely ever spoke to her; and the assiduous attentions which

he had been so sensible of himself were transferred for the

rest of the day to Miss Lucas, whose civility in listening to

him was a seasonable relief to them all, and especially to her

friend.

 

The morrow produced no abatement of Mrs. Bennet's ill-

humour or ill-health. Mr. Collins was also in the same state

of angry pride. Elizabeth had hoped that his resentment

might shorten his visit, but his plan did not appear in the

least affected by it. He was always to have gone on Saturday,

and to Saturday he still meant to stay.

 

After breakfast the girls walked to Meryton, to inquire if

Mr. Wickham were returned, and to lament over his absence

from the Netherfield ball. He joined them on their entering

the town, and attended them to their aunt's, where his regret

and vexation and the concern of everybody were well talked

over. To Elizabeth, however, he voluntarily acknowledged

that the necessity of his absence had been self-imposed.

 

'I found,' said he, 'as the time drew near, that I had bet-

ter not meet Mr. Darcy; -- that to be in the same room, the

same party with him for so many hours together, might be

more than I could bear, and that scenes might arise unpleasant

to more than myself.'

 

She highly approved his forbearance; and they had leisure

for a full discussion of it, and for all the commendations

which they civilly bestowed on each other, as Wickham and

another officer walked back with them to Longbourn, and

 

 [269]

 
{{prhprp270.jpg}}

 

during the walk he particularly attended to her. His accom-

panying them was a double advantage: she felt all the com-

pliment it offered to herself; and it was most acceptable as

an occasion of introducing him to her father and mother.

 

Soon after their return a letter was delivered to Miss Ben-

net; it came from Netherfield, and was opened immediately.

The envelope contained a sheet of elegant, little, hot-pressed

paper, well covered with a lady's fair, flowing hand; and

Elizabeth saw her sister's countenance change as she read

it, and saw her dwelling intently on some particular pas-

sages. Jane recollected herself soon; and putting the letter

away, tried to join, with her usual cheerfulness, in the general

conversation: but Elizabeth felt an anxiety on the subject

which drew off her attention even from Wickham; and no

sooner had he and his companion taken leave than a glance

from Jane invited her to follow her upstairs. When they

had gained their own room, Jane, taking out her letter, said,

'This is from Caroline Bingley: what it contains has sur-

prised me a good deal. The whole party have left Netherfield

by this time, and are on their way to town, and without any

intention of coming back again. You shall hear what she

says.'

 

She then read the first sentence aloud, which comprised

the information of their having just resolved to follow their

brother to town directly, and of their meaning to dine that

day in Grosvenor Street, where Mr. Hurst had a house. The

next was in these words: -- I do not pretend to regret any-

thing I shall leave in Hertfordshire except your society, my

dearest friend; but we will hope, at some future period, to

enjoy many returns of that delightful intercourse we have

known, and in the meanwhile may lessen the pain of separa-

tion by a very frequent and most unreserved correspondence.

I depend on you for that.' To these high-flown expressions

Elizabeth listened with all the insensibility of distrust; and

though the suddenness of their removal surprised her, she

saw nothing in it really to lament: it was not to be supposed

that their absence from Netherfield would prevent Mr. Bing-

ley's being there; and as to the loss of their society, she was

persuaded that Jane must soon cease to regard it in the en-

joyment of his.

 

 [270]

 
{{prhprp271.jpg}}

 

 

'It is unlucky,' said she, after a short pause, 'that you

should not be able to see your friends before they leave the

country. But may we not hope that the period of future hap-

piness, to which Miss Bingley looks forward, may arrive

earlier than she is aware, and that the delightful intercourse

you have known as friends will be renewed with yet greater

satisfaction as sisters? Mr. Bingley will not be detained in

London by them.'

 

'Caroline decidedly says that none of the party will return

into Hertfordshire this winter. I will read it to you.'

 

'When my brother left us yesterday, he imagined that

the business which took him to London might be concluded

in three or four days; but as we are certain it cannot be so.

and at the same time convinced that when Charles gets to

town he will be in no hurry to leave it again, we have deter-

mined on following him thither, that he may not be obliged

to spend his vacant hours in a comfortless hotel. Many of

my acquaintance are already there for the winter: I wish I

could hear that you, my dearest friend, had any intention of

making one in the crowd, but of that I despair. I sincerely

hope your Christmas in Hertfordshire may abound in the

gaieties which that season generally brings, and that your

beaux will be so numerous as to prevent your feeling the

loss of the three of whom we shall deprive you.'

 

'It is evident by this,' added Jane, 'that he comes back no

more this winter.'

 

'It is only evident that Miss Bingley does not mean he

should.'

 

'Why will you think so? It must be his own doing; he

is his own master. But you do not know all. I will read

you the passage which particularly hurts me. I will have no

reserves from you. "Mr. Darcy is impatient to see his sister;

and to confess the truth, we are scarcely less eager to meet

her again. I really do not think Georgiana Darcy has her

equal for beauty, elegance, and accomplishments; and the

affection she inspires in Louisa and myself is heightened into

something still more interesting from the hope we dare to

entertain of her being hereafter our sister. I do not know

whether I ever before mentioned to you my feelings on this

subject, but I will not leave the country without confiding

 

 [271]

 
{{prhprp272.jpg}}

 

them, and I trust you will not esteem them unreasonable. My

brother admires her greatly already; he will have frequent

opportunity now of seeing her on the most intimate footing;

her relations all wish the connection as much as his own; and

a sister's partiality is not misleading me, I think, when I call

Charles most capable of engaging any woman's heart. With

all these circumstances to favor an attachment, and nothing

to prevent it, am I wrong, my dearest Jane, in indulging the

hope of an event which will secure the happiness of so

many?" What think you of this sentence, my dear Lizzy?'

said Jane, as she finished it. 'Is it not clear enough? Does

it not expressly declare that Caroline neither expects nor

wishes me to be her sister; that she is perfectly convinced of

her brother's indifference; and that, if she suspects the na-

ture of my feelings for him, she means (most kindly!) to

put me on my guard. Can there be any other opinion on the

subject?'

 

'Yes, there can; for mine is totally different. Will you

hear it?'

 

'Most willingly.'

 

'You shall have it in a few words. Miss Bingley sees that

her brother is in love with you, and wants him to marry Miss

Darcy. She follows him to town in the hope of keeping

him there, and tries to persuade you that he does not care

about you.'

 

Jane shook her head.

 

'Indeed, Jane, you ought to believe me. No one who has

ever seen you together can doubt his affection; Miss Bingley.

I am sure, cannot: she is not such a simpleton. Could she

have seen half as much love in Mr. Darcy for herself, she

would have ordered her wedding clothes. But the case is

this: -- we are not rich enough or grand enough for them;

and she is the more anxious to get Miss Darcy for her

brother, from the notion that when there has been one inter-

marriage, she may have less trouble in achieving a second;

in which there is certainly some ingenuity, and I daresay it

would succeed if Miss de Bourgh were out of the way. But,

my dearest Jane, you cannot seriously imagine that, because

Miss Bingley tells you her brother greatly admires Miss

Darcy, he is in the smallest degree less sensible of your merit

 

 [272]

 
{{prhprp273.jpg}}

 

than when he took leave of you on Tuesday; or that it

will be in her power to persuade him that, instead of

being in love with you, he is very much in love with her

friend.'

 

'If we thought alike of Miss Bingley.' replied Jane, 'your

representation of all this might make me quite easy. But

I know the foundation is unjust. Caroline is incapable of

wilfully deceiving any one; and all that I can hope in this

case is, that she is deceived herself.'

 

That is right. You could not have started a more happy

idea, since you will not take comfort in mine: believe her to

be deceived, by all means. You have now done your duty by

her, and must fret no longer.'

 

'But, my dear sister, can I be happy, even supposing the

best, in accepting a man whose sisters and friends are all

wishing him to marry elsewhere?'

 

'You must decide for yourself.' said Elizabeth; 'and if,

upon mature deliberation, you find that the misery of dis-

obliging his two sisters is more than equivalent to the hap-

piness of being his wife. I advise you, by all means, to

refuse him.'

 

'How can you talk so?' said Jane, faintly smiling; 'you

must know that, though I should be exceedingly grieved at

their disapprobation, I could not hesitate.'

 

'I do not think you would; and that being the case, I can-

not consider your situation with much compassion.'

 

'But if he returns no more this winter, my choice will never

be required. A thousand things may arise in six months.'

 

The idea of his returning no more Elizabeth treated with

the utmost contempt. It appeared to her merely the sug-

gestion of Caroline's interested wishes; and she could not for

a moment suppose that those wishes, however openly or art-

fully spoken, could influence a young man so totally inde-

pendent of every one.

 

She represented to her sister, as forcibly as possible, what

she felt on the subject, and had soon the pleasure of seeing

its happy effect. Jane's temper was not desponding; and

she was gradually led to hope, though the diffidence of affec-

tion sometimes overcame the hope, that Bingley would return

to Netherfield, and answer every wish of her heart.

 

 [273]

 
{{prhprp274.jpg}}

 

 

They agreed that Mrs. Bennet should only hear of the de-

parture of the family, without being alarmed on the score

of the gentleman's conduct; but even this partial communi-

cation gave her a great deal of concern, and she bewailed it

as exceedingly unlucky that the ladies should happen to go

away just as they were all getting so intimate together. After

lamenting it, however, at some length, she had the consola-

tion of thinking that Mr, Bingley would be soon down again,

and soon dining at Longbourn; and the conclusion of all was

the comfortable declaration, that, though he had been invited

only to a family dinner, she would take care to have two full

courses.

 

 [274]

 
{{prhprp275.jpg}}

 

 

 

 

Chapter XXII

 

THE Bennets were engaged to dine with the Lucases;

and again, during the chief of the day, was Miss Lucas

so kind as to listen to Mr. Collins. Elizabeth took an

opportunity of thanking her. 'It keeps him in good humour,'

said she, 'and I am more obliged to you than I can express.'

Charlotte assured her friend of her satisfaction in being

useful, and that it amply repaid her for the little sacrifice of

her time. This was very amiable; but Charlotte's kindness

extended farther than Elizabeth had any conception of: --

its object was nothing less than to secure her from any

return of Mr. Collins's addresses, by engaging them

towards herself. Such was Miss Lucas's scheme; and ap-

pearances were so favourable, that when they parted at

night, she would have felt almost sure of success if he had

not been to leave Hertfordshire so very soon. But here she

did injustice to the fire and independence of his character;

for it led him to escape out of Longbourn House the next

morning with admirable slyness, and hasten to Lucas Lodge

to throw himself at her feet. He was anxious to avoid the

notice of his cousins, from a conviction that, if they saw him

depart, they could not fail to conjecture his design, and he

was not willing to have the attempt known till its success

could be known likewise; for, though feeling almost secure.

and with reason, for Charlotte had been tolerably encourag-

ing, he was comparatively diffident since the adventure of

Wednesday. His reception, however, was of the most flat-

tering kind. Miss Lucas perceived him from an upper

window as he walked towards the house, and instantly set out

to meet him accidentally in the lane. But little had she

dared to hope that so much love and eloquence awaited her

there.

 

In as short a time as Mr. Collins's long speeches would

allow, everything was settled between them to the satisfac-

tion of both; and as they entered the house, he earnestly

 

 [275]

 
{{prhprp276.jpg}}

 

entreated her to name the day that was to make him the

happiest of men; and though such a solicitation must be

waived for the present, the lady felt no inclination to trifle

with his happiness. The stupidity with which he was

favoured by nature must guard his courtship from any charm

that could make a woman wish for its continuance; and

Miss Lucas, who accepted him solely from the pure and

disinterested desire of an establishment, cared not how soon

that establishment were gained.

 

Sir William and Lady Lucas were speedily applied to for

their consent; and it was bestowed with a most joyful

alacrity. Mr. Collins's present circumstances made it a most

eligible match for their daughter, to whom they could give

little fortune; and his prospects of future wealth were ex-

ceedingly fair. Lady Lucas began directly to calculate, with

more interest than the matter had ever excited before, how

many years longer Mr. Bennet was likely to live; and Sir

William gave it as his decided opinion, that whenever Mr.

Collins should be in possession of the Longbourn estate, it

would be highly expedient that both he and his wife should

make their appearance at St. James's. The whole family

in short were properly overjoyed on the occasion. The

younger girls formed hopes of coming out a year or two

sooner than they might otherwise have done; and the boys

were relieved from their apprehension of Charlotte's dying

an old maid. Charlotte herself was tolerably composed. She

had gained her point, and had time to consider of it. Her

reflections were in general satisfactory. Mr. Collins, to be

sure, was neither sensible nor agreeable; his society was

irksome, and his attachment to her must be imaginary. But

still he would be her husband. Without thinking highly

either of men or of matrimony, marriage had always been

her object: it was the only honourable provision for well-

educated young women of small fortune, and, however un-

certain of giving happiness, must be their pleasantest

preservative from want. This preservative she had now ob-

tained; and at the age of twenty-seven, without having ever

been handsome, she felt all the good luck of it. The least

agreeable circumstance in the business was the surprise it

must occasion to Elizabeth Bennet, whose friendship she

 

 [276]

 
{{prhprp277.jpg}}

 

valued beyond that, of any other person. Elizabeth would

wonder, and probably would blame her: and though her reso-

lution was not to be shaken, her feelings must be hurt by

such a disapprobation. She resolved to give her the infor-

mation herself; and therefore charged Mr. Collins, when he

returned to Longbourn to dinner, to drop no hint of what had

passed before any of the family. A promise of secrecy was

of course very dutifully given, but it could not be kept with-

out difficulty; for the curiosity excited by his long absence

burst forth in such very direct questions on his return, as

required some ingenuity to evade, and he was at the same

time exercising great self-denial, for he was longing to pub-

lish his prosperous love.

 

As he was to begin his journey too early on the morrow

to see any of the family, the ceremony of leave-taking was

performed when the ladies moved for the night; and Mrs.

Bennet, with great politeness and cordiality, said how happy

they should be to see him at Longbourn again, whenever his

other engagements might allow him to visit them.

 

'My dear madam,' he replied, 'this invitation is particu-

larly gratifying, because it is what I have been hoping to

receive; and you may be very certain that I shall avail

myself of it as soon as possible.'

 

They were all astonished; and Mr. Bennet, who could by

no means wish for so speedy a return, immediately said. --

 

'But is there not danger of Lady Catherine's disapproba-

tion here, my good sir? You had better neglect your rela-

tions than run the risk of offending your patroness.'

 

'My dear sir,' replied Mr. Collins, 'I am particularly

obliged to you for this friendly caution, and you may depend

upon my not taking so material a step without her Ladyship's

concurrence.'

 

'You cannot be too much on your guard. Risk anything

rather than her displeasure; and if you find it likely to be

raised by your coming to us again, which I should think

exceedingly probable, stay quietly at home, and be satisfied

that we shall take no offence.'

 

'Believe me, my dear sir, my gratitude is warmly excited

by such affectionate attention; and, depend upon it, you will

speedily receive from me a letter of thanks for this as well

 

 [277]

 
{{prhprp278.jpg}}

 

as for every other mark of your regard during my stay in

Hertfordshire. As for my fair cousins, though my absence

may not be long enough to render it necessary, I shall now

take the liberty of wishing them health and happiness, not

excepting my cousin Elizabeth.'

 

With proper civilities, the ladies then withdrew; all of

them equally surprised to find that he meditated a quick

return. Mrs, Bennet wished to understand by it that he

thought of paying his addresses to one of her younger girls,

and Mary might have been prevailed on to accept him. She

rated his abilities much higher than any of the others: there

was a solidity in his reflections which often struck her; and

though by no means so clever as herself, she thought that, if

encouraged to read and improve himself by such an example

as hers, he might become a very agreeable companion. But

on the following morning every hope of this kind was done

away.

 

Miss Lucas called soon after breakfast, and in a private

conference with Elizabeth related the event of the day

before.

 

The possibility of Mr. Collins's fancying himself in love

with her friend had once occurred to Elizabeth within the

last day or two: but that Charlotte could encourage him

seemed almost as far from possibility as that she could en-

courage him herself; and her astonishment was consequently

so great as to overcome at first the bounds of decorum, and

she could not help crying out, --

 

'Engaged to Mr. Collins! my dear Charlotte, impossible!'

 

The steady countenance which Miss Lucas had com-

manded in telling her story gave way to a momentary con-

fusion here on receiving so direct a reproach; though, as it

was no more than she expected, she soon regained her com-

posure, and calmly replied. --

 

'Why should you be surprised, my dear Eliza? Do you

think it incredible that Mr. Collins should be able to procure

any woman's good opinion, because he was not so happy as

to succeed with you?'

 

But Elizabeth had now recollected herself; and, making

a strong effort for it, was able to assure her, with tolerable

firmness, that the prospect of their relationship was highly

 

 [278]

 
{{prhprp279.jpg}}

 

grateful to her, and that she wished her all imaginable

happiness.

 

'I see what you are feeling,' replied Charlotte: 'you must

be surprised, very much surprised, so lately as Mr. Collins

was wishing to marry you. But when you have had time to

think it all over, I hope you will be satisfied with what I have

done. I am not romantic, you know. I never was. I ask

only a comfortable home; and, considering Mr. Collins's

character, connections, and situation in life, I am convinced

that my chance of happiness with him is as fair as most

people can boast on entering the marriage state.'

 

Elizabeth quietly answered 'undoubtedly'; and, after an

awkward pause, they returned to the rest of the family.

Charlotte did not stay much longer; and Elizabeth was then

left to reflect on what she had heard. It was a long time

before she became at all reconciled to the idea of so unsuit-

able a match. The strangeness of Mr. Collins's making two

offers of marriage within three days was nothing in com-

parison of his being now accepted. She had always felt that

Charlotte's opinion of matrimony was not exactly like her

own; but she could not have supposed it possible that, when

called into action, she would have sacrificed every better

feeling to worldly advantage. Charlotte, the wife of Mr.

Collins, was a most humiliating picture! And to the pang of

a friend disgracing herself, and sunk in her esteem, was

added the distressing conviction that it was impossible for

that friend to be tolerably happy in the lot she had chosen.

 

 [279]

 
{{prhprp280.jpg}}

 

 

 

 

Chapter XXIII

 

ELIZABETH was sitting with her mother and sisters,

reflecting on what she had heard, and doubting

whether she was authorised to mention it, when Sir

William Lucas himself appeared, sent by his daughter to

announce her engagement to the family. With many com-

pliments to them, and much self-gratulation on the prospect

of a connection between the houses, he unfolded the matter,

-- to an audience not merely wondering, but incredulous; for

Mrs. Bennet, with more perseverance than politeness, pro-

tested he must be entirely mistaken; and Lydia, always un-

guarded and often uncivil, boisterously exclaimed, --

 

'Good Lord! Sir William, how can you tell such a story?

Do you not know that Mr. Collins wants to marry Lizzy?'

 

Nothing less than the complaisance of a courtier could

have borne without anger such treatment: but Sir William's

good-breeding carried him through it all; and though he

begged leave to be positive as to the truth of his information,

he listened to all their impertinence with the most forbearing

courtesy.

 

Elizabeth, feeling it incumbent on her to relieve him from

so unpleasant a situation, now put herself forward to confirm

his account, by mentioning her prior knowledge of it from

Charlotte herself; and endeavoured to put a stop to the ex-

clamations of her mother and sisters, by the earnestness of

her congratulations to Sir William, in which she was readily

joined by Jane, and by making a variety of remarks on the

happiness that might be expected from the match, the ex-

cellent character of Mr. Collins, and the convenient distance

of Hunsford from London.

 

Mrs. Bennet was, in fact, too much overpowered to say a

great deal while Sir William remained; but no sooner had

he left them than her feelings found a rapid vent. In the

first place, she persisted in disbelieving the whole of the

matter; secondly, she was very sure that Mr. Collins had

been taken in; thirdly, she trusted that they would never

 

 [280]

 
{{prhprp281.jpg}}

 

be happy together: and, fourthly, that the match might be

broken off. Two inferences, however, were plainly deduced

from the whole: one, that Elizabeth was the real cause of

all the mischief; and the other, that she herself had been

barbarously used by them all; and on these two points she

principally dwelt during the rest of the day. Nothing could

console and nothing appease her. Nor did that day wear

out her resentment. A week elapsed before she could see

Elizabeth without scolding her: a month passed away before

she could speak to Sir William or Lady Lucas without being

rude; and many months were gone before she could at all

forgive their daughter.

 

Mr. Bennet's emotions were much more tranquil on the

occasion, and such as he did experience he pronounced to be

of a most agreeable sort; for it gratified him, he said, to dis-

cover that Charlotte Lucas, whom he had been used to think

tolerably sensible, was as foolish as his wife, and more foolish

than his daughter!

 

Jane confessed herself a little surprised at the match: but

she said less of her astonishment than of her earnest desire

for their happiness; nor could Elizabeth persuade her to con-

sider it as improbable. Kitty and Lydia were far from envy-

ing Miss Lucas, for Mr. Collins was only a clergyman; and it

affected them in no other way than as a piece of news to

spread at Meryton.

 

Lady Lucas could not be insensible of triumph on being

able to retort on Mrs. Bennet the comfort of having a daugh-

ter well married; and she called at Longbourn rather oftener

than usual to say how happy she was, though Mrs. Bennet's

sour looks and ill-natured remarks might have been enough

to drive happiness away.

 

Between Elizabeth and Charlotte there was a restraint

which kept them mutually silent on the subject; and Elizabeth

felt persuaded that no real confidence could ever subsist

between them again. Her disappointment in Charlotte made

her turn with fonder regard to her sister, of whose rectitude

and delicacy she was sure her opinion could never be shaken,

and for whose happiness she grew daily more anxious, as

Bingley had now been gone a week, and nothing was heard

of his return.

 

 [281]

 
{{prhprp282.jpg}}

 

 

Jane had sent Caroline an early answer to her letter, and

was counting the days till she might reasonably hope to hear

again. The promised letter of thanks from Mr. Collins

arrived on Tuesday, addressed to their father, and written

with all the solemnity of gratitude which a twelvemonth's

abode in the family might have prompted. After discharging

his conscience on that head, he proceeded to inform them,

with many rapturous expressions, of his happiness in having

obtained the affection of their amiable neighbour, Miss Lucas,

and then explained that it was merely with the view of enjoy-

ing her society that he had been so ready to close with their

kind wish of seeing him again at Longbourn, whither he

hoped to be able to return on Monday fortnight; for Lady

Catherine, he added, so heartily approved his marriage, that

she wished it to take place as soon as possible, which he

trusted would be an unanswerable argument with his amiable

Charlotte to name an early day for making him the happiest

of men.

 

Mr. Collins's return into Hertfordshire was no longer a

matter of pleasure to Mrs. Bennet. On the contrary, she

was as much disposed to complain of it as her husband. It

was very strange that he should come to Longbourn instead

of to Lucas Lodge; it was also very inconvenient and exceed-

ingly troublesome. She hated having visitors in the house

while her health was so indifferent, and lovers were of all

people the most disagreeable. Such were the gentle murmurs

of Mrs. Bennet, and they gave way only to the greater dis-

tress of Mr. Bingley's continued absence.

 

Neither Jane nor Elizabeth was comfortable on this sub-

ject. Day after day passed away without bringing any other

tidings of him than the report which shortly prevailed in

Meryton of his coming no more to Netherfield the whole win-

ter; a report which highly incensed Mrs. Bennet, and which

she never failed to contradict as a most scandalous false-

hood.

 

Even Elizabeth began to fear -- not that Bingley was in-

different -- but that his sisters would be successful in keeping

him away. Unwilling as she was to admit an idea so de-

structive of Jane's happiness, and so dishonourable to the

stability of her lover, she could not prevent its frequently

 

 [282]

 
{{prhprp283.jpg}}

 

recurring. The united efforts of his two unfeeling sisters,

and of his overpowering friend, assisted by the attractions of

Miss Darcy and the amusements of London, might be too

much, she feared, for the strength of his attachment.

 

As for Jane, her anxiety under this suspense was, of

course, more painful than Elizabeth's: but whatever she felt

she was desirous of concealing; and between herself and

Elizabeth, therefore, the subject was never alluded to. But

as no such delicacy restrained her mother, an hour seldom

passed in which she did not talk of Bingley, express her im-

patience for his arrival, or even require Jane to confess that

if he did not come back she should think herself very ill

used. It needed all Jane's steady mildness to bear these

attacks with tolerable tranquillity.

 

Mr. Collins returned most punctually on the Monday fort-

night, but his reception at Longbourn was not quite so gra-

cious as it had been on his first introduction. He was too

happy, however, to need much attention; and, luckily for the

others, the business of love-making relieved them from a

great deal of his company. The chief of every day was

spent by him at Lucas Lodge, and he sometimes returned to

Longbourn only in time to make an apology for his absence

before the family went to bed.

 

Mrs. Bennet was really in a most pitiable state. The very

mention of anything concerning the match threw her into an

agony of ill-humour, and wherever she went she was sure of

hearing it talked of. The sight of Miss Lucas was odious to

her. As her successor in that house, she regarded her with

jealous abhorrence.

 

Whenever Charlotte came to see them, she concluded her

to be anticipating the hour of possession; and whenever

she spoke in a low voice to Mr. Collins, was convinced

that they were talking of the Longbourn estate, and resolv-

ing to turn herself and her daughters out of the house

as soon as Mr. Bennet was dead. She complained bitterly

of all this to her husband.

 

'Indeed, Mr. Bennet,' said she, 'it is very hard to think

that Charlotte Lucas should ever be mistress of this house,

that I should be forced to make way for her, and live to see

her take my place in it!'

 

 [283]

 
{{prhprp284.jpg}}

 

 

'My dear, do not give way to such gloomy thoughts. Let

us hope for better things. Let us flatter ourselves that I may

be the survivor.'

 

This was not very consoling to Mrs. Bennet; and, there-

fore, instead of making any answer, she went on as before.

 

'I cannot bear to think that they should have all this

estate. If it was not for the entail, I should not mind it.'

 

'What should not you mind?'

 

'I should not mind anything at all.'

 

'Let us be thankful that you are preserved from a state of

such insensibility.'

 

'I never can be thankful, Mr. Bennet, for anything about

the entail. How any one could have the conscience to entail

away an estate from one's own daughters I cannot under-

stand; and all for the sake of Mr. Collins, too! Why should

he have it more than anybody else?'

 

'I leave it to yourself to determine,' said Mr. Bennet.

 

 [284]

 
{{prhprp285.jpg}}

 

 

 

 

Chapter XXIV

 

MISS BINGLEY'S letter arrived, and put an end to

doubt. The very first sentence conveyed the as-

surance of their being all settled in London for

the winter, and concluded with her brother's regret at not

having had time to pay his respects to his friends in Hert-

fordshire before he left the country.

 

Hope was over, entirely over; and when Jane could attend

to the rest of the letter, she found little, except the pro-

fessed affection of the writer, that could give her any com-

fort. Miss Darcy's praise occupied the chief of it. Her

many attractions were again dwelt on; and Caroline boasted

joyfully of their increasing intimacy, and ventured to pre-

dict the accomplishment of the wishes which had been un-

folded in her former letter. She wrote also with great

pleasure of her brother's being an intimate of Mr. Darcy's

house, and mentioned with raptures some plans of the lat-

ter with regard to new furniture.

 

Elizabeth, to whom Jane very soon communicated the chief

of all this, heard it in silent indignation. Her heart was

divided between concern for her sister and resentment against

all others. To Caroline's assertion of her brother's being

partial to Miss Darcy she paid no credit. That he was really

fond of Jane she doubted no more than she had ever done;

and much as she had always been disposed to like him, she

could not think without anger, hardly without contempt, on

the easiness of temper, that want of proper resolution, which

now made him the slave of his designing friends, and led him

to sacrifice his own happiness to the caprice of their inclina-

tions. Had his own happiness, however, been the only sacri-

fice, he might have been allowed to sport with it in whatever

manner he thought best: but her sister's was involved in it,

as she thought he must be sensible himself. It was a subject,

in short, on which reflection would be long indulged, and

must be unavailing. She could think of nothing else: and

 

 [285]

 
{{prhprp286.jpg}}

 

yet, whether Bingley's regard had really died away, or were

suppressed by his friends' interference; whether he had been

aware of Jane's attachment, or whether it had escaped his

observation; whatever were the case, though her opinion of

him must be materially affected by the difference, her sister's

situation remained the same, her peace equally wounded.

 

A day or two passed before Jane had courage to speak of

her feeling to Elizabeth; but at last, on Mrs. Bennet's leaving

them together, after a longer irritation than usual about

Netherfield and its master, she could not help saying, --

 

'Oh that my dear mother had more command over herself;

she can have no idea of the pain she gives me by her con-

tinual reflections on him. But I will not repine. It cannot

last long. He will be forgot, and we shall all be as we

were before.'

 

Elizabeth looked at her sister with incredulous solicitude,

but said nothing.

 

'You doubt me,' cried Jane, slightly colouring; 'indeed

you have no reason. He may live in my memory as the

most amiable man of my acquaintance, but that is all. I

have nothing either to hope or fear, and nothing to re-

proach him with. Thank God I have not that pain. A

little time, therefore -- I shall certainly try to get the bet-

ter '

 

With a stronger voice she soon added, 'I have this com-

fort immediately, that it has not been more than an error of

fancy on my side, and that it has done no harm to any

one but myself.'

 

'My dear Jane,' exclaimed Elizabeth, 'you are too good.

Your sweetness and disinterestedness are really angelic; I

do not know what to say to you. I feel as if I had never

done you justice, or loved you as you deserve.'

 

Miss Bennet eagerly disclaimed all extraordinary merit,

and threw back the praise on her sister's warm affection.

 

'Nay,' said Elizabeth, 'this is not fair. You wish to think

all the world respectable, and are hurt if I speak ill of any-

body. I only want to think you perfect, and you set yourself

against it. Do not be afraid of my running into any excess,

of my encroaching on your privilege of universal goodwill.

You need not. There are few people whom I really love,

 

 [286]

 
{{prhprp287.jpg}}

 

and still fewer of whom I think well. The more I see of the

world, the more am I dissatisfied with it; and every day

confirms my belief of the inconsistency of all human char-

acters, and of the little dependence that can be placed on the

appearance of either merit or sense. I have met with two

instances lately: one I will not mention, the other is Char-

lotte's marriage. It is unaccountable! in every view it is un-

accountable!'

 

'My dear Lizzy, do not give way to such feelings as these.

They will ruin your happiness. You do not make allowance

enough for difference of situation and temper. Consider

Mr. Collins's respectability, and Charlotte's prudent, steady

character. Remember that she is one of a large family; that

as to fortune it is a most eligible match; and be ready to

believe, for everybody's sake, that she may feel something

like regard and esteem for our cousin.'

 

To oblige you, I would try to believe almost anything,

but no one else could be benefited by such a belief as this;

for were I persuaded that Charlotte had any regard for him,

I should only think worse of her understanding than I now

do of her heart. My dear Jane, Mr. Collins is a conceited,

pompous, narrow-minded, silly man: you know he is, as well

as I do; and you must feel, as well as I do, that the woman

who marries him cannot have a proper way of thinking.

You shall not defend her, though it is Charlotte Lucas. You

shall not, for the sake of one individual, change the meaning

of principle and integrity, nor endeavour to persuade your-

self or me that selfishness is prudence, and insensibility of

danger security for happiness.'

 

'I must think your language too strong in speaking of

both,' replied Jane; 'and i hope you will be convinced of it,

by seeing them happy together. But enough of this. You

alluded to something else. You mentioned two instances. I

cannot misunderstand you, but I entreat you, dear Lizzy, not

to pain me by thinking that person to blame, and saying your

opinion of him is sunk. We must not be so ready to fancy

ourselves intentionally injured. We must not expect a lively

young man to be always so guarded and circumspect. It is

very often nothing but our own vanity that deceives us.

Women fancy admiration means more than it docs.'

 

 [287]

 
{{prhprp288.jpg}}

 

 

'And men take care that they should.'

 

'If it is designedly done, they cannot be justified; but I

have no idea of there being so much design in the world as

some persons imagine.'

 

'I am far from attributing any part of Mr. Bingley's

conduct to design,' said Elizabeth; 'but, without scheming

to do wrong, or to make others unhappy, there may be error

and there may be misery. Thoughtlessness, want of atten-

tion to other people's feelings, and want of resolution, will

do the business.'

 

'And do you impute it to either of those?'

 

'Yes; to the last. But if I go on I shall displease you

by saying what I think of persons you esteem. Stop me

whilst you can.'

 

'You persist, then, in supposing his sisters influence him.'

 

'Yes, in conjunction with his friend.'

 

'I cannot believe it. Why should they try to influence

him? They can only wish his happiness; and if he is

attached to me no other woman can secure it.'

 

'Your first position is false. They may wish many things

besides his happiness: they may wish his increase of wealth

and consequence: they may wish him to marry a girl who

has all the importance of money, great connections, and

pride.'

 

'Beyond a doubt they do wish him to choose Miss Darcy,'

replied Jane; 'but this may be from better feelings than you

are supposing. They have known her much longer than they

have known me; no wonder if they love her better. But,

whatever may be their own wishes, it is very unlikely they

should have opposed their brother's. What sister would

think herself at liberty to do it, unless there were something

very objectionable? If they believed him attached to me

they would not try to part us; if he were so they could not

succeed. By supposing such an affection, you make every-

body acting unnaturally and wrong, and me most unhappy.

Do not distress me by the idea. I am not ashamed of having

been mistaken -- or, at least it is slight, it is nothing in

comparison of what I should feel in thinking ill of him or his

sisters. Let me take it in the best light, in the light in which

it may be understood.'

 

 [288]

 
{{prhprp289.jpg}}

 

 

Elizabeth could not oppose such a wish; and from this

time Mr. Bingley's name was scarcely ever mentioned be-

tween them.

 

Mrs. Bennet still continued to wonder and repine at his

returning no more; and though a day seldom passed in which

Elizabeth did not account for it clearly, there seemed little

chance of her ever considering it with less perplexity. Her

daughter endeavoured to convince her of what she did not

believe herself, that his attentions to Jane had been merely

the effect of a common and transient liking, which ceased

when he saw her no more; but though the probability of the

statement was admitted at the time, she had the same story

to repeat every day. Mrs. Bennet's best comfort was, that

Mr. Bingley must be down again in the summer.

 

Mr. Bennet treated the matter differently. 'So Lizzy,'

said he, one day, 'your sister is crossed in love, I find. I

congratulate her. Next to being married, a girl likes to be

crossed in love a little now and then. It is something to

think of, and gives her a sort of distinction among her com-

panions. When is your turn to come? You will hardly bear

to be long outdone by Jane. Now is your time. Here are

officers enough at Meryton to disappoint all the young ladies

in the country. Let Wickham be your man. He is a pleas-

ant fellow, and would jilt you creditably.'

 

'Thank you, sir, but a less agreeable man would satisfy

me. We must not all expect Jane's good fortune.'

 

True,' said Mr. Bennet; 'but it is a comfort to think

that, whatever of that kind may befall you, you have

an affectionate mother who will always make the most

of it.'

 

Mr. Wickham's society was of material service in dis-

pelling the gloom which the late perverse occurrences had

thrown on many of the Longbourn family. They saw him

often, and to his other recommendations was now added that

of general unreserve. The whole of what Elizabeth had

already heard, his claims on Mr. Darcy, and all that he had

suffered from him, was now openly acknowledged and

publicly canvassed; and everybody was pleased to think

how much they had always disliked Mr. Darcy before they

had known anything of the matter.

 

 [289]

 
{{prhprp290.jpg}}

 

 

Miss Bennet was the only creature who could suppose

there might be any extenuating circumstances in the case

unknown to the society of Hertfordshire: her mild and

steady candour always pleaded for allowances, and urged

the possibility of mistakes; but by everybody else Mr, Darcy

was condemned as the worst of men.

 

 [290]

 
{{prhprp291.jpg}}

 

 

 

 

Chapter XXV

 

AFTER a week spent in professions of love and schemes

of felicity, Mr. Collins was called from his amiable

Charlotte by the arrival of Saturday. The pain of

separation, however, might be alleviated on his side by

preparations for the reception of his bride, as he had rea-

son to hope that, shortly after his next return into Hert-

fordshire, the day would be fixed that was to make him

the happiest of men. He took leave of his relations at

Longbourn with as much solemnity as before; wished his

fair cousins health and happiness again, and promised their

father another letter of thanks.

 

On the following Monday, Mrs. Bennet had the pleasure

of receiving her brother and his wife, who came, as usual,

to spend the Christmas at Longbourn. Mr. Gardiner was a

sensible, gentlemanlike man, greatly superior to his sister, as

well by nature as education. The Netherfield ladies would

have had difficulty in believing that a man who lived by

trade, and within view of his own warehouse, could have

been so well bred and agreeable. Mrs. Gardiner who was

several years younger than Mrs. Bennet and Mrs. Philips,

was an amiable, intelligent, elegant woman, and a great

favourite with her Longbourn nieces. Between the two

eldest and herself especially there subsisted a very par-

ticular regard. They had frequently been staying with her

in town.

 

The first part of Mrs. Gardiner's business, on her arrival,

was to distribute her presents and describe the newest

fashions. When this was done, she had a less active part

to play. It became her turn to listen. Mrs. Bennet had

many grievances to relate, and much to complain of. They

had all been very ill used since she last saw her sister. Two

of her girls had been on the point of marriage, and after all

there was nothing in it.

 

'I do not blame Jane,' she continued, 'for Jane would

have got Mr. Bingley if she could. But, Lizzy! Oh, sister!

 

 [291]

 
{{prhprp292.jpg}}

 

it is very hard to think that she might have been Mr. Collins's

wife by this time, had not it been for her own perverseness.

He made her an offer in this very room, and she refused him.

The consequence of it is, that Lady Lucas will have a

daughter married before I have, and that Longbourn estate

is just as much entailed as ever. The Lucases are very

artful people, indeed, sister. They are all for what they can

get. I am sorry to say it of them, but it is. It makes me

very nervous and poorly, to be thwarted so in my own family,

and to have neighours who think of themselves before any-

body else. However, your coming just at this time is the

greatest of comforts, and I am very glad to hear what you

tell us of long sleeves.'

 

Mrs. Gardiner, to whom the chief of this news had been

given before, in the course of Jane and Elizabeth's corre-

spondence with her, made her sister a slight answer, and, in

compassion to her nieces, turned the conversation.

 

When alone with Elizabeth afterwards, she spoke more on

the subject. 'It seems likely to have been a desirable match

for Jane,' said she. 'I am sorry it went off. But these things

happen so often! A young man, such as you describe Mr,

Bingley, so easily falls in love with a pretty girl for a few

weeks, and, when accident separates them, so easily forgets

her, that these sort of inconstancies are very frequent.'

 

An excellent consolation in its way,' said Elizabeth; 'but it

will not do for us. We do not suffer by accident. It does not

often happen that the interference of friends will persuade a

young man of independent fortune to think no more of

a girl whom he was violently in love with only a few days

before.'

 

'But that expression of "violently in love" is so hackneyed,

so doubtful, so indefinite, that it gives me very little idea. It

is as often applied to feelings which arise only from a half-

hour's acquaintance, as to a real, strong attachment. Pray,

how violent was Mr. Bingley's love?'

 

'I never saw a more promising inclination; he was grow-

ing quite inattentive to other people, and wholly engrossed by

her. Every time they met, it was more decided and remark-

able. At his own ball he offended two or three young ladies

by not asking them to dance; and I spoke to him twice myself

 

 [292]

 
{{prhprp293.jpg}}

 

without receiving an answer. Could there be finer symptoms?

Is not general incivility the very essence of love?'

 

'Oh yes! of that kind of love which I suppose him to have

felt. Poor Jane! I am sorry for her, because, with her dis-

position, she may not get over it immediately. It had better

have happened to you, Lizzy; you would have laughed your

self out of it sooner. But do you think she would be pre-

vailed on to go back with us? Change of scene might be of

service -- and perhaps a little relief from home may be as

useful as anything.'

 

Elizabeth was exceedingly pleased with this proposal, and

felt persuaded of her sister's ready acquiescence.

 

'I hope,' added Mrs. Gardiner, 'that no consideration with re-

gard to this young man will influence her. We live in so dif-

ferent a part of town, all our connections are so different, and,

as you well know, we go out so little, that it is very improb-

able they should meet at all, unless he really comes to sec her.'

 

'And that is quite impossible; for he is now in the custody

of his friend, and Mr. Darcy would no more suffer him to call

on Jane in such a part of London! My dear aunt, how could

you think of it? Mr. Darcy may, perhaps, have heard of

such a place as Gracechurch Street, but he would hardly think

a month's ablution enough to cleanse him from its impurities,

were he once to enter it, and depend upon it, Mr. Bingley

never stirs without him.'

 

'So much the better. I hope they will not meet at all. But

does not Jane correspond with his sister? She will not be

able to help calling.'

 

'She will drop the acquaintance entirely.'

 

Rut, in spite of the certainty in which Elizabeth affected

to place this point, as well as the still more interesting one

of Bingley's being withheld from seeing Jane, she felt a

solicitude on the subject which convinced her, on examina-

tion, that she did not consider it entirely hopeless. It was

possible, and sometimes she thought it probable, that his af-

fection might be reanimated, and the influence of his friends

successfully combated by the more natural influence of

Jane's attractions.

 

Miss Bennet accepted her aunt's invitation with pleasure:

and the Bingleys were no otherwise in her thoughts at the

 

 [293]

 
{{prhprp294.jpg}}

 

same time than as she hoped, by Caroline's not living in the

same house with her brother, she might occasionally spend

a morning with her, without any danger of seeing him.

 

The Gardiners stayed a week at Longbourn; and what

with the Philipses, the Lucases, and the officers, there was

not a day without its engagement. Mrs. Bennet had so

carefully provided for the entertainment of her brother and

sister, that they did not once sit down to a family dinner.

When the engagement was for home, some of the officers

always made part of it, of which officers Mr. Wickham was

sure to be one; and on these occasions Mrs. Gardiner, ren-

dered suspicious by Elizabeth's warm commendation of him,

narrowly observed them both. Without supposing them,

from what she saw, to be very seriously in love, their prefer-

ence of each other was plain enough to make her a little un-

easy; and she resolved to speak to Elizabeth on the subject

before she left Hertfordshire, and represent to her the im-

prudence of encouraging such an attachment.

 

To Mrs. Gardiner Wickham had one means of affording

pleasure, unconnected with his general powers. About ten

or a dozen years ago, before her marriage, she had spent a

considerable time in that very part of Derbyshire to which

he belonged. They had, therefore, many acquaintance in

common; and, though Wickham had been little there since

the death of Darcy's father, five years before, it was yet in

his power to give her fresher intelligence of her former

friends than she had been in the way of procuring.

 

Mrs. Gardiner had seen Pemberley, and known the late

Mr. Darcy by character perfectly well. Here, consequently,

was an inexhaustible subject of discourse. In comparing her

recollection of Pemberley with the minute description which

Wickham could give, and in bestowing her tribute of praise

on the character of its late possessor, she was delighting

both him and herself. On being made acquainted with the

present Mr. Darcy's treatment of him, she tried to remember

something of that gentleman's reputed disposition, when

quite a lad, which might agree with it; and was confident,

at last, that she recollected having heard Mr. Fitzwilliam

Darcy formerly spoken of as a very proud, ill-natured boy.

 

 [294]

 
{{prhprp295.jpg}}

 

 

 

 

Chapter XXVI

 

MRS. GARDINER'S caution to Elizabeth was punc-

tually and kindly given on the first favourable op-

portunity of speaking to her alone: after honestly

telling her what she thought, she thus went on: --

 

'You are too sensible a girl. Lizzy, to fall in love merely

because you are warned against it; and, therefore, I am not

afraid of speaking openly. Seriously, I would have you be

on your guard. Do not involve yourself, or endeavour to

involve him, in an affection which the want of fortune would

make so very imprudent. I have nothing to say against him:

he is a most interesting young man; and if he had the

fortune he ought to have, I should think you could not do

better. But as it is -- you must not let your fancy run away

with you. You have sense, and we all expect you to use it.

Your father would depend on your resolution and good con-

duct, I am sure. 'S'ou must not disappoint your father.'

 

'My dear aunt, this is being serious indeed.'

 

'Yes, and I hope to engage you to be serious likewise.'

 

'Well, then, you need not be under any alarm. I will

take care of myself, and of Mr. Wickham too. He shall

not be in love with me, if I can prevent it.'

 

'Elizabeth, you are not serious now.'

 

'I beg your pardon. I will try again. At present I am

not in love with Mr. Wickham; no, I certainly am not. But

he is, beyond all comparison, the most agreeable man I ever

saw -- and if he becomes really attached to me -- I believe it

will be better that he should not. I see the imprudence of

it. Oh, that abominable Mr. Darcy! My father's opinion

of me does me the greatest honour; and I should be miserable

to forfeit it. My father, however, is partial to Mr. Wick-

ham. In short, my dear aunt, I should be very sorry to be

the means of making any of you unhappy; but since we

see, every day, that where there is affection young people

are seldom withheld, by immediate want of fortune, from

 

 [295]

 
{{prhprp296.jpg}}

 

entering into engagements with each other, how can I

promise to be wiser than so many of my fellow-creatures,

if I am tempted, or how am I even to know that it would

be wisdom to resist? All that I can promise you, therefore,

is not to be in a hurry. I will not be in a hurry to believe

myself his first object. When I am in company with him,

I will not be wishing. In short, I will do my best.'

 

'Perhaps it will be as well if you discourage his coming

here so very often. At least you should not remind your

mother of inviting him.'

 

'As I did the other day,' said Elizabeth, with a conscious

smile; 'very true it will be wise in me to refrain from that.

But do not imagine that he is always here so often. It is on

your account that he has been so frequently invited this

week. You know my mother's ideas as to the necessity of

constant company for her friends. But really, and upon

my honour, I will try to do what I think to be wisest; and

now I hope you are satisfied.'

 

Her aunt assured her that she was; and Elizabeth, having

thanked her for the kindness of her hints, they parted, -- a

wonderful instance of advice being given on such a point

without being resented.

 

Mr. Collins returned into Hertfordshire soon after it had

been quitted by the Gardiners and Jane; but, as he took up

his abode with the Lucases, his arrival was no great incon-

venience to Mrs. Bennet. His marriage was now fast ap-

proaching; and she was at length so far resigned as to think

it inevitable, and even repeatedly to say, in an ill-natured

tone, that she 'wished they might be happy.' Thursday was

to be the wedding day, and on Wednesday Miss Lucas paid

her farewell visit; and when she rose to take leave, Elizabeth,

ashamed of her mother's ungracious and reluctant good

wishes, and sincerely affected herself, accompanied her out

of the room. As they went downstairs together, Charlotte

said, --

 

'I shall depend on hearing from you very often, Eliza.'

 

'That you certainly shall.'

 

'And I have another favour to ask. Will you come and

see me?'

 

'We shall often meet, I hope, in Hertfordshire.'

 

 [296]

 
{{prhprp297.jpg}}

 

 

'I am not likely to leave Kent for some time. Promise

me, therefore, to come to Hunsford.'

 

Elizabeth could not refuse, though she foresaw little

pleasure in the visit.

 

'My father and Maria are to come to me in March,' added

Charlotte, 'and I hope you will consent to be of the party.

Indeed, Eliza, you will be as welcome to me as either of

them.'

 

The wedding took place: the bride and bridegroom set off

for Kent from the church door, and everybody had as much

to say or to hear on the subject as usual. Elizabeth soon

heard from her friend, and their correspondence was as

regular and frequent as it ever had been: that it should be

equally unreserved was impossible. Elizabeth could never

address her without feeling that all the comfort of intimacy

was over; and, though determined not to slacken as a cor-

respondent, it was for the sake of what had been rather

than what was. Charlotte's first letters were received with

a good deal of eagerness: there could not but be curiosity

to know how she would speak of her new home, how she

would like Lady Catherine, and how happy she would dare

pronounce herself to be; though, when the letters were read,

Elizabeth felt that Charlotte expressed herself on every

point exactly as she might have foreseen. She wrote cheer-

fully, seemed surrounded with comforts, and mentioned

nothing which she could not praise. The house, furniture,

neighbourhood, and roads, were all to her taste, and Lady

Catherine's behaviour was most friendly and obliging. It

was Mr. Collins's picture of Hunsford and Rosings rationally

softened; and Elizabeth perceived that she must wait for

her own visit there to know the rest.

 

Jane had already written a few lines to her sister, to an-

nounce their safe arrival in London; and when she wrote

again, Elizabeth hoped it would be in her power to say

something of the Bingleys.

 

Her impatience for this second letter was as well rewarded

as impatience generally is. Jane had been a week in town,

without either seeing or hearing from Caroline. She ac-

counted for it, however, by supposing that her last letter to

her friend from Longbourn had by some accident been lost.

 

 [297]

 
{{prhprp298.jpg}}

 

 

'My aunt.' she continued, is going to-morrow into that

part of the town, and I shall take the opportunity of calling

in Grosvenor Street.'

 

She wrote again when the visit was paid, and she had seen

Miss Bingley. 'I did not think Caroline in spirits,' were her

words, 'but she was very glad to see me, and reproached me

for giving her no notice of my coming to London. I was

right, therefore; my last letter had never reached her. I

inquired after their brother, of course. He was well, but so

much engaged with Mr. Darcy, that they scarcely ever saw

him. I found that Miss Darcy was expected to dinner: I

wish I could see her. My visit was not long, as Caroline

and Mrs. Hurst were going out. I daresay I shall soon see

them here.'

 

Elizabeth shook her head over this letter. It convinced

her that accident only could discover to Mr. Bingley her

sister's being in town.

 

Four weeks passed away, and Jane saw nothing of him.

She endeavoured to persuade herself that she did not regret

it; but she could no longer be blind to Miss Bingley's in-

attention. After waiting at home every morning for a

fortnight, and inventing every evening a fresh excuse for

her, the visitor did at last appear; but the shortness of her

stay, and, yet more, the alteration of her manner, would

allow Jane to deceive herself no longer. The letter which

she wrote on this occasion to her sister will prove what

she felt: --

 

'My dearest Lizzy will, I am sure, be incapable of triumphing in

her better judgment, at my expense, when I confess myself to have

been entirely deceived in Miss Bingley's regard for me. But, my

dear sister, though the event has proved you right, do not think

me obstinate if I still assert that, considering what her behaviour

was, my confidence was as natural as your suspicion. I do not at

all comprehend her reason for wishing to be intimate with me; but

if the same circumstances were to happen again, I am sure I should

be deceived again. Caroline did not return my visit till yesterday;

and not a note, not a line, did I receive in the meantime. When

she did come, it was very evident that she had no pleasure in it:

she made a slight, formal apology for not calling before, said not a

word of wishing to see me again, and was, in every respect, so altered

a creature, that when she went away I was perfectly resolved to

continue the acquaintance no longer. I pity, though I cannot help

 

 [298]

 
{{prhprp299.jpg}}

 

blaming, her. She was very wrong in singling me out as she did;

I can safely say that every advance to intimacy began on her side.

But I pity her, because she must feel that she has been acting wrong.

and because I am very sure that anxiety for her brother is the

cause of it. I need not explain myself farther: and though we

know this anxiety to be quite needless, yet if she feels it, it will

easily account for her behaviour to me; and so deservedly dear as

he is to his sister, whatever anxiety she may feel on his behalf is

natural and amiable. I cannot but wonder, however, at her having

any such fears now, because if he had at all cared about me, we must

have met long, long ago. He knows of my being in town, I am

certain, from something she said herself; and yet it would seem, by

her manner of talking, as if she wanted to persuade herself that he

is really partial to Miss Darcy. I cannot understand it. If I were

not afraid of judging harshly, I should be almost tempted to say

that there is a strong appearance of duplicity in all this. But I

will endeavour to banish every painful thought, and think only of

what will make me happy, your affection, and the invariable kindness

of my dear uncle and aunt. Let me hear from you very soon. Miss

Bingley said something of his never returning to Netherfield again,

of giving up the house, but not with any certainty. We had better

not mention it. I am extremely glad that you have such pleasant

accounts from our friends at Hunsford. Pray go to see them, with

Sir William and Maria. I am sure you will be very comfortable

there. Yours,' etc.

 

This letter gave Elizabeth some pain; but her spirits

returned, as she considered that Jane would no longer be

duped, by the sister at least. All expectation from the

brother was now absolutely over. She would not even wish

for any renewal of his attentions. His character sank on

every review of it; and, as a punishment for him, as well

as a possible advantage to Jane, she seriously hoped he

might really soon marry Mr. Darcy's sister, as, by Wickham's

account, she would make him abundantly regret what he

had thrown away.

 

Mrs. Gardiner about this time reminded Elizabeth of her

promise concerning that gentleman, and required informa-

tion; and Elizabeth had such to send as might rather give

contentment to her aunt than to herself. His apparent

partiality had subsided, his attentions were over, he was

the admirer of some one else. Elizabeth was watchful

enough to see it all, but she could see it and write of it

without material pain. Her heart had been but slightly

touched, and her vanity was satisfied with believing that she

would have been his only choice, had fortune permitted it.

 

 [299]

 
{{prhprp300.jpg}}

 

The sudden acquisition of ten thousand pounds was the

most remarkable charm of the young lady to whom he was

now rendering himself agreeable; but Elizabeth, less clear-

sighted perhaps in this case than in Charlotte's, did not

quarrel with him for his wish of independence. Nothing,

on the contrary, could be more natural; and, while able to

suppose that it cost him a few struggles to relinquish her,

she was ready to allow it a wise and desirable measure for

both, and could very sincerely wish him happy.

 

All this was acknowledged to Mrs. Gardiner; and, after

relating the circumstances, she thus went on: -- 'I am now

convinced, my 'dear aunt, that I have never been much in

love; for had I really experienced that pure and elevating

passion, I should at present detest his very name, and wish

him all manner of evil. But my feelings are not only

cordial towards him, they are even impartial towards Miss

King. I cannot find out that I hate her at all, or that I

am in the least unwilling to think her a very good sort of

girl. There can be no love in all this. My watchfulness has

been effectual; and though I should certainly be a more in-

teresting object to all my acquaintance, were I distractedly

in love with him, I cannot say that I regret my comparative

insignificance. Importance may sometimes be purchased

too dearly. Kitty and Lydia take his defection much more

to heart than I do. They are young in the ways of the

world, and not yet open to the mortifying conviction that

handsome young men must have something to live on, as

well as the plain.

 

 [300]

 
{{prhprp301.jpg}}

 

 

 

 

Chapter XXVII

 

WITH no greater events than these in the Longbourn

family, and otherwise diversified by little beyond

the walks to Meryton, sometimes dirty and some-

times cold, did January and February pass away. March

was to take Elizabeth to Hunsford. She had not at first

thought very seriously of going thither; but Charlotte, she

soon found, was depending on the plan, and she gradually

learned to consider it herself with greater pleasure as well

as greater certainty. Absence had increased her desire of

seeing Charlotte again, and weakened her disgust of Mr.

Collins. There was novelty in the scheme; and as, with

such a mother and such uncompanionable sisters, home

could not be faultless, a little change was not unwelcome

for its own sake. The journey would, moreover, give her a

peep at Jane; and, in short, as the time drew near, she

would have been very sorry for any delay. Everything,

however, went on smoothly, and was finally settled accord-

ing to Charlotte's first sketch. She was to accompany Sir

William and his second daughter. The improvement of

spending a night in London was added in time, and the plan

became perfect as plan could be.

 

The only pain was in leaving her father, who would

certainly miss her, and who, when it came to the point, so

little liked her going, that he told her to write to him, and

almost promised to answer her letter.

 

The farewell between herself and Mr. Wickham was

perfectly friendly; on his side even more. His present

pursuit could not make him forget that Elizabeth had been

the first to excite and to deserve his attention, the first to

listen and to pity, the first to be admired: and in his manner

of bidding her adieu, wishing her every enjoyment, remind-

ing her of what she was to expect in Lady Catherine de

Bourgh, and trusting their opinion of her -- their opinion

of everybody -- would always coincide, there was a solicitude,

an interest, which she felt must ever attach her to him

 

 [301]

 
{{prhprp302.jpg}}

 

with a most sincere regard; and she parted from him con-

vinced that, whether married or single, he must always be

her model of the amiable and pleasing.

 

Her fellow-travellers the next day were not of a kind to

make her think him less agreeable. Sir William Lucas, and

his daughter Maria, a good-humoured girl, but as empty-

headed as himself, had nothing to say that could be worth

hearing, and were listened to with about as much delight

as the rattle of the chaise. Elizabeth loved absurdities, but

she had known Sir William's too long. He could tell her

nothing new of the wonders of his presentation and knight-

hood; and his civilities were worn out like his information.

 

It was a journey of only twenty-four miles, and they be-

gan it so early as to be in Gracechurch Street by noon. As

they drove to Mr. Gardiner's door, Jane was at a drawing-

room window watching their arrival: when they entered the

passage, she was there to welcome them, and Elizabeth, look-

ing earnestly in her face, was pleased to see it healthful and

lovely as ever. On the stairs were a troop of little boys and

girls, whose eagerness for their cousin's appearance would

not allow them to wait in the drawing-room, and whose shy-

ness, as they had not seen her for a twelvemonth, prevented

their coming lower. All was joy and kindness. The day

passed most pleasantly away; the morning in bustle and shop-

ping, and the evening at one of the theatres.

 

Elizabeth then contrived to sit by her aunt. Their first

subject was her sister; and she was more grieved than aston-

ished to hear, in reply to her minute inquiries, that though

Jane always struggled to support her spirits, there were

periods of dejection. It was reasonable, however, to hope

that they would not continue long. Mrs. Gardiner gave her

the particulars also of Miss Bingley's visit in Gracechurch

Street, and repeated conversations occurring at different

times between Jane and herself, which proved that the former

had, from her heart, given up the acquaintance.

 

Mrs. Gardiner then rallied her niece on Wickham's deser-

tion, and complimented her on bearing it so well.

 

'But, my dear Elizabeth,' she added, 'what sort of girl is

Miss King? I should be sorry to think our friend mer-

cenary.'

 

 [302]

 
{{prhprp303.jpg}}

 

 

'Pray, my dear aunt, what is the difference in matrimonial

affairs between the mercenary and the prudent motive?

Where does discretion end, and avarice begin? Last Christ-

mas you were afraid of his marrying me, because it would be

imprudent; and now, because he is trying to get a girl with

only ten thousand pounds, you want to find out that he is

mercenary.'

 

'If you will only tell me what sort of girl Miss King is, I

shall know what to think.'

 

'She is a very good kind of girl, I believe. I know no

harm of her.'

 

'But he paid her not the smallest attention till her grand-

father's death made her mistress of this fortune?'

 

'No -- why should he? If it were not allowable for him to

gain my affections, because I had no money, what occasion

could there be for making love to a girl whom he did not care

about, and who was equally poor?'

 

'But there seems indelicacy in directing his attentions

towards her so soon after this event.'

 

'A man in distressed circumstances has not time for all

those elegant decorums with other people may observe. If

she does not object to it, why should we?'

 

'Her not objecting does not justify him. It only shows

her being deficient in something herself -- sense or feeling.'

 

'Well,' cried Elizabeth, 'have it as you choose. He shall

be mercenary, and she shall be foolish,'

 

'No, Lizzy, that is what I do not choose. I should be

sorry, you know, to think ill of a young man who has lived so

long in Derbyshire.'

 

'Oh, if that is all, I have a very poor opinion of young men

who live in Derbyshire; and their intimate friends who live

in Hertfordshire are not much better. I am sick of them all.

Thank Heaven! I am going to-morrow where I shall find a

man who has not one agreeable quality, who has neither

manner nor sense to recommend him. Stupid men are the

only ones worth knowing after all.'

 

'Take care, Lizzy; that speech savours strongly of dis-

appointment.'

 

Before they were separated by the conclusion of the play,

she had the unexpected happiness of an invitation to accom-

 

 [303]

 
{{prhprp304.jpg}}

 

pany her uncle and aunt in a tour of pleasure which they pro-

posed taking in the summer.

 

'We have not quite determined how far it shall carry us,'

said Mrs. Gardiner; 'but perhaps, to the Lakes.'

 

No scheme could have been more agreeable to Elizabeth,

and her acceptance of the invitation was most ready and

grateful. 'My dear, dear aunt,' she rapturously cried, 'what

delight! what felicity! You give me fresh life and vigour.

Adieu to disappointment and spleen. What are men to rocks

and mountains? Oh, what hours of transport we shall spend!

And when we do return, it shall not be like other travellers,

without being able to give an accurate idea of anything. We

will know where we have gone -- we will recollect what we

have seen. Lakes, mountains, and rivers, shall not be

jumbled together in our imaginations; nor, when we attempt

to describe any particular scene, will we begin quarrelling

about its relative situation. Let our first effusions be less

insupportable than those of the generality of travellers.'

 

 [304]

 
{{prhprp305.jpg}}

 

 

 

 

Chapter XXVIII

 

EVERY object in the next day's journey was new and in-

teresting to Elizabeth; and her spirits were in a state

of enjoyment; for she had seen her sister looking so

well as to banish all fear for her health, and the prospect

of her northern tour was a constant source of delight.

 

When they left the highroad for the lane to Hunsford,

every eye was in search of the Parsonage, and every turning

expected to bring it in view. The paling of Rosings Park

was their boundary on one side. Elizabeth smiled at the

recollection of all that she had heard of its inhabitants.

 

At length the Parsonage was discernible. The garden

sloping to the road, the house standing in it, the green pales

and the laurel hedge, everything declared they were arriving.

Mr. Collins and Charlotte appeared at the door, and the

carriage stopped at the small gate, which led by a short gravel

walk to the house, amidst the nods and smiles of the whole

party. In a moment they were all out of the chaise, rejoicing

at the sight of each other. Mrs. Collins welcomed her friend

with the liveliest pleasure, and Elizabeth was more and more

satisfied with coming, when she found herself so affection-

ately received. She saw instantly that her cousin's manners

were not altered by his marriage: his formal civility was just

what it had been; and he detained her some minutes at the

gate to hear and satisfy his inquiries after all her family.

They were then, with no other delay than his pointing out

the neatness of the entrance, taken into the house; and as

soon as they were in the parlour, he welcomed them a second

time, with ostentatious formality, to his humble abode, and

punctually repeated all his wife's offers of refreshment.

 

Elizabeth was prepared to sec him in his glory: and she

could not help fancying that in displaying the good propor-

tion of the room, its aspect, and its furniture, he addressed

himself particularly to her, as if wishing to make her feel

what she had lost in refusing him. But though everything

 

 [305]

 
{{prhprp306.jpg}}

 

seemed neat and comfortable, she was not able to gratify

him by any sigh of repentance; and rather looked with won-

der at her friend, that she could have so cheerful an air

with such a companion. When Air. Collins said anything of

which his wife might reasonably be ashamed, which certainly

was not seldom, she involuntarily turned her eye on Char-

lotte. Once or twice she could discern a faint blush; but in

general Charlotte wisely did not hear. After sitting long

enough to admire every article of furniture in the room, from

the sideboard to the fender, to give an account of their

journey, and of all that had happened in London, Mr. Collins

invited them to take a stroll in the garden, which was large

and well laid out, and to the cultivation of which he attended

himself. To work in his garden was one of his most re-

spectable pleasures; and Elizabeth admired the command of

countenance with which Charlotte talked of the health ful-

ness of the exercise, and owned she encouraged it as much

as possible. Here, leading the way through every walk and

cross walk, and scarcely allowing them an interval to utter

the praises he asked for, every view was pointed out with

a minuteness which left beauty entirely behind. He could

number the fields in every direction, and could tell how many

trees there were in the most distant clump. But of all the

views which his garden, or which the country or the king-

dom could boast, none were to be compared with the pros-

pect of Rosings, afforded by an opening in the trees that

bordered the park nearly opposite the front of his house. It

was a handsome modern building, well situated on rising

ground.

 

From his garden, Mr. Collins would have led them round

his two meadows; but the ladies, not having shoes to en-

counter the remains of a white frost, turned back; and while

Sir William accompanied him, Charlotte took her sister and

friend over the house, extremely well pleased, probably, to

have the opportunity of showing it without her husband's

help. It was rather small, but well built and convenient; and

everything was fitted up and arranged with a neatness and

consistency of which Elizabeth gave Charlotte all the credit.

When Mr. Collins could be forgotten, there was really a

great air of comfort throughout, and by Charlotte's evident

 

 [306]

 
{{prhprp307.jpg}}

 

enjoyment of it. Elizabeth supposed he must be often for-

gotten.

 

She had already learnt that Lady Catherine was still in

the country. It was spoken of again while they were at din-

ner, when Mr. Collins joining in, observed, --

 

'Yes, Miss Elizabeth, you will have the honour of seeing

Lady Catherine de Bourgh on the ensuing Sunday at church,

and I need not say you will be delighted with her. She is

all affability and condescension, and I doubt not but you will

be honoured with some portion of her notice when service

is over. I have scarcely any hesitation in saying that she will

include you and my sister Maria in every invitation with

which she honours us during your stay here. Her behaviour

to my dear Charlotte is charming. We dine at Rosings twice

every week, and are never allowed to walk home. Her Lady-

ship's carriage is regularly ordered for us. I should say, one

of her Ladyship's carriages, for she has several.'

 

'Lady Catherine is a very respectable, sensible woman, in-

deed.' added Charlotte, 'and a most attentive neighbour.'

 

'Very true, my dear, that is exactly what I say. She is

the sort of woman whom one cannot regard with too much

deference.'

 

The evening was spent chiefly in talking over Hertford-

shire news, and telling again what had been already written;

and when it closed, Elizabeth, in the solitude of her chamber,

had to meditate upon Charlotte's degree of contentment, to

understand her address in guiding, and composure in bearing

with, her husband, and to acknowledge that it was all done

very well. She had also to anticipate how her visit would

pass, the quiet tenor of their usual employments, the vexa-

tious interruptions of Mr. Collins, and the gaieties of their

intercourse with Rosings. A lively imagination soon settled

it all.

 

About the middle of the next day, as she was in her room

getting ready for a walk, a sudden noise below seemed to

speak the whole house in confusion; and, after listening a

moment, she heard somebody running upstairs in a violent

hurry, and calling loudly after her. She opened the door

and met Maria in the landing-place, who, breathless with

agitation, cried out, --

 

 [307]

 
{{prhprp308.jpg}}

 

 

'Oh, my clear Eliza! pray make haste and come into the

dining-room, for there is such a sight to be seen! I will not

tell you what it is. Make haste, and come down this moment.'

 

Elizabeth asked questions in vain; Maria would tell her

nothing more; and down they ran into the dining-room

which fronted the lane, in quest of this wonder; it was two

ladies, stopping in a low phaeton at the garden gate.

 

'And is this all?' cried Elizabeth. 'I expected at least that

the pigs were got into the garden, and here is nothing but

Lady Catherine and her daughter!'

 

'La! my dear,' said Maria, quite shocked at the mistake,

'it is not Lady Catherine. The old lady is Mrs. Jenkinson,

who lives with them. The other is Miss de Bourgh. Only

look at her. She is quite a little creature. Who would have

thought she could be so thin and small!'

 

'She is abominably rude to keep Charlotte out of doors in

all this wind. Why does she not come in?'

 

'Oh, Charlotte says she hardly ever does. It is the greatest

of favours when Miss de Bourgh comes in.'

 

'I like her appearance,' said Elizabeth, struck with other

ideas. 'She looks sickly and cross. Yes, she will do for him

very well. She will make him a very proper wife.'

 

Mr. Collins and Charlotte were both standing at the gate

in conversation with the ladies; and Sir William, to Eliza-

beth's high diversion, was stationed in the doorway, in

earnest contemplation of the greatness before him, and con-

stantly bowing whenever Miss de Bourgh looked that way.

 

At length there was nothing more to be said; the ladies

drove on, and the others returned into the house. Mr. Collins

no sooner saw the two girls than he began to congratulate

them on their good fortune, which Charlotte explained by

letting them know that the whole party was asked to dine at

Rosings the next day.

 

 [308]

 
{{prhprp309.jpg}}

 

 

 

 

Chapter XXIX

 

MR. COLLINS'S triumph, in consequence of this in-

vitation, was complete. The power of displaying

the grandeur of his patroness to his wondering

visitors, and of letting them see her civility towards him-

self and his wife, was exactly what he had wished for;

and that an opportunity of doing it should be given so soon

was such an instance of Lady Catherine's condescension

as he knew not how to admire enough.

 

'I confess,' said he. 'that I should not have been at all

surprised by her Ladyship's asking us on Sunday to drink

tea and spend the evening at Rosings. I rather expected,

from my knowledge of her affability, that it would hap-

pen. But who could have foreseen such an attention as

this? Who could have imagined that we should receive an

invitation to dine there (an invitation, moreover, includ-

ing the whole party) so immediately after your arrival?'

-- I am the less surprised at what has happened,' replied

Sir William, 'from that knowledge of what the manners of

the great really are, which my situation in life has al-

lowed me to acquire. About the court, such instances of

elegant breeding are not uncommon.'

 

Scarcely anything was talked of the whole day or next

morning but their visit to Rosings. Mr. Collins was care-

fully instructing them in what they were to expect, that

the sight of such rooms, so many servants, and so splendid

a dinner, might not wholly overpower them.

 

When the ladies were separating for the toilette, he said

to Elizabeth. --

 

'Do not make yourself uneasy, my dear cousin, about your

apparel. Lady Catherine is far from requiring that ele-

gance of dress in us which becomes herself and daughter.

I would advise you merely to put on whatever of your

clothes is superior to the rest, there is no occasion for any-

thing more. Lady Catherine will not think the worse of

 

 [309]

 
{{prhprp310.jpg}}

 

you for being simply dressed. She likes to have the dis-

tinction of rank preserved.'

 

While they were dressing, he came two or three times to

their different doors, to recommend their being quick, as

Lady Catherine very much objected to be kept waiting for

her dinner. Such formidable accounts of her Ladyship,

and her manner of living, quite frightened Maria Lucas,

who had been little used to company; and she looked for-

ward to her introduction at Rosings with as much apprehen-

sion as her father had done to his presentation at St.

James's.

 

As the weather was fine, they had a pleasant walk of

about half a mile across the park. Every park has its beauty

and its prospects; and Elizabeth saw much to be pleased

with, though she could not be in such raptures as Mr.

Collins expected the scene to inspire, and was but slightly

affected by his enumeration of the windows in front of

the house, and his relation of what the glazing altogether

had originally cost Sir Lewis de Bourgh.

 

When they ascended the steps to the hall, Maria's alarm

was every moment increasing, and even Sir William did

not look perfectly calm. Elizabeth's courage did not fail

her. She had heard nothing of Lady Catherine that spoke

her awful from any extraordinary talents or miraculous

virtue, and the mere stateliness of money and rank she

thought she could witness without trepidation.

 

From the entrance hall, of which Mr. Collins pointed

out, with a rapturous air, the fine proportion and finished

ornaments, they followed the servants through an ante-

chamber to the room where Lady Catherine, her daughter,

and Mrs. Jenkinson were sitting. Her Ladyship, with great

condescension, arose to receive them; and as Mrs. Collins

had settled it with her husband that the office of introduc-

tion should be hers, it was performed in a proper manner,

without any of those apologies and thanks which he would

have thought necessary.

 

In spite of having been at St. James's, Sir William was

so completely awed by the grandeur surrounding him, that

he had but just courage enough to make a very low bow,

and take his seat without saying a word; and his daughter,

 

 [310]

 
{{prhprp311.jpg}}

 

frightened almost out of her senses, sat on the edge of her

chair, not knowing which way to look. Elizabeth found

herself quite equal to the scene, and could observe the

three ladies before her composedly. Lady Catherine was

a tall, large woman, with strongly-marked features, which

might once have been handsome. Her air was not con-

ciliating, nor was her manner of receiving them such as

to make her visitors forget their inferior rank. She was

not rendered formidable by silence: but whatever she said

was spoken in so authoritative a tone as marked her self-

importance, and brought Mr. Wickham immediately to

Elizabeth's mind; and, from the observation of the day al-

together, she believed Lady Catherine to be exactly what he

had represented.

 

When, after examining the mother, in whose countenance

and deportment she soon found some resemblance of Mr.

Darcy, she turned her eyes on the daughter, she could al-

most have joined in Maria's astonishment at her being so

thin and so small. There was neither in figure nor face

any likeness between the ladies. Miss de Bourgh was pale

and sickly: her features, though not plain, were insignificant;

and she spoke very little, except in a low voice, to Mrs.

Jenkinson, in whose appearance there was nothing remark-

able, and who was entirely engaged in listening to what she

said, and placing a screen in the proper direction before

her eyes.

 

After sitting a few minutes, they were all sent to one

of the windows to admire the view, Mr. Collins attending

them to point out its beauties, and Lady Catherine kindly

informing them that it was much better worth looking at

in the summer.

 

The dinner was exceedingly handsome, and there were

all the servants, and all the articles of plate which Mr. Col-

lins had promised; and, as he had likewise foretold, he

took his seat at the bottom of the table, by her Ladyship's

desire, and looked as if he felt that life could furnish noth-

ing greater. He carved and ate and praised with de-

lighted alacrity; and every dish was commended first by

him, and then by Sir William, who was now enough re-

covered to echo whatever his son-in-law said, in a manner

 

 [311]

 
{{prhprp312.jpg}}

 

which Elizabeth wondered Lady Catherine could bear.

But Lady Catherine seemed stratified by their excessive

admiration, and gave most gracious smiles, especially

when any dish on the table proved a novelty to them. The

party did not supply much conversation. Elizabeth was

ready to speak whenever there was an opening, but she

was seated between Charlotte and Miss de Bourgh -- the

former of whom was engaged in listening to Lady Cath-

erine, and the latter said not a word to her all dinner-

time. Mrs. Jenkinson was chiefly employed in watching

how little Miss de Bourgh ate, pressing her to try some

other dish and fearing she was indisposed. Maria thought

speaking out of the question, and the gentlemen did nothing

but eat and admire.

 

When the ladies returned to the drawing-room, there was

little to be done but to hear Lady Catherine talk, w'hich

she did without any intermission till coffee came in, de-

livering her opinion on every subject in so decisive a man-

ner as proved that she was not used to have her judgment

controverted. She inquired into Charlotte's domestic con-

cerns familiarly and minutely, and gave her a great deal

of advice as to the management of them all; told her how

everything ought to be regulated in so small a family as hers,

and instructed her as to the care of her cows and her poultry.

Elizabeth found that nothing was beneath this great lady's

attention which could furnish her with an occasion for dic-

tating to others. In the intervals of her discourse with Mrs.

Collins, she addressed a variety of questions to Maria and

Elizabeth, but especially to the latter, of whose connections

she knew the least, and who, she observed to Mrs. Collins,

was a very genteel, pretty kind of girl. She asked her at dif-

ferent times how many sisters she had, whether they were

older or younger than herself, whether any of them were

likely to be married, whether they were handsome, where

they had been educated, what carriage her father kept, and

what had been her mother's maiden name? Elizabeth felt

all the impertinence of her questions, but answered them

very composedly. Lady Catherine then observed, --

 

'Your father's estate is entailed on Mr. Collins, I think?

For your sake,' turning to Charlotte, 'I am glad of it; but

 

 [312]

 
{{prhprp313.jpg}}

 

otherwise I see no occasion for entailing estates from the

female line. It was not thought necessary in Sir Lewis de

Bourgh's family. Do you play and sing, Miss Bennet?'

 

'A little.'

 

'Oh then -- some time or other we shall be happy to hear

you. Our instrument is a capital one, probably superior to --

you shall try it some day. Do your sisters play and sing?'

 

'One of them does.'

 

'Why did not you all learn? You ought all to have learned.

The Miss Webbs all play, and their father has not so good

an income as yours. Do you draw?'

 

'No, not at all.'

 

'What, none of you?'

 

'Not one.'

 

'That is very strange. But I suppose you had no oppor-

tunity. Your mother should have taken you to town every

spring for the benefit of masters.'

 

'My mother would have no objection, but my father hates

London.'

 

'Has your governess left you?'

 

'We never had any governess.'

 

'No governess! How was that possible? Five daughters

brought up at home without a governess! I never heard of

such a thing. Your mother must have been quite a slave to

your education.'

 

Elizabeth could hardly help smiling, as she assured her

that had not been the case.

 

'Then who taught you? who attended to you? without a

governess, you must have been neglected.'

 

'Compared with some families, I believe we were; but

such of us as wished to learn never wanted the means. We

were always encouraged to read, and had all the masters that

were necessary. Those who chose to be idle certainly

might.'

 

'Ay, no doubt: but that is what a governess will prevent;

and if I had known your mother, I should have advised her

most strenuously to engage one. I always say that nothing

is to be done in education without steady and regular instruc-

tion, and nobody but a governess can give it. It is wonderful

how many families I have been the means of supplying in

 

 [313]

 
{{prhprp314.jpg}}

 

that way. I am always glad to get a young person well placed

out. Four nieces of Mrs. Jenkinson are most delightfully

situated through my means; and it was but the other day that

I recommended another young person, who was merely acci-

dentally mentioned to me, and the family are quite delighted

with her. Mrs. Collins, did I tell you of Lady Metcalfe's

calling yesterday to thank me? She finds Miss Pope a treas-

ure. "Lady Catherine," said she, "you have given me a treas-

ure." Are any of your younger sisters out, Miss Bennet?'

 

'Yes, ma'am, all.'

 

'All! What, all five out at once? Very odd! And you only

the second. The younger ones out before the elder are mar-

ried! Your younger sisters must be very young?'

 

'Yes, my youngest is not sixteen. Perhaps she is full

young to be much in company. But, really, ma'am, I think it

would be very hard upon younger sisters that they should

not have their share of society and amusement, because the

elder may not have the means or inclination to marry early.

The last born has as good a right to the pleasures of youth as

the first. And to be kept back on such a motive! I think it

would not be very likely to promote sisterly affection or del-

icacy of mind.'

 

'Upon my word,' said her Ladyship, 'you give your opinion

very decidedly for so young a person. Pray, what is your

age?'

 

'With three younger sisters grown up,' replied Elizabeth,

smiling, 'your Ladyship can hardly expect me to own it.'

 

Lady Catherine seemed quite astonished at not receiving a

direct answer; and Elizabeth suspected herself to be the

first creature who had ever dared to trifle with so much

dignified impertinence.

 

You cannot be more than twenty, I am sure, -- therefore

you need not conceal your age.'

 

'I am not one-and-twenty.'

 

When the gentlemen had joined them, and tea was over,

the card-tables were placed. Lady Catherine, Sir William,

and Mr. and Mrs. Collins sat down to quadrille; and as Miss

de Bourgh chose to play at cassino, the two girls had the

honour of assisting Mrs. Jenkinson to make up her party.

Their table was superlatively stupid. Scarcely a syllable was

 

 [314]

 
{{prhprp315.jpg}}

 

uttered that did not relate to the game, except when Airs.

Jenkinson expressed her fears of Miss de Bourgh's being too

hot or too cold, or having too much or too little light. A

great deal more passed at the other table. Lady Catherine

was generally speaking -- stating the mistakes of the three

others, or relating some anecdote of herself. Mr. Collins was

employed in agreeing to everything her Ladyship said, thank-

ing her for every fish he won, and apologising if he thought

he won too many. Sir William did not say much. He was

storing his memory with anecdotes and noble names.

 

When Lady Catherine and her daughter had played as

long as they chose, the tables were broken up, the carriage

was offered to Mrs. Collins, gratefully accepted, and immedi-

ately ordered. The party then gathered round the fire to hear

Lady Catherine determine what weather they were to have on

the morrow. From these instructions they were summoned

by the arrival of the coach; and with many speeches of

thankfulness on Mr. Collins's side, and as many bows on Sir

William's, they departed. As soon as they had driven from

the door, Elizabeth was called on by her cousin to give her

opinion of all that she had seen at Rosings, which, for

Charlotte's sake, she made more favourable than it really

was. But her commendation, though costing her some trou-

ble, could by no means satisfy Mr. Collins, and he was very

soon obliged to take her Ladyship's praise into his own hands.

 

 [315]

 
{{prhprp316.jpg}}

 

 

 

 

Chapter XXX

 

SIR WILLIAM stayed only a week at Hunsford; but his

visit was long enough to convince him of his daugh-

ter's being most comfortably settled, and of her possess-

ing such a husband and such a neighbour as were not often

met with. While Sir William was with them, Mr. Collins de-

voted his mornings to driving him out in his gig, and show-

ing him the country: but when he went away, the whole

family returned to their usual employments, and Elizabeth

was thankful to find that they did not see more of her cousin

by the alteration; for the chief of the time between breakfast

and dinner was now passed by him either at work in the

garden, or in reading and writing, and looking out of win-

dow in his own book room, which fronted the road. The

room in which the ladies sat was backwards. Elizabeth at

first had rather wondered that Charlotte should not prefer

the dining parlour for common use; it was a better sized

room, and had a pleasanter aspect: but she soon saw that her

friend had an excellent reason for what she did, for Mr. Col-

lins would undoubtedly have been much less in his own

apartment had they sat in one equally lively; and she gave

Charlotte credit for the arrangement.

 

From the drawing-room they could distinguish nothing in

the lane, and were indebted to Mr. Collins for the knowledge

of what carriages went along, and how often especially Miss

de Bourgh drove by in her phaeton, which he never failed

coming to inform them of, though it happened almost every,

day. She not infrequently stopped at the parsonage, and

had a few minutes conversation with Charlotte, but was

scarcely ever prevailed on to get out.

 

Very few days passed in which Mr. Collins did not walk to

Rosings, and not many in which his wife did not think it

necessary to go likewise; and till Elizabeth recollected that

there might be other family livings to be disposed of, she

could not understand the sacrifice of so many hours. Now

 

 [316]

 
{{prhprp317.jpg}}

 

and then they were honoured with a call from her Ladyship,

and nothing escaped her observation that was passing in the

room during these visits. She examined into their employ-

ments, looked at their work, and advised them to do it

differently; found fault with the arrangement of the furni-

ture, or detected the housemaid in negligence; and if she

accepted any refreshment, seemed to do it only for the sake

of finding out that Mrs. Collins's joints of meat were too

large for her family.

 

Elizabeth soon perceived that though this great lady was

not in the commission of the peace for the county, she was

a most active magistrate in her own parish, the minutest

concerns of which were carried to her by Mr. Collins; and

whenever any of the cottagers were disposed to be quarrel-

some, discontented, or too poor, she sallied forth into the

village to settle their differences, silence their complaints,

and scold them into harmony and plenty.

 

The entertainment of dining at Rosings was repeated about

twice a week: and, allowing for the loss of Sir W'illiam, and

there being only one card-table in the evening, every such

entertainment was the counterpart of the first. Their other

engagements were few; as the style of living of the neigh-

bourhood in general was beyond the Collinses' reach. This,

however, was no evil to Elizabeth, and upon the whole she

spent her time comfortably enough: there were half-hours of

pleasant conversation with Charlotte, and the weather was

so fine for the time of year, that she had often great enjoy-

ment out of doors. Her favourite walk, and where she fre-

quently went while the others were calling on Lady Cath-

erine, was along the open grove which edged that side of the

park where there was a nice sheltered path, which no one

seemed to value but herself, and where she felt beyond the

reach of Lady Catherine's curiosity.

 

In this quiet way the first fortnight of her visit soon passed

away. Easter was approaching, and the week preceding it

was to bring an addition to the family at Rosings, which in

so small a circle must be important. Elizabeth had heard,

soon after her arrival, that Mr. Darcy was expected there in

the course of a few weeks; and though there were not many

of her acquaintance whom she did not prefer, his coming

 

 [317]

 
{{prhprp318.jpg}}

 

would furnish one comparatively new to look at in their

Rosings parties, and she might be amused in seeing how hope-

less Miss Bingley's designs on him were, by his behaviour

to his cousin, for whom he was evidently destined by Lady

Catherine; who talked of his coming with the greatest satis-

faction, spoke of him in terms of the highest admiration, and

seemed almost angry to find that he had already been fre-

quently seen by Miss Lucas and herself.

 

His arrival was soon known at the Parsonage; for Mr.

Collins was walking the whole morning within view of the

lodges opening into Hunsford Lane, in order to have the

earliest assurance of it; and, after making his bow as the

carriage turned into the park, hurried home with the great

intelligence. On the following morning he hastened to

Rosings to pay his respects. There were two nephews of

Lady Catherine to require them, for Mr. Darcy had brought

with him a Colonel Fitzwilliam, the younger son of his

uncle Lord; and, to the great surprise of all the party,

when Mr. Collins returned, the gentleman accompanied him.

Charlotte had seen them from her husband's room, crossing

the road, and immediately running into the other, told the

girls what an honour they might expect, adding, --

 

'I may thank you. Eliza, for this piece of civility. Mr.

Darcy would never have come so soon to wait upon me.'

 

Elizabeth had scarcely time to disclaim all right to the

compliment before their approach was announced by the door-

bell, and shortly afterwards the three gentlemen entered the

room. Colonel Fitzwilliam, who led the way, was about

thirty, not handsome, but in person and address most truly the

gentleman. Mr. Darcy looked just as he had been used to

look in Hertfordshire, paid his compliments, with his usual

reserve, to Mrs. Collins; and, whatever might be his feelings

towards her friend, met her with every appearance of com-

posure. Elizabeth merely courtesied to him, without saying

a word.

 

Colonel Fitzwilliam entered into conversation directly, with

the readiness and ease of a well-bred man, and talked very

pleasantly; but his cousin, after having addressed a slight

observation on the house and garden to Mrs. Collins, sat for

some time without speaking to anybody. At length, however,

 

 [318]

 
{{prhprp319.jpg}}

 

his civility was so far awakened as to inquire of Elizabeth

after the health of her family. She answered him in the usual

way; and, after a moment's pause, added, --

 

'My eldest sister has been in town these three months.

Have you never happened to see her there?'

 

She was perfectly sensible that he never had: but she

wished to see whether he would betray any consciousness of

what had passed between the Bingleys and Jane; and she

thought he looked a little confused as he answered that he

had never been so fortunate as to meet Miss Bennet. The

subject was pursued no further, and the gentlemen soon after-

wards went away.

 

 [319]

 
{{prhprp320.jpg}}

 

 

 

 

Chapter XXXI

 

COLONEL FITZWILLIAM'S manners were very much

admired at the Parsonage, and the ladies all felt that

he must add considerably to the pleasure of their en-

gagements at Rosings. It was some days, however, before

they received any invitation thither, for while there were

visitors in the house they could not be necessary; and it was

not till Easter-day, almost a week after the gentlemen's

arrival, that they were honoured by such an attention, and

then they were merely asked on leaving church to come

there in the evening. For the last week they had seen

very little of either Lady Catherine or her daughter. Colo-

nel Fitzwilliam had called at the Parsonage more than

once during the time, but Mr. Darcy they had only seen

at church.

 

The invitation was accepted, of course, and at a proper

hour they joined the party in Lady Catherine's drawing-room.

Her Ladyship received them civilly, but it was plain that their

company was by no means so acceptable as when she could

get nobody else; and she was, in fact, almost engrossed by

her nephews, speaking to them, especially to Darcy, much

more than to any other person in the room.

 

Colonel Fitzwilliam seemed really glad to see them: any-

thing was a welcome relief to him at Rosings; and Mrs.

Collins's pretty friend had, moreover, caught his fancy very

much. He now seated himself by her, and talked so agree-

ably of Kent and Hertfordshire, of travelling and staying at

home, of new books and music, that Elizabeth had never

been half so well entertained in that room before; and they

conversed with so much spirit and flow as to draw the atten-

tion of Lady Catherine herself, as well as of Mr. Darcy.

His eyes had been soon and repeatedly turned towards them

with a look of curiosity; and that her Ladyship, after a while,

shared the feeling, was more openly acknowledged, for she

did not scruple to call out, --

 

 [320]

 
{{prhprp321.jpg}}

 

 

'What is that you are saying, Fitzwilliam? What is it you

are talking of? What are you telling Miss Bennet? Let me

hear what it is.'

 

'We are speaking of music, madam,' said he, when no

longer able to avoid a reply.

 

'Of music! Then pray speak aloud. It is of all subjects

my delight. I must have my share in the conversation, if

you are speaking of music. There are few people in England,

I suppose, who have more true enjoyment of music than my-

self, or a better natural taste. If I had ever learnt, I should

have been a great proficient. And so would Anne, if her

health had allowed her to apply. I am confident that she

would have performed delightfully. How does Georgiana get

on. Darcy?'

 

Mr. Darcy spoke with affectionate praise of his sister's

proficiency.

 

'I am very glad to hear such a good account of her,' said

Lady Catherine; 'and pray tell her from me, that she cannot

expect to excel if she does not practise a great deal.'

 

'I assure you, madam, he replied, 'that she does not need

such advice. She practises very constantly.'

 

'So much the better. It cannot be done too much; and

when I next write to her, I shall charge her not to neglect it

on any account. I often tell young ladies that no excellence

in music is to be acquired without constant practice. I have

told Miss Bennet several times that she will never play really

well unless she practises more: and though Mrs. Collins has

no instrument, she is very welcome, as I have often told her,

to come to Rosings every day, and play on the pianoforte in

Mrs. Jenkinson's room. She would be in nobody's way, you

know, in that part of the house.'

 

Mr. Darcy looked a little ashamed of his aunt's ill-breeding,

and made no answer.

 

When coffee was over. Colonel Fitzwilliam reminded

Elizabeth of having promised to play to him; and she sat

down directly to the instrument. He drew a chair near her.

Lady Catherine listened to half a song, and then talked, as

before, to her other nephew; till the latter walked away from

her, and, moving with his usual deliberation towards the

pianoforte, stationed himself so as to command a full view

 

 [321]

 
{{prhprp322.jpg}}

 

of the fair performer's countenance. Elizabeth saw what he

was doing, and at the first convenient pause turned to him

with an arch smile, and said, --

 

'You mean to frighten me, Mr. Darcy, by coming in all

this state to hear me. But I will not be alarmed though

your sister docs play so well. There is a stubbornness

about me that never can bear to be frightened at the will

of others. My courage always rises with every attempt to

intimidate me.'

 

'I shall not say that you are mistaken,' he replied, 'because

you could not really believe me to entertain any design of

alarming you; and I have had the pleasure of your acquaint-

ance long enough to know that you find great enjoyment in

occasionally professing opinions which, in fact, are not your

own.'

 

Elizabeth laughed heartily at this picture of herself, and

said to Colonel Fitzwilliam, 'Your cousin will give you a very

pretty notion of me, and teach you not to believe a word I say.

I am particularly unlucky in meeting with a person so well

able to expose my real character, in a part of the world where

I had hoped to pass myself off with some degree of credit.

Indeed, Mr. Darcy, it is very ungenerous in you to mention

all that you knew to my disadvantage in Hertfordshire -- and.

give me leave to say, very impolitic too -- for it is provoking

me to retaliate, and such things may come out as will shock

your relations to hear.'

 

'I am not afraid of you.' said he, smilingly.

 

Tray let me hear what you have to accuse him of,' cried

Colonel Fitzwilliam. I should like to know how he behaves

among strangers.'

 

'You shall hear, then -- but prepare for something very

dreadful. The first time of my ever seeing him in Hertford-

shire, you must know, was at a ball -- and at this ball, what

do you think he did? He danced only four dances! I am

sorry to pain you, but so it was. He danced only four dances,

though gentlemen were scarce; and, to my certain knowledge,

more than one young lady was sitting down in want of a

partner. Mr. Darcy, you cannot deny the fact.'

 

'I had not at that time the honour of knowing any lady in

the assembly beyond my own party.'

 

 [322]

 
{{prhprp323.jpg}}

 

 

'True; and nobody can ever be introduced in a ballroom.

Well, Colonel Fitzwilliam, what do I play next? My fingers

wait your orders.'

 

'Perhaps,' said Darcy, 'I should have judged better had I

sought an introduction, but I am ill qualified to recommend

myself to strangers.'

 

'Shall we ask your cousin the reason of this?' said Eliza-

beth, still addressing Colonel Fitzwilliam. 'Shall we ask him

why a man of sense and education, and who has lived in the

world, is ill qualified to recommend himself to strangers?'

 

'I can answer your question,' said Fitzwilliam. 'without

applying to him. It is because he will not give himself the

trouble.'

 

'I certainly have not the talent which some people possess.'

said Darcy, 'of conversing easily with those I have never seen

before. I cannot catch their tone of conversation, or appear

interested in their concerns as I often see done.'

 

'My fingers,' said Elizabeth, 'do not move over this in-

strument in the masterly manner which I see so many

women's do. They have not the same force or rapidity, and

do not produce the same expression. But then I have always

supposed it to be my own fault -- because I would not take the

trouble of practising. It is not that I do not believe my

fingers as capable as any other woman's of superior exe-

cution.'

 

Darcy smiled and said, 'You are perfectly right. You

have employed your time much better. No one admitted to

the privilege of hearing you can think anything wanting.

We neither of us perform to strangers.'

 

Here they were interrupted by Lady Catherine, who called

out to know what they were talking of. Elizabeth immedi-

ately began playing again. Lady Catherine approached, and,

after listening for a few minutes, said to Darcy, --

 

'Miss Bennet would not play at all amiss if she practised

more, and could have the advantage of a London master.

She has a very good notion of fingering, though her taste is

not equal to Anne's. Anne would have been a delightful

performer, had her health allowed her to learn.'

 

Elizabeth looked at Darcy to see how cordially he assented

to his cousins praise: but neither at that moment nor at any

 

 [323]

 
{{prhprp324.jpg}}

 

other could she discern any symptom of love; and from the

whole of his behaviour to Miss de Bourgh she derived this

comfort for Miss Bingley, that he might have been just as

likely to marry her, had she been his relation.

 

Lady Catherine continued her remarks on Elizabeth's per-

formance, mixing with them many instructions on execution

and taste. Elizabeth received them with all the forbearance

of civility; and at the request of the gentlemen remained at

the instrument till her Ladyship's carriage was ready to take

them all home.

 

 [324]

 
{{prhprp325.jpg}}

 

 

 

 

Chapter XXXII

 

ELIZABETH was sitting by herself the next morning,

and writing to Jane, while Mrs. Collins and Maria

were gone on business into the village, when she was

startled by a ring at the door, the certain signal of a visitor.

As she had heard no carriage, she thought it not unlikely to

be Lady Catherine; and under that apprehension was putting

away her half-finished letter, that she might escape all im-

pertinent questions, when the door opened, and to her very

great surprise Mr. Darcy, and Mr. Darcy only, entered the

room.

 

He seemed astonished too on finding her alone, and apolo-

gised for his intrusion, by letting her know that he had under-

stood all the ladies to be within.

 

They then sat down, and when her inquiries after Rosings

were made, seemed in danger of sinking into total silence. It

was absolutely necessary, therefore, to think of something;

and in this emergency recollecting when she had seen him

last in Hertfordshire, and feeling curious to know what he

would say on the subject of their hasty departure, she

observed, --

 

'How very suddenly you all quitted Nether field last Novem-

ber, Mr. Darcy! It must have been a most agreeable surprise

to Mr. Bingley to see you all after him so soon: for, if I re-

collect right, he went but the day before. He and his sisters

were well, I hope, when you left London?'

 

'Perfectly so, I thank you.'

 

She found that she was to receive no other answer: and,

after a short pause, added, --

 

'I think I have understood that Mr. Bingley has not much

idea of ever returning to Netherfield again?'

 

'I have never heard him say so; but it is probable that

he may spend very little of his time there in future. He has

many friends, and he is at a time of life when friends and

engagements are continually increasing.'

 

'If he means to be but little at Netherfield, it would be

better for the neighbourhood that he should give up the place

 

 [325]

 
{{prhprp326.jpg}}

 

entirely, for then we might possibly get a settled family there.

But perhaps, Mr. Bingley did not take the house so much

for the convenience of the neighbourhood as for his own.

and we must expect him to keep or quit it on the same

principle.'

 

'I should not be surprised.' said Darcy, 'if he were to give

it up as soon as any eligible purchase offers.'

 

Elizabeth made no answer. She was afraid of talking

longer of his friend; and, having nothing else to say, was

now determined to leave the trouble of finding a subject to

him.

 

He took the hint and soon began with, 'This seems a very

comfortable house. Lady Catherine, I believe, did a great

deal to it when Mr. Collins first came to Hunsford.'

 

'I believe she did -- and I am sure she could not have

bestowed her kindness on a more grateful object.'

 

'Mr. Collins appears very fortunate in his choice of a wife.'

 

'Yes, indeed; his friends may well rejoice in his having

met with one of the very few sensible women who would have

accepted him, or have made him happy if they had. My

friend has an excellent understanding -- though I am not

certain that I consider her marrying Mr. Collins as the wisest

thing she ever did. She seems perfectly happy, however;

and, in a prudential light, it is certainly a very good match

for her.'

 

'It must be very agreeable to her to be settled within so

easy a distance of her own family and friends.'

 

'An easy distance do you call it? It is nearly fifty miles.'

 

'And what is fifty miles of good road? Little more than

half a day's journey. Yes. I call it a very easy distance.'

 

'I should never have considered the distance as one of the

advantages of the match,' cried Elizabeth. 'I should never

have said Mrs. Collins was settled near her family.'

 

'It is a proof of your own attachment to Hertfordshire.

Anything beyond the very neighbourhood of Longbourn, I

suppose, would appear far.'

 

As he spoke there was a sort of smile, which Elizabeth

fancied she understood; he must be supposing her to be

thinking of Jane and Netherfield, and she blushed as she

answered, --

 

 [326]

 
{{prhprp327.jpg}}

 

 

'I do not mean to say that a woman may not be settled

too near her family. The far and the near must be relative,

and depend on many varying circumstances. Where there is

fortune to make the expense of travelling unimportant, dis-

tance becomes no evil. But that is not the case here. Mr.

and Mrs. Collins have a comfortable income, but not such a

one as will allow of frequent journeys -- and I am persuaded

my friend would not call herself near her family under less

than half the present distance.'

 

Mr. Darcy drew his chair a little towards her, and said.

'You cannot have a right to such very strong local attach-

ment. You cannot have been always at Longbourn.'

 

Elizabeth looked surprised. The gentleman experienced

some change of feeling; he drew back his chair, took a news-

paper from the table, and, glancing over it, said, in a colder

voice, --

 

'Are you pleased with Kent?'

 

A short dialogue on the subject of the country ensued, on

either side calm and concise -- and soon put an end to by the

entrance of Charlotte and her sister, just returned from their

walk. The tete-a-tete surprised them. Mr. Darcy related the

mistake which had occasioned his intruding on Miss Bennet.

and, after sitting a few minutes longer, without saying much

to anybody, went away.

 

'What can be the meaning of this?' said Charlotte, as soon

as he was gone. 'My dear Eliza, he must be in love with

you, or he would never have called on us in this familiar way.'

 

But when Elizabeth told of his silence, it did not seem very

likely, even to Charlotte's wishes, to be the case; and, after

various conjectures, they could at last only suppose his visit

to proceed from the difficulty of finding anything to do, which

was the more probable from the time of year. All field sports

were over. Within doors there was Lady Catherine, books,

and a billiard table, but gentlemen cannot be always within

doors; and in the nearness of the Parsonage, or the pleasant-

ness of the walk to it, or of the people who lived in it, the

two cousins found a temptation from this period of walking

thither almost every day. They called at various times of the

morning, sometimes separately, sometimes together, and now

and then accompanied by their aunt. It was plain to them all

 

 [327]

 
{{prhprp328.jpg}}

 

that Colonel Fitzwilliam came because he had pleasure in

their society, a persuasion which of course recommended him

still more; and Elizabeth was reminded by her own satis-

faction in being with him, as well as by his evident admiration

of her former favourite, George Wickham; and though, in

comparing them, she saw there was less captivating softness

in Colonel Fitzwilliam's manners, she believed he might have

the best informed mind.

 

But why Mr. Darcy came so often to the Parsonage it was

more difficult to understand. It could not be for society, as

he frequently sat there ten minutes together without opening

his lips; and when he did speak, it seemed the effect of

necessity rather than of choice -- a sacrifice to propriety, not a

pleasure to himself. He seldom appeared really animated.

Mrs. Collins knew not what to make of him. Colonel Fitz-

william's occasionally laughing at his stupidity proved that he

was generally different, which her own knowledge of him

could not have told her; and as she would have liked to

believe this change the effect of love, and the object of that

love her friend Eliza, she set herself seriously to work to find

it out; she watched him whenever they were at Rosings, and

whenever he came to Hunsford; but without much success.

He certainly looked at her friend a great deal, but the expres-

sion of that look was disputable. It was an earnest, stead-

fast gaze, but she often doubted whether there were much

admiration in it, and sometimes it seemed nothing but absence

of mind.

 

She had once or twice suggested to Elizabeth the possibility

of his being partial to her, but Elizabeth always laughed at

the idea; and Mrs. Collins did not think it right to press the

subject, from the danger of raising expectations which might

only end in disappointment; for in her opinion it admitted

not of a doubt, that all her friend's dislike would vanish, if

she could suppose him to be in her power.

 

In her kind schemes for Elizabeth, she sometimes planned

her marrying Colonel Fitzwilliam. He was, beyond com-

parison, the pleasantest man: he certainly admired her, and

his situation in life was most eligible; but, to counterbalance

these advantages, Mr. Darcy had considerable patronage in

the church, and his cousin could have none at all.

 

 [328]

 
{{prhprp329.jpg}}

 

 

 

 

Chapter XXXIII

 

MORE than once did Elizabeth, in her ramble within

the park, unexpectedly meet Mr. Darcy. She felt all

the perverseness of the mischance that should bring

him where no one else was brought; and, to prevent its ever

happening again, took care to inform him, at first, that it was

a favourite haunt of hers. How it could occur a second

time, therefore, was very odd! Yet it did, and even the third.

It seemed like wilful ill-nature, or a voluntary penance: for

on these occasions is was not merely a few formal inquiries

and an awkward pause and then away, but he actually

thought it necessary to turn back and walk with her. He

never said a great deal, nor did she give herself the trouble

of talking or of listening much; but it struck her in the

course of their third rencounter that he was asking some odd

unconnected questions -- about her pleasure in being at Huns-

ford, her love of solitary walks, and her opinion of Mr. and

Mrs. Collins's happiness; and that in speaking of Rosings,

and her not perfectly understanding the house, he seemed to

expect that whenever she came into Kent again she would

be staying there too. His words seemed to imply it. Could

he have Colonel Fitzwilliam in his thoughts? She supposed,

if he meant anything, he must mean an allusion to what might

arise in that quarter. It distressed her a little, and she was

quite glad to find herself at the gate in the pales opposite the

Parsonage.

 

She was engaged one day, as she walked, in reperusing

Jane's last letter, and dwelling on some passages which

proved that Jane had not written in spirits, when, instead of

being again surprised by Mr. Darcy, she saw, on looking up,

that Colonel Fitzwilliam was meeting her. Putting away the

letter immediately, and forcing a smile, she said, --

 

'I did not know before that you ever walked this way.'

 

'I have been making the tour of the park,' he replied, 'as

I generally do every year, and intended to close it with a call

at the Parsonage. Are you going much farther?'

 

 [329]

 
{{prhprp330.jpg}}

 

 

'No. I should have turned in a moment.'

 

And accordingly she did turn, and they walked towards

the Parsonage together.

 

'Do you certainly leave Kent on Saturday?' said she.

 

'Yes -- if Darcy does not put it off again. But I am at his

disposal. He arranges the business just as he pleases.'

 

'And if not able to please himself in the arrangement, he

has at least great pleasure in the power of choice. I do not

know anybody who seems more to enjoy the power of doing

what he likes than Mr. Darcy.'

 

'He likes to have his own way very well,' replied Colonel

Fitzwilliam. 'But so we all do. It is only that he has better

means of having it than many others, because he is rich, and

many others are poor. I speak feelingly. A younger son,

you know, must be inured to self-denial and dependence.'

 

'In my opinion, the younger son of an earl can know very

little of either. Now, seriously, what have you ever known

of self-denial and dependence? When have you been pre-

vented by want of money from going wherever you chose

or procuring anything you had a fancy for?'

 

'These are home questions -- and perhaps I cannot say that

I have experienced many hardships of that nature. But in

matters of greater weight I may suffer from the want of

money. Younger sons cannot marry where they like.'

 

'Unless where they like women of fortune, which I think

they very often do.'

 

'Our habits of expense make us too dependent, and there

are not many in my rank of life who can afford to marry

without some attention to money.'

 

'Is this,' thought Elizabeth, 'meant for me?' and she col-

oured at the idea; but, recovering herself, said in a lively

tone, 'And pray, what is the usual price of an earl's younger

son? Unless the elder brother is very sickly, I suppose you

would not ask above fifty thousand pounds.'

 

He answered her in the same style, and the subject

dropped. To interrupt a silence which might make him fancy

her affected with what had passed, she soon afterwards

said, --

 

'I imagine your cousin brought you down with him chiefly

for the sake of having somebody at his disposal. I wonder

 

 [330]

 
{{prhprp331.jpg}}

 

he does not marry, to secure a lasting convenience of that

kind. But, perhaps, his sister does as well for the present;

and, as she is under his sole care, he may do what he likes

with her.'

 

'No.' said Colonel Fitzwilliam, 'that is an advantage which

he must divide with me. I am joined with him in the guard-

ianship of Miss Darcy.'

 

'Are you indeed? And pray what sort of a guardian do

you make? Does your charge give you much trouble?

Young ladies of her age are sometimes a little difficult to

manage; and if she has the true Darcy spirit, she may like to

have her own way.'

 

As she spoke, she observed him looking at her earnestly;

and the manner in which he immediately asked her why she

supposed Miss Darcy likely to give them any uneasiness, con-

vinced her that she had somehow or other got pretty near

the truth. She directly replied, --

 

'You need not be frightened. I never heard any harm

of her; and I daresay she is one of the most tractable crea-

tures in the world. She is a very great favourite with some

ladies of my acquaintance, Mrs. Hurst and Miss Bingley. I

think I have heard you say that you know them.'

 

'I know them a little. Their brother is a pleasant, gentle-

manlike man -- he is a great friend of Darcy's.'

 

'Oh yes,' said Elizabeth drily -- 'Mr. Darcy is uncommonly

kind to Mr. Bingley, and takes a prodigious deal of care of

him.'

 

'Care of him! Yes, I really believe Darcy docs take care

of him in those points where he most wants care. From

something that he told me in our journey hither, I have rea-

son to think Bingley very much indebted to him. But I ought

to beg his pardon, for I have no right to suppose that Bingley

was the person meant. It was all conjecture.'

 

'What is it you mean?'

 

'It is a circumstance which Darcy of course could not wish

to be generally known, because if it were to get round to the

lady's family it would be an unpleasant thing.'

 

'You may depend upon my not mentioning it.'

 

'And remember that I have not much reason for supposing

it to be Bingley. What he told me was merely this: that he

 

 [331]

 
{{prhprp332.jpg}}

 

congratulated himself on having lately saved a friend from

the inconveniences of a most imprudent marriage, but with-

out mentioning names or any other particulars; and I only

suspected it to be Bingley from believing him the kind of

young man to get into a scrape of that sort, and from know-

ing them to have been together the whole of last summer.'

 

'Did Mr. Darcy give you his reasons for this interference?'

 

'I understood that there were some very strong objections

against the lady.'

 

'And what arts did he use to separate them?' .

 

'He did not talk to me of his own arts,' said Fitzwilliam,

smiling. 'He only told me what I have now told you.'

 

Elizabeth made no answer, and walked on, her heart swell-

ing with indignation. After watching her a little, Fitzwilliam

asked her why she was so thoughtful.

 

'I am thinking of what you have been telling me,' said she.

'Your cousin's conduct does not suit my feelings. Why was

he to be the judge?'

 

'You are rather disposed to call his interference officious?'

 

'I do not see what right Mr. Darcy had to decide on the

propriety of his friend's inclination; or why, upon his own

judgment alone, he was to determine and direct in what

manner that friend was to be happy. But,' she continued,

recollecting herself, 'as we know none of the particulars, it

is not fair to condemn him. It is not to be supposed that

there was much affection in the case.'

 

That is not an unnatural surmise.' said Fitzwilliam; 'but

it is lessening the honour of my cousin's triumph very sadly.'

 

This was spoken jestingly, but it appeared to her so just a

picture of Mr. Darcy, that she would not trust herself with

an answer; and, therefore, abruptly changing the conversa-

tion, talked on indifferent matters till they reached the Par-

sonage. There, shut into her own room, as soon as their

visitor left them, she could think without interruption of all

that she had heard. It was not to be supposed that any other

people could be meant than those with whom she was con-

nected. There could not exist in the world two men over

whom Mr. Darcy could have such boundless influence. That

he had been concerned in the measures taken to separate

Mr. Bingley and Jane, she had never doubted; but she had

 

 [332]

 
{{prhprp333.jpg}}

 

always attributed to Miss Bingley the principal design and

arrangement of them. If his own vanity, however, did not

mislead him, he was the cause -- his pride and caprice were

the cause -- of all that Jane had suffered, and still continued

to suffer. He had ruined for a while every hope of happiness

for the most affectionate, generous heart in the world; and

no one could say how lasting an evil he might have inflicted.

 

There were some very strong objections against the lady,'

were Colonel Fitzwilliam's words; and these strong objections

probably were, her having one uncle who was a country

attorney, and another who was in business in London.

 

'To Jane herself,' she exclaimed, 'there could be no pos-

sibility of objection, -- all loveliness and goodness as she is!

Her understanding excellent, her mind improved, and her

manners captivating. Neither could anything be urged

against my father, who, though with some peculiarities, has

abilities which Mr. Darcy himself need not disdain, and

respectability which he will probably never reach.' When

she thought of her mother, indeed, her confidence gave way a

little; but she would not allow that any objections there had

material weight with Mr. Darcy, whose pride, she was con-

vinced, would receive a deeper wound from the want of im-

portance in his friend's connections than from their want of

sense; and she was quite decided, as last, that he had been

partly governed by this worst kind of pride, and partly by

the wish of retaining Mr. Bingley for his sister.

 

The agitation and tears which the subject occasioned

brought on a headache; and it grew so much worse towards

the evening that, added to her unwillingness to see Mr.

Darcy, it determined her not to attend her cousins to Rosings,

where they were engaged to drink tea. Mrs. Collins, seeing

that she was really unwell, did not press her to go, and as

much as possible prevented her husband from pressing her;

but Mr. Collins could not conceal his apprehension of Lady

Catherine's being rather displeased by her staying at home.

 

 [333]

 
{{prhprp334.jpg}}

 

 

 

 

Chapter XXXIV

 

WHEN they were gone, Elizabeth, as if intending to

exasperate herself as much as possible against Mr,

Darcy, chose for her employment the examination

of all the letters which Jane had written to her since her be-

ing in Kent. They contained no actual complaint, nor was

there any revival of past occurrences, or any communication

of present suffering. But in all, and in almost every line

of each, there was a want of that cheerfulness which had

been used to characterise her style, and which, proceeding

from the serenity of a mind at case with itself, and kindly

disposed towards every one, had been scarcely ever clouded.

Elizabeth noticed every sentence conveying the idea of un-

easiness, with an attention which it had hardly received on

the first perusal. Mr. Darcy's shameful boast of what misery

he had been able to inflict gave her a keener sense of her

sister's sufferings. It was some consolation to think that his

visit to Rosings was to end on the day after the next, and a

still greater that in less than a fortnight she should herself

be with Jane again, and enabled to contribute to the recovery

of her spirits, by all that affection could do.

 

She could not think of Darcy's leaving Kent without re-

membering that his cousin was to go with him; but Colonel

Fitzwilliam had made it clear that he had no intentions at

all, and, agreeable as he was, she did not mean to be unhappy

about him.

 

While settling this point, she was suddenly roused by the

sound of the door bell; and her spirits were a little fluttered

by the idea of its being Colonel Fitzwilliam himself, who

had once before called late in the evening, and might now

come to inquire particularly after her. But this idea was

soon banished, and her spirits were very differently affected,

when, to her utter amazement, she saw Mr. Darcy walk into

the room. In a hurried manner he immediately began an

inquiry after her health, imputing his visit to a wish of

 

 [334]

 
{{prhprp335.jpg}}

 

hearing that she were better. She answered him with cold

civility. He sat down for a few moments, and then getting

up, walked about the room. Elizabeth was surprised, but

said not a word. After a silence of several minutes, he came

towards her in an agitated manner, and thus began: --

 

'In vain have I struggled. It will not do. My feelings will

not be repressed. You must allow me to tell you how ar-

dently I admire and love you.'

 

Elizabeth's astonishment was beyond expression. She

stared, coloured, doubted, and was silent. This he consid-

ered sufficient encouragement, and the avowal of all that he

felt and had long felt for her immediately followed. He

spoke well, but there were feelings besides those of the heart

to be detailed, and he was not more eloquent on the subject of

tenderness than of pride. His sense of her inferiority, of its

being a degradation, of the family obstacles which judgment

had always opposed to inclination, were dwelt on with a

warmth which seemed due to the consequence he was wound-

ing, but was very unlikely to recommend his suit.

 

In spite of her deeply-rooted dislike, she could not be in-

sensible to the compliment of such a man's affection, and

though her intentions did not vary for an instant, she was

at first sorry for the pain he was to receive; till, roused to

resentment by his subsequent language, she lost all compas-

sion in anger. She tried, however, to compose herself to

answer him with patience, when he should have done. He

concluded with representing to her the strength of that at-

tachment which, in spite of all his endeavours, he had found

impossible to conquer; and with expressing his hope that it

would now be rewarded by her acceptance of his hand. As

he said this she could easily see that he had no doubt of a

favourable answer. He spoke of apprehension and anxiety,

but his countenance expressed real security. Such a circum-

stance could only exasperate farther; and when he ceased the

colour rose into her cheeks and she said, --

 

'In such cases as this, it is, I believe, the established mode

to express a sense of obligation for the sentiments avowed,

however unequally they may be returned. It is natural that

obligation should be felt, and if I could feel gratitude, I would

now thank you. But I cannot -- I have never desired your

 

 [335]

 
{{prhprp336.jpg}}

 

good opinion, and you have certainly bestowed it most un-

willingly. I am sorry to have occasioned pain to any one.

It has been most unconsciously done, however, and I hope

will be of short duration. The feelings which you tell me

have long prevented the acknowledgment of your regard can

have little difficulty in overcoming it after this explanation.'

 

Mr. Darcy, who was leaning against the mantelpiece with

his eyes fixed on her face, seemed to catch her words with no

less resentment than surprise. His complexion became pale

with anger, and the disturbance of his mind was visible in

every feature. He was struggling for the appearance of

composure, and would not open his lips till he believed him-

self to have attained it. The pause was to Elizabeth's feel-

ings dreadful. At length, in a voice of forced calmness, he

said, --

 

'And this is all the reply which I am to have the honour

of expecting! I might, perhaps, wish to be informed why,

with so little endeavour at civility, I am thus rejected. But

it is of small importance.'

 

'I might as well inquire,' replied she, 'why, with so evident

a design of offending and insulting me, you chose to tell me

that you liked me against your will, against your reason, and

even against your character? Was not this some excuse for

incivility, if I was uncivil? But I have other provocations.

You know I have. Had not my own feelings decided against

you, had they been indifferent, or had they even been favour-

able, do you think that any consideration would tempt me to

accept the man who has been the means of ruining, perhaps

for ever, the happiness of a most beloved sister?'

 

As she pronounced these words, Mr. Darcy changed col-

our; but the emotion was short, and he listened without at-

tempting to interrupt her while she continued, --

 

'I have every reason in the world to think ill of you. No

motive can excuse the unjust and ungenerous part you acted

there. You dare not, you cannot, deny that you have been

the principal, if not the only means of dividing them from

each other, of exposing one to the censure of the world for

caprice and instability, the other to its derision for disap-

pointed hopes, and involving them both in misery of the

acutest kind.'

 

 [336]

 
{{prhprp337.jpg}}

 

 

She paused, and saw with no slight indignation that he

was listening with an air which proved him wholly unmoved

by any feeling of remorse. He even looked at her with a

smile of affected incredulity.

 

'Can you deny that you have done it?' she repeated.

 

With assumed tranquillity he then replied, 'I have no wish

of denying that I did everything in my power to separate my

friend from your sister, or that I rejoice in my success.

Towards him I have been kinder than towards myself.'

 

Elizabeth disdained the appearance of noticing this civil

reflection, but its meaning did not escape, nor was it likely

to conciliate her.

 

'But it is not merely this affair,' she continued, 'on which

my dislike is founded. Long before it had taken place, my

opinion of you was decided. Your character was unfolded in

the recital which I received many months ago from Mr.

Wickham. On this subject, what can you have to say? In

what imaginary act of friendship can you here defend your-

self? or under what misrepresentation can you here impose

upon others?'

 

'You take an eager interest in that gentleman's concerns,'

said Darcy, in a less tranquil tone, and with a heightened

colour.

 

'Who that knows what his misfortunes have been can help

feeling an interest in him?'

 

'His misfortunes!' repeated Darcy, contemptuously, -- 'yes,

his misfortunes have been great indeed.'

 

'And of your infliction,' cried Elizabeth, with energy. 'You

have reduced him to his present state of poverty -- compara-

tive poverty. You have withheld the advantages which you

must know to have been designed for him. You have de-

prived the best years of his life of that independence which

was no less his due than his desert. You have done all this!

and yet you can treat the mention of his misfortunes with

contempt and ridicule.'

 

'And this,' cried Darcy, as he walked with quick steps

across the room, 'is your opinion of me! This is the estima-

tion in which you hold me! I thank you for explaining it

so fully. My faults, according to this calculation, are heavy

indeed! But, perhaps,' added he, stopping in his walk, and

 

 [337]

 
{{prhprp338.jpg}}

 

turning towards her, 'these offences might have been over-

looked, had not your pride been hurt by my honest confession

of the scruples that had long prevented my forming any seri-

ous design. 'These bitter accusations might have been sup-

pressed, had I, with greater policy, concealed my struggles,

and flattered you into the belief of my being impelled by

unqualified, unalloyed inclination; by reason, by reflection,

by everything. But disguise of every sort is my abhorrence.

Nor am I ashamed of the feelings I related. They were

natural and just. Could you expect me to rejoice in the in-

feriority of your connections? To congratulate myself on

the hope of relations whose condition in life is so decidedly

beneath my own?'

 

Elizabeth felt herself growing more angry every moment;

yet she tried to the utmost to speak with composure when

she said, --

 

'You are mistaken, Mr. Darcy, if you suppose that the

mode of your declaration affected me in any other way than

as it spared me the concern which I might have felt in

refusing you, had you behaved in a more gentlemanlike

manner.'

 

She saw him start at this; but he said nothing, and she

continued, --

 

'You could not have made me the offer of your hand in

any possible way that would have tempted me to accept it.'

 

Again his astonishment was obvious; and he looked at her

with an expression of mingled incredulity and mortification.

She went on, --

 

'From the very beginning, from the first moment, I may

almost say, of my acquaintance with you, your manners, im-

pressing me with the fullest belief of your arrogance, your

conceit, and your selfish disdain of the feelings of others,

were such as to form that groundwork of disapprobation on

which succeeding events have built so immovable a dislike;

and I had not known you a month before I felt that you were

the last man in the world whom I could ever be prevailed

on to marry.'

 

'You have said quite enough, madam. I perfectly com-

prehend your feelings, and have now only to be ashamed of

what my own have been. Forgive me for having taken up so

 

 [338]

 
{{prhprp339.jpg}}

 

much of your time, and accept my best wishes for your health

and happiness.'

 

And with these words he hastily left the room, and Eliza-

beth heard him the next moment open the front door and quit

the house. The tumult of her mind was now painfully great.

She knew not how to support herself, and, from actual weak-

ness, sat down and cried for half an hour. Her astonishment,

as she reflected on what had passed, was increased by every

review of it. That she should receive an offer of marriage

from Mr. Darcy! that he should have been in love with her

for so many months! so much in love as to wish to marry

her in spite of all the objections which had made him pre-

vent his friend's marrying her sister, and which must appear

at least with equal force in his own case, was almost in-

credible! it was gratifying to have inspired unconsciously so

strong an affection. But his pride, his abominable pride, his

shameless avowal of what he had done with respect to Jane,

his unpardonable assurance in acknowledging, though he

could not justify it, and the unfeeling manner in which he

had mentioned Mr. Wickham, his cruelty towards whom he

had not attempted to deny, soon overcame the pity which the

consideration of his attachment had for a moment excited.

 

She continued in very agitating reflections till the sound

of Lady Catherine's carriage made her feel how unequal she

was to encounter Charlotte's observation, and hurried her

away to her room.

 

 [339]

 
{{prhprp340.jpg}}

 

 

 

 

Chapter XXXV

 

ELIZABETH awoke the next morning to the same

thoughts and meditations which had at length dosed

her eyes. She could not yet recover from the surprise

of what had happened: it was impossible to think of anything

else; and, totally indisposed for employment, she resolved

soon after breakfast to indulge herself in air and exercise.

She was proceeding directly to her favourite walk, when the

recollection of Mr. Darcy's sometimes coming there stopped

her, and instead of entering the park, she turned up the lane

which led her farther from the turnpike road. The park

paling was still the boundary on one side, and she soon passed

one of the gates into the ground.

 

After walking two or three times along that part of the

lane, she was tempted, by the pleasantness of the morning,

to stop at the gates and look into the park. The five weeks

which she had now passed in Kent had made a great differ-

ence in the country, and every day was adding to the verdure

of the early trees. She was on the point of continuing her

walk, when she caught a glimpse of a gentleman within the

sort of grove which edged the park: he was moving that

way; and fearful of its being Mr. Darcy, she was directly

retreating. But the person who advanced was now near

enough to see her, and stepping forward with eagerness,

pronounced her name. She had turned away; but on hearing

herself called, though in a voice which proved it to be Mr.

Darcy, she moved again towards the gate. He had by that

time reached it also; and, holding out a letter, which she in-

stinctively took, said, with a look of haughty composure, 'I

have been walking in the grove some time, in the hope of

meeting you. Will you do me the honour of reading that

letter?' and then, with a slight bow, turned again into the

plantation, and was soon out of sight.

 

With no expectation of pleasure, but with the strongest

curiosity, Elizabeth opened the letter, and to her still in-

 

 [340]

 
{{prhprp341.jpg}}

 

creasing wonder, perceived an envelope containing two sheets

of letter paper, written quite through, in a very close hand.

The envelope itself was likewise full. Pursuing her way

along the lane, she then began it. It was dated from Rosings,

at eight o'clock in the morning, and was as follows: --

 

'Be not alarmed, madam, on receiving this letter, by the appre-

hension of its containing any repetition of those sentiments, or re-

newal of those offers, which were last night so disgusting to you.

I write without any intention of paining you, or humbling myself,

by dwelling on wishes, which, for the happiness of both, cannot be

too soon forgotten; and the effort which the formation and the

perusal of this letter must occasion should have been spared, had

not my character required it to be written and read. You must,

therefore, pardon the freedom with which I demand your attention;

your feelings, I know, will bestow it unwillingly, but I demand it

of your justice.

 

'Two offences of a very different nature, and by no means of equal

magnitude, you last night laid to my charge. The first mentioned

was, that, regardless of the sentiments of either, I had detached

Mr. Bingley from your sister, -- and the other, that I had, in defiance

of various claims, in defiance of honour and humanity, ruined the

immediate prosperity and blasted the prospects of Mr. Wickham.

Wilfully and wantonly to have thrown oft' the companion of my

youth, the acknowledged favourite of my father, a young man who had

scarcely any other dependence than on our patronage, and who had

been brought up to expect its exertion, would be a depravity, to

which the separation of two young persons whose affection could

be the growth of only a few weeks could bear no comparison. But

from the severity of that blame which was last night so liberally

bestowed, respecting each circumstance, I shall hope to be in future

secured, when the following account of my actions and their motives

has been read. If, in the explanation of them which is due to myself,

I am under the necessity of relating feelings which may be offensive

to yours, I can only say that I am sorry. The necessity must be

obeyed, and further apology would be absurd. I had not been long

in Hertfordshire before I saw, in common with others, that Bingley

preferred your elder sister to any other young woman in the country.

But it was not till the evening of the dance at Netherfield that I

had any apprehension of his feeling a serious attachment. I had

often seen him in love before. At that ball, while I had the honour

of dancing with you, I was first made acquainted, by Sir William

Lucas's accidental information, that Bingley's attentions to your

sister had given rise to a general expectation of their marriage. He

spoke of it as a certain event, of which the time alone could be

undecided. From that moment I observed my friend's behaviour

attentively: and I could then perceive that his partiality for Miss

Bennet was beyond what I had ever witnessed in him. Your sister

I also watched. Her look and manners were open, cheerful, and

 

 [341]

 
{{prhprp342.jpg}}

 

engaging as ever, but without any symptom of peculiar regard; and

I remained convinced, from the evening's scrutiny, that though she

received his attentions with pleasure, she did not invite them by

any participation of sentiment. If you have not been mistaken bore,

I must have been in an error. Your superior knowledge of your

sister must make the latter probable. If it be so, if I have been

misled by such error to inflict pain on her, your resentment has not

been unreasonable. But I shall not scruple to assert that the serenity

of your sister's countenance and air was such as might have given

the most acute observer a conviction that, however amiable her

temper, her heart was not likely to be easily touched. That I was

desirous of believing her indifferent is certain, but I will venture

to say that my investigations and decisions are not usually influenced

by my hopes or fears. I did not believe her to be indifferent because

I wished it; I believed it on impartial conviction, as truly as I wished

it in reason. My objections to the marriage were not merely those

which I last night acknowledged to have required the utmost force

of passion to put aside in my own case; the want of connection

could not be so great an evil to my friend as to me. But there were

other causes of repugnance; causes which, though still existing, and

existing to an equal degree in both instances, I had myself endeav-

oured to forget, because they were not immediately before me. These

causes must be stated, though briefly. The situation of your mother's

family, though objectionable, was nothing in comparison of that total

want of propriety so frequently, so almost' uniformly betrayed by

herself, by your three younger sisters, and occasionally even by your

father: -- pardon me, -- it pains me to offend you. But amidst your

concern for the defects of your nearest relations, and your displeasure

at this representation of them, let it give you consolation to consider

that to have conducted yourselves so as to avoid any share of the

like censure is praise no less generally bestowed on you and your

elder sister than it is honourable to the sense and disposition of

both. I will only say, farther, that from what passed that evening

my opinion of all parties was confirmed, and every inducement

heightened, which could have led me before to preserve my friend

from what I esteemed a most unhappy connection. He left Nether-

field for London on the day following, as you, I am certain, re-

member, with the design of soon returning, The part which I acted

is now to be explained. His sisters' uneasiness had been equally

excited with my own: our coincidence of feeling was soon discovered;

and, alike sensible that no time was to be lost in detaching their

brother, we shortly resolved on joining him directly in London. We

accordingly went -- and there I readily engaged in the office of

pointing out to my friend the certain evils of such a choice. I

described and enforced them earnestly. But however this remon-

strance might have staggered or delayed his determination, I do

not suppose that it would ultimately have prevented the marriage, had

it hot been seconded by the assurance, which I hesitated not in

giving, of your sister's indifference. He had before believed her to

return his affection with sincere, if not with equal, regard. But

 

 [342]

 
{{prhprp343.jpg}}

 

Bingley has great natural modesty, with a stronger dependence on

my judgment than on his own. To convince him, therefore, that

he had deceived himself was no very difficult point. To persuade

him against returning into Hertfordshire, when that conviction had

been given, was scarcely the work of a moment. I cannot blame

myself for having done thus much. There is but one part of my

conduct, in the whole affair, on which I do not reflect with satis-

faction; it is that I condescended to adopt the measures of art so

far as to conceal from him your sister's being in town. I knew it

myself, as it was known to Miss Bingley; but her brother is even

yet ignorant of it. That they might have met without ill consequence

is, perhaps, probable; but his regard did not appear to me enough

extinguished for him to see her without some danger. Perhaps

this concealment, this disguise, was beneath me. It is done, how-

ever, and it was done for the best. On this subject I have nothing

more to say, no other apology to offer. If I have wounded your

sister's feelings, it was unknowingly done; and though the motives

which governed me may to you very naturally appear insufficient, I

have not yet learnt to condemn them. -- With respect to that other,

more weighty accusation, of having injured Mr. Wickham, I can

only refute it by laying before you the whole of his connection with

my family. Of what he has particularly accused me I am ignorant;

but of the truth of what I shall relate I can summon more than one

witness of undoubted veracity. Mr. Wickham is the son of a very

respectable man, who had for many years the management of all

the Pemberley estates, and whose good conduct in the discharge of

his trust naturally inclined my father to be of service to him; and

on George Wickham, who was his godson, his kindness was therefore

liberally bestowed. My father supported him at school, and after-

wards at Cambridge; most important assistance, as his own father,

always poor from the extravagance of his wife, would have been

unable to give him a gentleman's education. My father was not

only fond of this young man's society, whose manners were always

engaging, he had also the highest opinion of him, and hoping the

church would be his profession, intended to provide for him in it.

As for myself, it is many, many years since I first began to think

of him in a very different manner. The vicious propensities, the

want of principle, which he was careful to guard from the knowledge

of his best friend, could not escape the observation of a young man

of nearly the same age with himself, and who had opportunities of

seeing him in unguarded moments, which Mr. Darcy could not

have. Here again I shall give you pain -- to what degree you only

can tell. But whatever may be the sentiments which Mr. Wickham

has created, a suspicion of their nature shall not prevent me from

unfolding his real character. It adds even another motive. My

excellent father died about five years ago; and his attachment to

Mr. Wickham was to the last so steady, that in his will he particu-

larly recommended it to me to promote his advancement in the best

manner that his profession might allow, and if he took orders, desired

that a valuable family living might be his as soon as it became

 

 [343]

 
{{prhprp344.jpg}}

 

vacant. There was also a legacy of one thousand pounds. His own

father did not long survive mine; and within half a year from these

events Mr. Wickham wrote to inform me that, having finally resolved

against taking orders, he hoped I should not think it unreasonable

for him to expect some more immediate pecuniary advantage, in lieu

of the preferment, by which he could not be benefited. He had

some intention, he added, of studying the law, and I must be aware

that the interest of one thousand pounds would be a very insufficient

support therein. I rather wished than believed him to be sincere;

but, at any rate, was perfectly ready to accede to his proposal. I

knew that Mr. Wickham ought not to be a clergyman. The business

was therefore soon settled. He resigned all claim to assistance in

the church, were it possible that he could ever be in a situation to

receive it, and accepted in return three thousand pounds. All con-

nection between us seemed now dissolved. I thought too ill of him

to invite him to Pemberley, or admit his society in town. In town,

I believe, he chiefly lived, but his studying the law was a mere

pretence; and being now free from all restraint, his life was a life

of idleness and dissipation. For about three years I heard little of

him; but on the decease of the incumbent of the living which had

been designed for him, he applied to me again by letter for the

presentation. His circumstances, he assured me, and I had no diffi-

culty in believing it, were exceedingly bad. He had found the law

a most unprofitable study, and was now absolutely resolved on being

ordained, if I would present him to the living in question -- of which

he trusted there could be little doubt, as he was well assured that I

had no other person to provide for, and I could not have forgotten

my revered father's intentions. You will hardly blame me for re-

fusing to comply with this entreaty, or for resisting every repetition

of it. His resentment was in proportion to the distress of his cir-

cumstances -- and he was doubtless as violent in his abuse of me to

others as in his reproaches to myself. After this period, every

appearance of acquaintance was dropped. How he lived, I know not.

But last summer he was again most painfully obtruded on my notice.

I must now mention a circumstance which I would wish to forget

myself, and which no obligation less than the present should induce

me to unfold to any human being. Having said thus much, I feel

no doubt of your secrecy. My sister, who is more than ten years

my junior, was left to the guardianship of my mother's nephew.

Colonel Fitzwilliam, and myself. About a year ago, she was taken

from school, and an establishment formed for her in London; and

last summer she went with the lady who presided over it to Ramsgate;

and thither also went Mr. Wickham, undoubtedly by design; for there

proved to have been a prior acquaintance between him and Mrs.

Younge, in whose character we were most unhappily deceived; and

by her connivance and aid he so far recommended himself to

Georgiana, whose affectionate heart retained a strong impression of

his kindness to her as a child, that she was persuaded to believe

herself in love and to consent to an elopement. She was then but

fifteen, which must be her excuse; and after stating her imprudence,

 

 [344]

 
{{prhprp345.jpg}}

 

I am happy to add that I owed the knowledge of it to herself. I

joined them unexpectedly a day or two before the intended elopement;

and then Georgiana, unable to support the idea of grieving and

offending a brother whom she almost looked up to as a father,

acknowledged the whole to me. You may imagine what I felt and

how I acted. Regard for my sister's credit and feelings prevented

any public exposure; but I wrote to Mr. Wickham, who left the

place immediately, and Mrs. Younge was of course removed from

her charge. Mr. Wickham's chief object was unquestionably my

sister's fortune, which is thirty thousand pounds; but I cannot help

supposing that the hope of revenging himself on me was a strong

inducement. His revenge would have been complete indeed. This,

madam, is a faithful narrative of every event in which we have

been concerned together; and if you do not absolutely reject it as

false, you will, I hope, acquit me henceforth of cruelty towards Mr.

Wickham. I know not in what manner, under what form of false-

hood, he has imposed on you; but his success is not perhaps to be

wondered at, ignorant as you previously were of everything con-

cerning either. Detection could not be in your power, and suspicion

certainly not in your inclination. You may possibly wonder why all

this was not told you last night. But I was not then master enough

of myself to know what could or ought to be revealed. For the

truth of everything here related, I can appeal more particularly to

the testimony of Colonel Fitzwilliam, who, from our near relation-

ship and constant intimacy, and still more as one of the executors

of my father's will, has been unavoidably acquainted with every

particular of these transactions. If your abhorrence of me should

make my assertions valueless, you cannot be prevented by the same

cause from confiding in my cousin; and that there may be the pos-

sibility of consulting him, I shall endeavour to find some opportunity

of putting this letter in your hands in the course of the morning.

I will only add, God bless you.

 

'Fitzwilliam Darcy.'

 

 [345]

 
{{prhprp346.jpg}}

 

 

 

 

Chapter XXXVI

 

IF Elizabeth, when Mr. Darcy gave her the letter, did not

expect it to contain a renewal of his offers, she had

formed no expectation at all of its contents. But such

as they were, it may be well supposed how eagerly she went

through them, and what a contrariety of emotion they ex-

cited. Her feelings as she read were scarcely to be defined.

With amazement did she first understand that he believed

any apology to be in his power; and steadfastly was she

persuaded that he could have no explanation to give, which

a just sense of shame would not conceal. With a strong

prejudice against everything he might say, she began his

account of what had happened at Netherfield. She read

with an eagerness which hardly left her power of compre-

hension; and from impatience of knowing what the next

sentence might bring, was incapable of attending to the sense

of the one before her eyes. His belief of her sister's in-

sensibility she instantly resolved to be false; and his account

of the real, the worst objections to the match, made her too

angry to have any wish of doing him justice. He expressed

no regret for what he had done which satisfied her; his

style was not penitent, but haughty. It was all pride and

insolence.

 

But when this subject was succeeded by his account of

Mr. Wickham -- when she read, with somewhat clearer at-

tention, a relation of events which, if true, must overthrow

every cherished opinion of his worth, and which bore so

alarming an affinity to his own history of himself -- her feel-

ings were yet more acutely painful and more difficult of

definition. Astonishment, apprehension, and even horror,

oppressed her. She wished to discredit it entirely, repeatedly

exclaiming, 'This must be false! This cannot be! This

must be the grossest falsehood!' -- and when she had gone

through the whole letter, though scarcely knowing anything

of the last page or two, put it hastily away, protesting that

she would not regard it, that she would never look in it again.

 

 [346]

 
{{prhprp347.jpg}}

 

 

In this perturbed state of mind, with thoughts that could

rest on nothing, she walked on; but it would not do: in half

a minute the letter was unfolded again; and, collecting her-

self as well as she could, she again began the mortifying

perusal of all that related to Wickham, and commanded her-

self so far as to examine the meaning of every sentence.

The account of his connection with the Pemberley family

was exactly what he had related himself: and the kindness

of the late Mr. Darcy, though she had not before known its

extent, agreed equally well with his own words. So far

each recital confirmed the other: but when she came to the

will, the difference was great. What Wickham had said of

the living was fresh in her memory; and as she recalled his

very words, it was impossible not to feel that there was gross

duplicity on one side or the other, and, for a few moments,

she flattered herself that her wishes did not err. But when

she read and re-read with the closest attention, the particu-

lars immediately following, of Wickham's resigning all pre-

tensions to the living, of his receiving in lieu so considerable

a sum as three thousand pounds, again was she forced to

hesitate.

 

She put down the letter, weighed every circumstance

with what she meant to be impartiality -- deliberated on

the probability of each statement -- but with little success.

On both sides it was only assertion. Again she read on.

But every line proved more clearly that the affair, which

she had believed it impossible that any contrivance could so

represent as to render Mr. Darcy's conduct in it less than

infamous, was capable of a turn which must make him en-

tirely blameless throughout the whole.

 

The extravagance and general profligacy which he scrupled

not to lay to Mr. Wickham's charge exceedingly shocked

her; the more so, as she could bring no proof of its injustice.

She had never heard of him before his entrance into the

shire militia, in which he had engaged at the persuasion

of the young man who, on meeting him accidentally in town,

had there renewed a slight acquaintance. Of his former

way of life nothing had been known in Hertfordshire but

what he told himself. As to his real character, had informa-

tion been in her power, she had never felt a wish of in-

 

 [347]

 
{{prhprp348.jpg}}

 

quiring. His countenance, voice, and manner, had established

him at once in the possession of every virtue. She tried to

recollect some instance of goodness, some distinguished trait

of integrity or benevolence, that might rescue him from the

attacks of Mr. Darcy; or at least, by the predominance of

virtue, atone for those casual errors, under which she would

endeavour to class what Mr. Darcy had described as the idle-

ness and vice of many years' continuance. But no such rec-

ollection befriended her. She could see him instantly be-

fore her, in every charm of air and address, but she could

remember no more substantial good than the general appro-

bation of the neighbourhood, and the regard which his social

powers had gained him in the mess. After pausing on this

point a considerable while, she once more continued to read.

But, alas! the story which followed, of his designs on Miss

Darcy, received some confirmation from what had passed

between Colonel Fitzwilliam and herself only the morning

before; and at last she was referred for the truth of every

particular to Colonel Fitzwilliam himself -- from whom she

had previously received the information of his near concern

in all his cousin's affairs, and whose character she had no

reason to question. At one time she had almost resolved on

applying to him, but the idea was checked by the awkward-

ness of the application, and at length wholly banished by the

conviction that Mr. Darcy would never have hazarded such

a proposal, if he had not been well assured of his cousin's

corroboration.

 

She perfectly remembered everything that had passed in

conversation between Wickham and herself in their first

evening at Mr. Philips's. Many of his expressions were still

fresh in her memory. She was now struck with the impro-

priety of such communications to a stranger, and wondered

it had escaped her before. She saw the indelicacy of put-

ting himself forward as he had done, and the inconsistency

of his professions with his conduct. She remembered that

he had boasted of having no fear of seeing Mr. Darcy --

that Mr. Darcy might leave the country, but that he should

stand his ground; yet he had avoided the Netherfield ball the

very next week. She remembered, also, that till the Nether-

field family had quitted the country, he had told his story to no

 

 [348]

 
{{prhprp349.jpg}}

 

one but herself; but that after their removal, it had been

everywhere discussed; that he had then no reserves, no

scruples in sinking Mr. Darcy's character, though he had

assured her that respect for the father would always pre-

vent his exposing the son.

 

'How differently did everything now appear in which he

'was concerned! His attentions to Miss King were now the

consequence of views solely and hatefully mercenary; and

the mediocrity of her fortune proved no longer the modera-

tion of his wishes, but his eagerness to grasp at anything.

His behaviour to herself could now have had no tolerable

motive: he had either been deceived with regard to her for-

tune, or had been gratifying his vanity by encouraging the

preference which she believed she had most incautiously

shown. Every lingering struggle in his favour grew fainter

and fainter; and in further justification of Mr. Darcy, she

could not but allow that Mr. Bingley, when questioned by

Jane, had long ago asserted his blamelessness in the affair; --

that, proud and repulsive as were his manners, she had

never, in the whole course of their acquaintance -- an ac-

quaintance which had latterly brought them much together,

and given her a sort of intimacy with his ways -- seen any-

thing that betrayed him to be unprincipled or unjust -- any-

thing that spoke him of irreligious or immoral habits; --

that among his own connections he was esteemed and valued

-- that even Wickham had allowed him merit as a brother,

and that she had often heard him speak so affectionately of

his sister as to prove him capable of some amiable feeling;

-- that had his actions been what Wickham represented them,

so gross a violation of everything right could hardly have

been concealed from the world; and that friendship between

a person capable of it and such an amiable man as Mr.

Bingley was incomprehensible.

 

She grew absolutely ashamed of herself. Of neither Darcy

nor Wickham could she think, without feeling that she had

been blind, partial, prejudiced, absurd.

 

'How despicably have I acted!' she cried. 'I, who have

prided myself on my discernment! I who have valued my-

self on my abilities! who have often disdained the generous

candour of my sister, and gratified my vanity in useless or

 

 [349]

 
{{prhprp350.jpg}}

 

blameless distrust. How humiliating is this discovery! Yet,

how just a humiliation! Had I been in love, I could not

have been more wretchedly blind. But vanity, not love, has

been my folly. Pleased with the preference of one, and

offended by the neglect of the other, on the very beginning of

our acquaintance I have courted prepossession and ignorance,

and driven reason away where either was concerned. Till

this moment, I never knew myself.'

 

From herself to Jane, from Jane to Bingley, her thoughts

were in a line which soon brought to her recollection that Mr.

Darcy's explanation there had appeared very insufficient; and

she read it again. Widely different was the effect of a second

perusal. How could she deny that credit to his assertions, in

one instance, which she had been obliged to give in the other?

He declared himself to have been totally unsuspicious of her

sister's attachment; and she could not help remembering

what Charlotte's opinion had always been. Neither could she

deny the justice of his description of Jane. She felt that

Jane's feelings, though fervent, were little displayed, and that

there was a constant complacency in her air and manner, not

often united with great sensibility.

 

When she came to that part of the letter in which her

family were mentioned, in terms of such mortifying, yet

merited, reproach, her sense of shame was severe. The

justice of the charge struck her too forcibly for denial; and

the circumstances to which he particularly alluded, as having

passed at the Netherfield ball, and as confirming all his first

disapprobation, could not have made a stronger impression

on his mind than on hers.

 

The compliment to herself and her sister was not unfelt.

It soothed, but it could not console her for the contempt

which had been thus self-attracted by the rest of her family;

and as she considered that Jane's disappointment had, in

fact, been the work of her nearest relations, and reflected

how materially the credit of both must be hurt by such

impropriety of conduct, she felt depressed beyond anything

she had ever known before.

 

After wandering along the lane for two hours, giving way

to every variety of thought, reconsidering events, determin-

ing probabilities, and reconciling herself, as well as she could,

 

 [350]

 
{{prhprp351.jpg}}

 

to a change so sudden and so important, fatigue, and a

recollection of her long absence, made her at length return

home; and she entered the house with the wish of appearing

cheerful as usual, and the resolution of repressing such re-

flections as must make her unfit for conversation.

 

She was immediately told that the two gentlemen from

Rosings had each called during her absence; Mr. Darcy,

only for a few minutes, to take leave, but that Colonel Fitz-

william had been sitting with them at least an hour, hoping

for her return, and almost resolving to walk after her till she

could be found. Elizabeth could but just affect concern in

missing him; she really rejoiced at it. Colonel Fitzwilliam

was no longer an object. She could think only of her letter.

 

 [351]

 
{{prhprp352.jpg}}

 

 

 

 

Chapter XXXVII

 

THE two gentlemen left Rosings the next morning; and

Mr. Collins having been in waiting near the lodges, to

make them his parting obeisance, was able to bring

home the pleasing intelligence of their appearing in very

good health, and in as tolerable spirits as could be expected,

after the melancholy scene so lately gone through at Rosings.

To Rosings he then hastened to console Lady Catherine and

her daughter; and on his return brought back, with great

satisfaction, a message from her Ladyship, importing that she

felt herself so dull as to make her very desirous of having

them all to dine with her.

 

Elizabeth could not see Lady Catherine without recollecting

that, had she chosen it, she might by this time have been

presented to her as her future niece; nor could she think,

without a smile, of what her Ladyship's indignation would

have been. 'What would she have said? how would she have

behaved?' were questions with which she amused herself.

 

Their first subject was the diminution of the Rosings

party. 'I assure you I feel it exceedingly,' said Lady Cath-

erine; I believe nobody feels the loss of friends so much as

I do. But I am particularly attached to these young men;

and know them to be so much attached to me! They were

excessively sorry to go! But so they always are. The dear

Colonel rallied his spirits tolerably till just at last; but Darcy

seemed to feel it most acutely -- more, I think, than last year.

His attachment to Rosings certainly increases.'

 

Mr. Collins had a compliment and an allusion to throw

in here, which were kindly smiled on by the mother and

daughter.

 

Lady Catherine observed, after dinner, that Miss Bennet

seemed out of spirits; and immediately accounting for it

herself, by supposing that she did not like to go home again

so soon, she added, --

 

'But if that is the case, you must write to your mother to

 

 [352]

 
{{prhprp353.jpg}}

 

beg that you may stay a little longer. Mrs. Collins will be

very glad of your company. I am sure.'

 

'I am much obliged to your Ladyship for your kind invita-

tion,' replied Elizabeth; 'but it is not in my power to accept

it. I must be in town next Saturday.'

 

'Why, at that rate, you will have been here only six weeks.

I expected you to stay two months. I told Mrs. Collins so

before you came. There can be no occasion for your going

so soon. Mrs. Bennet could certainly spare you for another

fortnight.'

 

'But my father cannot. He wrote last week to hurry my

return.'

 

'Oh, your father, of course, may spare you, if your mother

can. Daughters are never of so much consequence to a

father. And if you will stay another month complete, it will

be in my power to take one of you as far as London, for I

am going there early in June, for a week; and as Dawson

does not object to the barouche-box, there will be very good

room for one of you -- and, indeed, if the weather should

happen to be cool, I should not object to taking you both,

as you are neither of you large.'

 

'You are all kindness, madam: but I believe we must abide

by our original plan.'

 

Lady Catherine seemed resigned. 'Mrs. Collins, you must

send a servant with them. You know I always speak my

mind, and I cannot bear the idea of two young women trav-

elling post by themselves. It is highly improper. You must

contrive to send somebody. I have the greatest dislike in

the world to that sort of thing. Young women should always

be properly guarded and attended, according to their situation

in life. When my niece Georgiana went to Ramsgate last

summer. I made a point of her having two men-servants go

with her. Miss Darcy, the daughter of Mr. Darcy of Pem-

berley, and Lady Anne, could not have appeared with

propriety in a different manner. I am excessively at-

tentive to all those things. You must send John with the

young ladies, Mrs. Collins. I am glad it occurred to me

to mention it; for it would really be discreditable to you

to let them go alone.'

 

'My uncle is to send a servant for us.'

 

 [353]

 
{{prhprp354.jpg}}

 

 

'Oh! Your uncle! He keeps a man-servant, docs he?

I am very glad you have somebody who thinks of those

things. Where shall you change horses? Oh, Bromley,

of course. If you mention my name at the Bell, you will he

attended to.'

 

Lady Catherine had many other questions to ask respecting

their journey, and as she did not answer them all herself

attention was necessary, which Elizabeth believed to be lucky

for her: or, with a mind so occupied, she might have for-

gotten where she was. Reflection must be reserved for

solitary hours: whenever she was alone, she gave way to it

as the greatest relief; and not a day went by without a

solitary walk, in which she might indulge in all the delight of

unpleasant recollections.

 

Mr. Darcy's letter she was in a fair way of soon knowing

by heart. She studied every sentence; and her feelings to-

wards its writer were at times widely different. When she

remembered the style of his address, she was still full of

indignation: but when she considered how unjustly she had

condemned and upbraided him, her anger was turned against

herself; and his disappointed feelings became the object of

compassion. His attachment excited gratitude, his general

character respect: but she could not approve him; nor could

she for a moment repent her refusal, or feel the slightest

inclination ever to see him again. In her own past behaviour

there was a constant source of vexation and regret: and in

the unhappy defects of her family a subject of yet heavier

chagrin. They were hopeless of remedy. Her father, con-

tented with laughing at them, would never exert himself to

restrain the wild giddiness of his youngest daughters; and

her mother, with manners so far from right herself, was

entirely insensible of the evil. Elizabeth had frequently

united with Jane in an endeavour to check the imprudence of

Catherine and Lydia; but while they were supported by

their mother's indulgence, what chance could there be of

improvement? Catherine, weak-spirited, irritable, and com-

pletely under Lydia's guidance, had been always affronted

by their advice; and Lydia, self-willed and careless, would

scarcely give them a hearing. They were ignorant, idle, and

vain. While there was an officer in Meryton, they would

 

 [354]

 
{{prhprp355.jpg}}

 

flirt with him; and while Meryton was within a walk of

Longbourn, they would be going there for ever.

 

Anxiety on Jane's behalf was another prevailing concern;

and Mr. Darcy's explanation, by restoring Bingley to all her

former good opinion, heightened the sense of what Jane had

lost. His affection was proved to have been sincere, and his

conduct cleared of all blame, unless any could attach to the

implicitness of his confidence in his friend. How grievous

then was the thought that, of a situation so desirable in every i

respect, so replete with advantage, so promising for happi-

ness. Jane had been deprived, by the folly and indecorum of

her own family!

 

When to these recollections was added the development

of Wickham's character, it may be easily believed that the

happy spirits which had seldom been depressed before were

now so much affected as to make it almost impossible for her

to appear tolerably cheerful.

 

Their engagements at Rosings were as frequent during the

last week of her stay as they had been at first. The very last

evening was spent there; and her Ladyship again inquired

minutely into the particulars of their journey, gave them

directions as to the best method of packing, and was so

urgent on the necessity of placing gowns in the only right

way, that Maria thought herself obliged, on her return, to

undo all the work of the morning, and pack her trunk afresh.

 

When they parted. Lady Catherine, with great condescen-

sion, wished them a good journey, and invited them to come

to Hunsford again next year; and Miss De Bourgh exerted

herself so far as to courtesy and hold out her hand to both-

 

 [355]

 
{{prhprp356.jpg}}

 

 

 

 

Chapter XXXVIII

 

ON Saturday morning Elizabeth and Mr. Collins met for

breakfast a few minutes before the others appeared;

and he took the opportunity of paying the parting

civilities which he deemed indispensably necessary.

 

'I know not. Miss Elizabeth,' said he, 'whether Mrs. Collins

has yet expressed her sense of your kindness in coming to

us; but I am very certain you will not leave the house without

receiving her thanks for it. The favour of your company

has been much felt, I assure you. We know how little there

is to tempt any one to our humble abode. Our plain manner

of living, our small rooms, and few domestics, and the little

we see of the world, must make Hunsford extremely dull to a

young lady like yourself; but I hope you will believe us

grateful for the condescension, and that we have done every-

thing in our power to prevent your spending your time un-

pleasantly.'

 

Elizabeth was eager with her thanks and assurances of

happiness. She had spent six weeks with great enjoyment;

and the pleasure of being with Charlotte, and the kind at-

tentions she had received, must make her feel the obliged.

Mr. Collins was gratified; and with a more smiling solemnity

replied, --

 

'It gives me the greatest pleasure to hear that you have

passed your time not disagreeably. We have certainly done

our best; and most fortunately having it in our power to

introduce you to very superior society, and from our connec-

tion with Rosings, the frequent means of varying the humble

home scene, I think we may flatter ourselves that your Huns-

ford visit cannot have been entirely irksome. Our situation

with regard to Lady Catherine's family is, indeed, the sort of

extraordinary advantage and blessing which few can boast.

You see on what a footing we are. You see how continually

we are engaged there. In truth, I must acknowledge that,

with all the disadvantages of this humble parsonage, I should

 

 [356]

 
{{prhprp357.jpg}}

 

not think any one abiding in it an object of compassion while

they are sharers of our intimacy at Rosings.'

 

Words were insufficient for the elevation of his feelings;

and he was obliged to walk about the room, while Elizabeth

tried to unite civility and truth in a few short sentences.

 

'You may, in fact, carry a very favourable report of us into

Hertfordshire, my dear cousin. I flatter myself, at least, that

you will be able to do so. Lady Catherine's great attentions

to Mrs. Collins you have been a daily witness of; and

altogether I trust it does not appear that your friend has

drawn an unfortunate -- but on this point it will be as well

to be silent. Only let me assure you, my dear Miss Elizabeth,

that I can from my heart most cordially wish you equal

felicity in marriage. My dear Charlotte and I have but one

mind and one way of thinking. There is in everything a most

remarkable resemblance of character and ideas between us.

We seem to have been designed for each other.'

 

Elizabeth could safely say that it was a great happiness

where that was the case, and with equal sincerity could add,

that she firmly believed and rejoiced in his domestic comforts.

She was not sorry, however, to have the recital of them

interrupted by the entrance of the lady from whom they

sprang. Poor Charlotte! it was melancholy to leave her to

such society! But she had chosen it with her eyes open;

and though evidently regretting that her visitors were to go,

she did not seem to ask for compassion. Her home and her

housekeeping, her parish and her poultry, and all their de-

pendent concerns, had not yet lost their charms.

 

At length the chaise arrived, the trunks were fastened

on, the parcels placed within, and it was pronounced to be

ready.

 

After an affectionate parting between the friends. Elizabeth

was attended to the carriage by Mr. Collins; and as they

walked down the garden, he was commissioning her with

his best respects to all her family, not forgetting his thanks

for the kindness he had received at Longbourn in the winter,

and his compliments to Mr. and Mrs. Gardiner, though un-

known. He then handed her in, Maria followed, and the

door was on the point of being closed, when he suddenly

reminded them, with some consternation, that they had

 

 [357]

 
{{prhprp358.jpg}}

 

hitherto forgotten to leave any message for the ladies of

Rosings.

 

'But,' he added, 'you will of course wish to have your

humble respects delivered to them, with your grateful thanks

for their kindness to you while you have been here.'

 

Elizabeth made no objection: the door was then allowed

to be shut, and the carriage drove off.

 

'Good gracious!' cried Maria, after a few minutes silence,

'it seems but a day or two since we first came! and yet how

many things have happened!'

 

'A great many, indeed,' said her companion, with a sigh.

 

'We have dined nine times at Rosings, besides drinking

tea there twice! How much I shall have to tell!'

 

Elizabeth privately added, 'And how much I shall have to

conceal.'

 

Their journey was performed without much conversation,

or any alarm; and within four hours of their leaving Huns-

ford they reached Mr. Gardiner's house, where they were to

remain a few days.

 

Jane looked well, and Elizabeth had little opportunity of

studying her spirits, amidst the various engagements which

the kindness of her aunt had reserved for them. But Jane

was to go home with her, and at Longbourn there would be

leisure enough for observation.

 

It was not without an effort, meanwhile, that she could

wait even for Longbourn, before she told her sister of Mr.

Darcy's proposals. To know that she had the power of re-

vealing what would so exceedingly astonish Jane, and must,

at the same time, so highly gratify whatever of her own

vanity she had not yet been able to reason away, was such a

temptation to openness as nothing could have conquered, but

the state of indecision in which she remained as to the extent

of what she should communicate, and her fear, if she once

entered on the subject, of being hurried into repeating some-

thing of Bingley, which might only grieve her sister further.

 

 [358]

 
{{prhprp359.jpg}}

 

 

 

 

Chapter XXXIX

 

IT was the second week in May, in which the three young

ladies set out together from Gracechurch Street for the

town of ____, in Hertfordshire; and, as they drew near

the appointed inn where Mr. Bennet's carriage was to meet

them, they quickly perceived, in token of the coachman's

punctuality, both Kitty and Lydia looking out of a dining-

room upstairs. These two girls had been above an hour in the

place, happily employed in visiting an opposite milliner, watch-

ing the sentinel on guard, and dressing a salad and cucumber.

 

After welcoming their sisters, they triumphantly displayed

a table set out with such cold meat as an inn larder usually

affords, exclaiming, 'Is not this nice? is not this an agreeable

surprise?'

 

'And we mean to treat you all,' added Lydia; 'but you

must lend us the money, for we have just spent ours at the

shop out there.' Then showing her purchases, -- 'Look here,

I have bought this bonnet. I do not think it is very pretty:

but I thought I might as well buy it as not. I shall pull it to

pieces as soon as I get home, and see if I can make it up

any better.'

 

And when her sisters abused it as ugly, she added, with

perfect unconcern. Oh, but there were two or three much

uglier in the shop: and when I have bought some prettier-

coloured satin to trim it with fresh, I think it will be very

tolerable. Besides, it will not much signify what one wears

this summer, after the shire have left Meryton, and they

are going in a fortnight.'

 

'Are they, indeed?' cried Elizabeth, with the greatest satis-

faction.

 

'They are going to be encamped near Brighton: and I do

so want papa to take us all there for the summer! It would

be such a delicious scheme, and I daresay would hardly

cost anything at all. Mamma would like to go, too, of

all things! Only think what a miserable summer else we

shall have!'

 

 [359]

 
{{prhprp360.jpg}}

 

 

'Yes,' thought Elizabeth; 'that would be a delightful

scheme, indeed, and completely do for us at once. Good

Heaven! Brighton and a whole campful of soldiers, to us,

who have been overset already by one poor regiment of

militia, and the monthly balls of Meryton!'

 

'Now I have got some news for you,' said Lydia, as they

sat down to table. 'What do you think? It is excellent

news, capital news, and about a certain person that we all

like.'

 

Jane and Elizabeth looked at each other, and the waiter

was told that he need not stay. Lydia laughed, and said, --

 

'Ay, that is just like your formality and discretion. You

thought the waiter must not hear, as if he cared! I daresay

he often hears worse things said than I am going to say. But

he is an ugly fellow! I am glad he is gone. I never saw

such a long chin in my life. Well, but now for my news: it

is about dear Wickham; too good for the waiter, is not it?

There is no danger of Wickham's marrying Mary King --

there's for you! She is gone down to her uncle at Liverpool;

gone to stay. Wickham is safe.'

 

'And Mary King is safe!' added Elizabeth: 'safe from a

connection imprudent as to fortune.'

 

'She is a great fool for going away, if she liked him.'

 

'But I hope there is no strong attachment on either side,'

said Jane.

 

'I am sure there is not on his. I will answer for it, he

never cared three straws about her. Who could about such a

nasty little freckled thing?'

 

Elizabeth was shocked to think that, however incapable of

such coarseness of expression herself, the coarseness of the

sentiment was little other than her own breast had formerly

harboured and fancied liberal!

 

As soon as all had ate, and the elder ones paid, the carriage

was ordered; and, after some contrivance, the whole party,

with all their boxes, workbags, and parcels, and the unwel-

come addition of Kitty's and Lydia's purchases, were seated

in it.

 

'How nicely we are crammed in!' cried Lydia. 'I am glad

I brought my bonnet, if it is only for the fun of having

another band-box! Well, now let us be quite comfortable and

 

 [360]

 
{{prhprp361.jpg}}

 

snug, and talk and laugh all the way home. And in the first

place, let us hear what has happened to you all since you

went away. Have you seen any pleasant men? Have you

had any flirting? I was in great hopes that one of you would

have got a husband before you came back. Jane will be

quite an old maid soon. I declare. She is almost three-and-

twenty! Lord! how ashamed I should be of not being

married before three-and-twenty! My aunt Philips wants

you so to get husbands, you can't think. She says Lizzy had

better have taken Mr. Collins; but I do not think there would

have been any fun in it. Lord I how I should like to be

married before any of you! and then I would chaperon you

about to all the balls. Dear me! we had such a good piece

of fun the other day at Colonel Forster's! Kitty and me were

to spend the day there, and Mrs. Forster promised to have a

little dance in the evening (by the bye, Mrs. Forster and me

are such friends!); and so she asked the two Harringtons to

come; but Harriet was ill, and so Pen was forced to come by

herself; and then, what do you think we did? We dressed

up Chamberlayne in woman's clothes, on purpose to pass for a

lady, -- only think what fun! Not a soul knew of it, but

Colonel and Mrs. F'orster, and Kitty and me, except my aunt,

for we were forced to borrow one of her gowns; and you

cannot imagine how well he looked! When Denny, and

Wickham, and Pratt, and two or three more of the men came

in, they did not know him in the least. Lord! how I laughed!

and so did Mrs. Forster. I thought I should have died. And

that made the men suspect something, and then they soon

found out what was the matter.'

 

With such kind of histories of their parties and good

jokes did Lydia, assisted by Kitty's hints and additions,

endeavour to amuse her companions all the way to Long-

bourn. Elizabeth listened as little as she could, but

there was no escaping the frequent mention of Wick-

ham's name.

 

Their reception at home was most kind. Mrs. Bennet

rejoiced to see Jane in undiminished beauty; and more than

once during dinner did Mr. Bennet say voluntarily to

Elizabeth. --

 

'I am glad you are come back, Lizzy.'

 

 [361]

 
{{prhprp362.jpg}}

 

 

Their party in the dining-room was large, for almost all the

Lucases came to meet Maria and hear the news; and various

were the subjects which occupied them: Lady Lucas was

inquiring of Maria, across the table, after the welfare and

poultry of her eldest daughter; Mrs. Bennet was doubly en-

gaged, on one hand collecting an account of the present

fashions from Jane, who sat some way below her, and on the

other, retailing them all to the younger Miss Lucases; and

Lydia, in a voice rather louder than any other person's, was

enumerating the various pleasures of the morning to any-

body who would hear her.

 

'Oh, Mary,' said she, 'I wish you had gone with us, for

we had such fun! as we went along Kitty and me drew up all

the blinds, and pretended there was nobody in the coach; and

I should have gone so all the way, if Kitty had not been sick;

and when we got to the George, I do think we behaved very

handsomely, for we treated the other three with the nicest

cold luncheon in the world, and if you would have gone, we

would have treated you too. And then when we came away

it was such fun! I thought we never should have got into the

coach. I was ready to die of laughter. And then we were

so merry all the way home! we talked and laughed so loud,

that anybody might have heard us ten miles off!'

 

To this Mary very gravely replied, 'Far be it from me,

my dear sister, to depreciate such pleasures. They would

doubtless be congenial with the generality of female minds.

But I confess they would have no charms for me. I should

infinitely prefer a book.'

 

But of this answer Lydia heard not a word. She seldom

listened to anybody for more than half a minute, and never

attended to Mary at all.

 

In the afternoon Lydia was urgent with the rest of the girls

to walk to Meryton, and see how everybody went on; but

Elizabeth steadily opposed the scheme. It should not be

said that the Miss Bennets could not be at home half a day

before they were in pursuit of the officers. There was an-

other reason, too, for her opposition. She dreaded seeing

Wickham again, and was resolved to avoid it as long as pos-

sible. The comfort to her, of the regiment's approaching

removal, was indeed beyond expression. In a fortnight they

 

 [362]

 
{{prhprp363.jpg}}

 

were to go, and once gone, she hoped there could be nothing

more to plague her on his account.

 

She had not been many hours at home, before she found

that the Brighton scheme, of which Lydia had given them a

hint at the inn, was under frequent discussion between her

parents. Elizabeth saw directly that her father had not the

smallest intention of yielding; but his answers were at the

same time so vague and equivocal, that her mother, though

often disheartened, had never yet despaired of succeeding at

last.

 

 [363]

 
{{prhprp364.jpg}}

 

 

 

 

Chapter XL

 

ELIZABETH'S impatience to acquaint Jane with what

had happened could no longer be overcome; and at

length, resolving to suppress every particular in which

her sister was concerned, and preparing her to be surprised,

she related to her the next morning the chief of the scene

between Mr. Darcy and herself.

 

Miss Bennet's astonishment was soon lessened by the strong

sisterly partiality which made any admiration of Elizabeth

appear perfectly natural; and all surprise was shortly lost in

other feelings. She was sorry that Mr. Darcy should have

delivered his sentiments in a manner so little suited to recom-

mend them; but still more was she grieved for the unhappi-

ness which her sister's refusal must have given him.

 

'His being so sure of succeeding was wrong,' said she,

'and certainly ought not to have appeared; but consider how

much it must increase his disappointment.'

 

'Indeed,' replied Elizabeth, 'I am heartily sorry for him;

but he has other feelings which will probably soon drive away

his regard for me. You do not blame me, however, for

refusing him?'

 

'Blame you! Oh, no.'

 

'But you blame me for having spoken so warmly of

Wickham?'

 

'No -- I do not know that you were wrong in saying what

you did.'

 

'But you will know it, when I have told you what happened

the very next day.'

 

She then spoke of the letter, repeating the whole of its

contents as far as they concerned George Wickham. What a

stroke was this for poor Jane! who would willingly have gone

through the world without believing that so much wickedness

existed in the whole race of mankind as was here collected

in one individual. Nor was Darcy's vindication, though

grateful to her feelings, capable of consoling her for such

 

 [364]

 
{{prhprp365.jpg}}

 

discovery. Most earnestly did she labour to prove the prob-

ability of error, and to seek to clear one, without involving

the other.

 

'This will not do,' said Elizabeth; 'yo' never will be able

to make both of them good for anything. Take your choice,

but you must be satisfied with only one. There is but such a

quantity of merit between them; just enough to make one

good sort of man; and of late it has been shifting about

pretty much. For my part, I am inclined to believe it all Mr.

Darcy's, but you shall do as you choose.'

 

It was some time, however, before a smile could be extorted

from Jane.

 

'I do not know when I have been more shocked,' said she.

Wickham so very bad! It is almost past belief. And poor

Mr. Darcy! dear Lizzy, only consider what he must have

suffered. Such a disappointment! and with the knowledge

of your ill opinion too! and having to relate such a thing of

his sister! It is really too distressing, I am sure you must

feel it so.'

 

'Oh no, my regret and compassion are all done away by

seeing you so full of both. I know you will do him such

ample justice, that I am growing every moment more uncon-

cerned and indifferent. Your profusion makes me saving;

and if you lament over him much longer, my heart will be

as light as a feather.'

 

'Poor Wickham! there is such an expression of goodness

in his countenance! such an openness and gentleness in his

manner.'

 

'There certainly was some great mismanagement in the

education of those two young men. One has got all the good-

ness, and the other all the appearance of it.'

 

'I never thought Mr. Darcy so deficient in the appearance

of it as you used to do.'

 

'And yet I meant to be uncommonly clever in taking so

decided a dislike to him, without any reason. It is such a

spur to one's genius, such an opening for wit, to have a dis-

like of that kind. One may be continually abusive without

saying anything just; but one cannot be always laughing

at a man without now and then stumbling on something

witty.'

 

 [365]

 
{{prhprp366.jpg}}

 

 

'Lizzy, when you first read that letter, I am sure you could

not treat the matter as you do now.'

 

'Indeed I could not. I was uncomfortable enough, I was

very uncomfortable -- I may say unhappy. And with no one

to speak to of what I felt, no Jane to comfort me, and say

that I had not been so very weak, and vain, and nonsensical,

as I knew I had! Oh, how I wanted you!'

 

'How unfortunate that you should have used such very

strong expressions in speaking of Wickham to Mr. Darcy,

for now they do appear wholly undeserved.'

 

'Certainly. But the misfortune of speaking with bitterness

is a most natural consequence of the prejudices I had been

encouraging. There is one point on which I want your

advice. I want to be told whether I ought, or ought not, to

make our acquaintance in general understand Wickham's

character.'

 

Miss Bennet paused a little, and then replied, 'Surely there

can be no occasion for exposing him so dreadfully. What is

your own opinion?'

 

'That it ought not to be attempted. Mr. Darcy has not

authorised me to make his communication public. On the

contrary, every particular relative to his sister was meant to

be kept as much as possible to myself; and if I endeavour to

undeceive people as to the rest of his conduct, who will

believe me? The general prejudice against Mr. Darcy is so

violent, that it would be the death of half the good people in

Meryton, to attempt to place him in an amiable light. I am

not equal to it. Wickham will soon be gone; and, therefore,

it will not signify to anybody here what he really is. Some

time hence it will be all found out, and then we may laugh at

their stupidity in not knowing it before. At present I will

say nothing about it.'

 

'You are quite right. To have his errors made public

might ruin him for ever. He is now, perhaps, sorry for what

he has done, and anxious to re-establish a character. We

must not make him desperate.'

 

The tumult of Elizabeth's mind was allayed by this conver-

sation. She had got rid of two of the secrets which had

weighed on her for a fortnight, and was certain of a willing

listener in Jane, whenever she might wish to talk again of

 

 [366]

 
{{prhprp367.jpg}}

 

either. But there was still something lurking behind, of

which prudence forbade the disclosure. She dared not relate

the other half of Mr. Darcy's letter, nor explain to her sister

how sincerely she had been valued by his friend. Here was

knowledge in which no one could partake; and she was sen-

sible that nothing less than a perfect understanding between

the parties could justify her in throwing off this last encum-

brance of mystery. 'And then,' said she, 'if that very im-

probable event should ever take place. I shall merely be able

to tell what Bingley may tell in a much more agreeable

manner himself. The liberty of communication cannot be

mine till it has lost all its value!'

 

She was now, on being settled at home, at leisure to observe

the real state of her sister's spirits. Jane was not happy.

She still cherished a very tender affection for Bingley. Hav-

ing never even fancied herself in love before, her regard

had all the warmth of first attachment, and from her age and

disposition, greater steadiness than first attachments often

boast; and so fervently did she value his remembrance, and

prefer him to every other man, that all her good sense, and

all her attention to the feelings of her friends, were requisite

to check the indulgence of those regrets which must have

been injurious to her own health and their tranquillity.

 

'Well, Lizzy,' said Mrs. Bennet, one day, 'what is your

opinion now of this sad business of Jane's? For my part, I

am determined never to speak of it again to anybody. I

told my sister Philips so the other day. But I cannot find

out that Jane saw anything of him in London. Well, he is

a very undeserving young man -- and I do not suppose there

is the least chance in the world of her ever getting him now.

There is no talk of his coming to Netherfield again in the

summer; and I have inquired of everybody, too, who is

likely to know.'

 

'I do not believe that he will ever live at Netherfield any

more.'

 

'Oh, well! it is just as he chooses. Nobody wants him to

come; though I shall always say that he used my daughter

extremely ill; and, if I was her, I would not have put up with

it. Well, my comfort is, I am sure Jane will die of a broken

heart, and then he will be sorry for what he has done.'

 

 [367]

 
{{prhprp368.jpg}}

 

 

But as Elizabeth could not receive comfort from any such

expectation she made no answer.

 

'Well, Lizzy,' continued her mother, soon afterwards, 'and

so the Collinses live very comfortable, do they? Well, well,

I only hope it will last. And what sort of table do they keep?

Charlotte is an excellent manager, I daresay. If she is half

as sharp as her mother, she is saving enough. There is noth-

ing extravagant in their housekeeping, I daresay.'

 

'No, nothing at all.'

 

'A great deal of good management, depend upon it. Yes,

yes. They will take care not to outrun their income. They

will never be distressed for money. Well, much good may

it do them! And so, I suppose, they often talk of having

Longbourn when your father is dead. They look upon it

quite as their own, I daresay, whenever that happens.'

 

'It was a subject which they could not mention before me.'

 

'No; it would have been strange if they had. But I make

no doubt they often talk of it between themselves. Well, if

they can be easy with an estate that is not lawfully their own,

so much the better. I should be ashamed of having one that

was only entailed on me.'

 

 [368]

 
{{prhprp369.jpg}}

 

 

 

 

Chapter XLI

 

THE first week of their return was soon gone. The sec-

ond began. It was the last of the regiment's stay in

Meryton, and all the young ladies in the neighbour-

hood were drooping apace. The dejection was almost uni-

versal. The elder Miss Bennets alone were still able to eat,

drink, and sleep, and pursue the usual course of their employ-

ments. Very frequently were they reproached for this in-

sensibility by Kitty and Lydia, whose own misery was ex-

treme, and who could not comprehend such hard-heartedness

in any of the family.

 

'Good Heaven! What is to become of us? What are we

to do?' would they often exclaim in the bitterness of woe.

'How can you be smiling so, Lizzy?' Their affectionate

mother shared all their grief; she remembered what she had

herself endured on a similar occasion five-and-twenty years

ago.

 

'I am sure,' said she, 'I cried for two days together when

Colonel Millar's regiment went away. I thought I should

have broke my heart.'

 

'I am sure I shall break mine' said Lydia.

 

'If one could but go to Brighton!' observed Mrs. Bennet.

 

'Oh yes! -- if one could but go to Brighton! But papa is

so disagreeable.'

 

'A little sea-bathing would set me up for ever.'

 

'And my aunt Philips is sure it would do me a great deal

of good,' added Kitty.

 

Such were the kind of lamentations resounding perpetually

through Longbourn House. Elizabeth tried to be diverted

by them; but all sense of pleasure was lost in shame. She

felt anew the justice of Mr. Darcy's objections; and never

had she before been so much disposed to pardon his inter-

ference in the views of his friend.

 

But the gloom of Lydia's prospect was shortly cleared

away; for she received an invitation from Mrs. Forster, the

 

 [369]

 
{{prhprp370.jpg}}

 

wife of the colonel of the regiment, to accompany her to

Brighton. This invaluable friend was a very young woman,

and very lately married. A resemblance in good-humour

and good spirits had recommended her and Lydia to each

other, and out of their three months' acquaintance they had

been intimate two.

 

The rapture of Lydia on this occasion, her adoration of

Mrs. Forster, the delight of Mrs. Bennet, and the mortifica-

tion of Kitty, are scarcely to be described. Wholly inatten-

tive to her sister's feelings, Lydia flew about the house in

restless ecstasy, calling for every one's congratulations,

and laughing and talking with more violence than ever;

whilst the luckless Kitty continued in the parlour repining

at her fate in terms as unreasonable as her accent was

peevish.

 

'I cannot see why Mrs. Forster should not ask we as well

as Lydia,' said she, 'though I am not her particular friend.

I have just as much right to be asked as she has, and

more too, for I am two years older.'

 

'In vain did Elizabeth attempt to make her reasonable, and

Jane to make her resigned. As for Elizabeth herself, this

invitation was so far from exciting in her the same feelings

as in her mother and Lydia, that she considered it as the

death-warrant of all possibility of common sense for the

latter; and, detestable as such a step must make her were it

known, she could not help secretly advising her father not to

let her go. She represented to him all the improprieties of

Lydia's general behaviour, the little advantage she could

derive from the friendship of such a woman as Mrs. Forster,

and the probability of her being yet more imprudent with

such a companion at Brighton, where the temptations must

be greater than at home. He heard her attentively, and then

said, --

 

'Lydia will never be easy till she has exposed herself in

some public place or other, and we can never expect her to

do it with so little expense or inconvenience to her family as

under the present circumstances.'

 

'If you were aware,' said Elizabeth, 'of the very great dis-

advantage to us all, which must arise from the public notice

of Lydia's unguarded and imprudent manner, nay, which has

 

 [370]

 
{{prhprp371.jpg}}

 

already arisen from it. I am sure you would judge differently

in the affair.'

 

'Already arisen!' repeated Mr. Bennet. 'What! has she

frightened away some of your lovers? Poor little Lizzy.

But do not be cast down. Such squeamish youths as cannot

bear to be connected with a little absurdity are not worth a

regret. Come, let me see the list of the pitiful fellows who

have been kept aloof by Lydia's folly.'

 

'Indeed, you are mistaken. I have no such injuries to

resent. It is not of peculiar, but of general evils, which I am

now complaining. Our importance, our respectability in the

world, must be affected by the wild volatility, the assurance

and disdain of all restraint which mark Lydia's character.

Excuse me, -- for I must speak plainly. If you, my dear

father, will not take the trouble of checking her exuberant

spirits, and of teaching her that her present pursuits are not

to be the business of her life, she will soon be beyond the

reach of amendment. Her character will be fixed; and she

will, at sixteen, be the most determined flirt that ever made

herself and her family ridiculous. A flirt, too, in the worst

and meanest degree of flirtation; without any attraction be-

yond youth and a tolerable person; and, from the ignorance

and emptiness of her mind, wholly unable to ward oft' any

portion of that universal contempt which her rage for admi-

ration will excite. In this danger Kitty is also comprehended.

She will follow wherever Lydia leads. Vain, ignorant, idle,

and absolutely uncontrolled! Oh, my dear father, can you

suppose it possible that they will not be censured and despised

wherever they are known, and that their sisters will not be

often involved in the disgrace?'

 

Mr. Bennet saw that her whole heart was in the subject;

and, affectionately taking her hand, said in reply, --

 

'Do not make yourself uneasy, my love. Wherever you and

Jane are known, you must be respected and valued; and you

will not appear to less advantage for having a couple of --

or I may say, three -- very silly sisters. We shall have no

peace at Longbourn if Lydia does not go to Brighton. Let

her go, then. Colonel Forster is a sensible man, and will

keep her out of any real mischief; and she is luckily too poor

to be an object of prey to anybody. At Brighton she will be

 

 [371]

 
{{prhprp372.jpg}}

 

of less importance even as a common flirt than she has been

here. The officers will find women better worth their notice.

Let us hope, therefore, that her being there may teach her

her own insignificance. At any rate, she cannot grow many

degrees worse, without authorising us to lock her up for the

rest of her life.'

 

With this answer Elizabeth was forced to be content; but

her own opinion continued the same, and she left him dis-

appointed and sorry. It was not in her nature, however,

to increase her vexations by dwelling on them. She was

confident of having performed her duty; and to fret over

unavoidable evils, or augment them by anxiety, was no part

of her disposition.

 

Had Lydia and her mother known the substance of her

conference with her father, their indignation would hardly

have found expression in their united volubility. In Lydia's

imagination, a visit to Brighton comprised every possibility

of earthly happiness. She saw, with the creative eye of

fancy, the streets of that gay bathing-place covered with

officers. She saw herself the object of attention to tens and

to scores of them at present unknown. She saw all the

glories of the camp: its tents stretched forth in beauteous

uniformity of lines, crowded with the young and the gay, and

dazzling with scarlet; and, to complete the view, she saw her-

self seated beneath a tent, tenderly flirting with at least six

officers at once.

 

Had she known that her sister sought to tear her from

such prospects and such realities as these, what would have

been her sensations? They could have been understood only

by her mother, who might have felt nearly the same. Lydia's

going to Brighton was all that consoled her for the melan-

choly conviction of her husband's never intending to go there

himself.

 

But they were entirely ignorant of what had passed; and

their raptures continued, with little intermission, to the very

day of Lydia's leaving home.

 

Elizabeth was now to see Mr. Wickham for the last time.

Having been frequently in company with him since her re-

turn, agitation was pretty well over; the agitations of former

partiality entirely so. She had even learnt to detect, in the

 

 [372]

 
{{prhprp373.jpg}}

 

very gentleness which had first delighted her, an affectation

and a sameness to disgust and weary. In his present be-

haviour to herself, moreover, she had a fresh source of

displeasure: for the inclination he soon testified of renewing

those attentions which had marked the early part of their

acquaintance could only serve, after what had since passed, to

provoke her. She lost all concern for him in finding herself

thus selected as the object of such idle and frivolous gal-

lantry; and while she steadily repressed it, could not but

feel the reproof contained in his believing that, however long

and for whatever cause his attentions had been withdrawn,

her vanity would be gratified, and her preference secured

at any time, by their renewal.

 

On the very last day of the regiment's remaining in Mery-

ton, he dined, with others of the officers, at Longbourn; and

so little was Elizabeth disposed to part from him in good-

humour, that, on his making some inquiry as to the manner

in which her time had passed at Hunsford, she mentioned

Colonel Fitzwilliam's and Mr. Darcy's having both spent

three weeks at Rosings, and asked him if he were acquainted

with the former.

 

He looked surprised, displeased, alarmed; but, with a

moment's recollection, and a returning smile, replied that he

had formerly seen him often; and, after observing that he

was a very gentlemanlike man, asked her how she had liked

him. Her answer was warmly in his favour. With an air of

indifference, he soon afterwards added, 'How long did you

say that he was at Rosings?'

 

'Nearly three weeks.'

 

'And you saw him frequently?'

 

'Yes, almost every day.'

 

'His manners are very different from his cousin's.'

 

'Yes, very different; but I think Mr. Darcy improves on

acquaintance.'

 

'Indeed!' cried Wickham, with a look which did not escape

her. 'And pray may I ask' but checking himself, he

added, in a gayer tone. 'Is it in address that he improves?

Has he deigned to add aught of civility to his ordinary

style? for I dare not hope,' he continued, in a lower and

more serious tone, 'that he is improved in essentials.'

 

 [373]

 
{{prhprp374.jpg}}

 

 

'Oh no!' said Elizabeth. 'In essentials, I believe, he is

very much what he ever was.'

 

While she spoke, Wickham looked as if scarcely knowing

whether to rejoice over her words or to distrust their mean-

ing. There was a something in her countenance which made

him listen with an apprehensive and anxious attention, while

she added, --

 

'When I said that he improved on acquaintance, I did not

mean that either his mind or manners were in a state of im-

provement; but that, from knowing him better, his disposi-

tion was better understood.'

 

Wickham's alarm now appeared in a heightened com-

plexion and agitated look; for a few minutes he was silent;

till, shaking off his embarrassment, he turned to her again,

and said in the gentlest of accents, --

 

'You, who so well know my feelings towards Mr. Darcy,

will readily comprehend how sincerely I must rejoice that

he is wise enough to assume even the appearance of what is

right. His pride, in that direction, may be of service, if not

to himself, to many others, for it must deter him from such

foul misconduct as I have suffered by. I only fear that the

sort of cautiousness to which you, I imagine, have been

alluding, is merely adopted on his visits to his aunt, of whose

good opinion and judgment he stands much in awe. His

fear of her has always operated, I know, when they were

together; and a good deal is to be imputed to his wish of

forwarding the match with Miss de Bourgh, which I am

certain he has very much at heart.'

 

Elizabeth could not repress a smile at this, but she an-

swered only by a slight inclination of the head. She saw that

he wanted to engage her on the old subject of his grievances,

and she was in no humour to indulge him. The rest of the

evening passed with the appearance, on his side, of usual

cheerfulness, but with no further attempt to distinguish

Elizabeth; and they parted at last with mutual civility, and

possibly a mutual desire of never meeting again.

 

When the party broke up, Lydia returned with Mrs.

Forster to Meryton, from whence they were to set out early

the next morning. The separation between her and her

family was rather noisy than pathetic. Kitty was the only

 

 [374]

 
{{prhprp375.jpg}}

 

one who shed tears; but she did weep from vexation and

envy. Mrs. Bennet was diffuse in her good wishes for the

felicity of her daughter, and impressive in her injunctions

that she would not miss the opportunity of enjoying herself

as much as possible, -- advice which there was every reason

to believe would be attended to; and, in the clamorous happi-

ness of Lydia herself in bidding farewell, the more gentle

adieus of her sisters were uttered without being heard.

 

 [375]

 
{{prhprp376.jpg}}

 

 

 

 

Chapter XLII

 

HAD Elizabeth's opinion been all drawn from her own

family, she could not have formed a very pleasing

picture of conjugal felicity or domestic comfort. Her

father, captivated by youth and beauty, and that appearance

of good-humour which youth and beauty generally give, had

married a woman whose weak understanding and illiberal

mind had very early in their marriage put an end to all real

affection for her. Respect, esteem, and confidence had van-

ished for ever; and all his views of domestic happiness were

overthrown.

 

But Mr. Bennet was not of a disposition to seek com-

fort for the disappointment which his own imprudence

had brought on in any of those pleasures which too

often console the unfortunate for their folly or their vice.

He was fond of the country and of books; and from these

tastes had arisen his principal enjoyments. To his wife he

was very little otherwise indebted than as her ignorance and

folly had contributed to his amusement. This is not the sort

of happiness which a man would in general wish to owe to

his wife; but where other powers of entertainment are want-

ing, the true philosopher will derive benefit from such as

are given.

 

Elizabeth, however, had never been blind to the impropriety

of her father's behaviour as a husband. She had always seen

it with pain; but respecting his abilities, and grateful for his

affectionate treatment of herself, she endeavoured to forget

what she could not overlook, and to banish from her thoughts

that continual breach of conjugal obligation and decorum

which, in exposing his wife to the contempt of her own chil-

dren, was so highly reprehensible. But she had never felt

so strongly as now the disadvantages which must attend the

children of so unsuitable a marriage, nor ever been so fully

aware of the evils arising from so ill-judged a direction of

talents -- talents which, rightly used, might at least have pre-

 

 [376]

 
{{prhprp377.jpg}}

 

served the respectability of his daughters, even if incapable

of enlarging the mind of his wife.

 

When Elizabeth had rejoiced over Wickham's departure,

she found little other cause for satisfaction in the loss of the

regiment. Their parties abroad were less varied than before;

and at home she had a mother and sister, whose constant

repinings at the dulness of everything around them threw a

real gloom over their domestic circle; and, though Kitty

might in time regain her natural degree of sense, since the

disturbers of her brain were removed, her other sister, from

whose disposition greater evil might be apprehended, was

likely to be hardened in all her folly and assurance by a

situation of such double danger as a watering-place and a

camp. Upon the whole, therefore, she found, what has been

sometimes found before, that an event to which she had

looked forward with impatient desire, did not, in taking place,

bring all the satisfaction she had promised herself. It was

consequently necessary to name some other period for the

commencement of actual felicity; to have some other point on

which her wishes and hopes might be fixed, and by again

enjoying the pleasure of anticipation, console herself for the

present, and prepare for another disappointment. Her tour

to the Lakes was now the object of her happiest thoughts: it

was her best consolation for all the uncomfortable hours

which the discontentedness of her mother and Kitty made

inevitable; and could she have included Jane in the scheme

every part of it would have been perfect.

 

'But it is fortunate,' thought she, 'that I have something

to wish for. Were the whole arrangement complete, my

disappointment would be certain. But here, by carrying with

me one ceaseless source of regret in my sister's absence, I

may reasonably hope to have all my expectations of pleasure

realised. A scheme of which every part promises delight can

never be successful; and general disappointment is only

warded off by the defence of some little peculiar vexation.'

 

When Lydia went away she promised to write very often

and very minutely to her mother and Kitty; but her letters

were always long expected, and always very short. Those to

her mother contained little else than that they were just re-

turned from the library, where such and such officers had

 

 [377]

 
{{prhprp378.jpg}}

 

attended them, and where she had seen such beautiful orna-

ments as made her quite wild; that she had a new gown, or

a new parasol, which she would have described more fully,

but was obliged to leave off in a violent hurry, as Mrs.

Forster called her, and they were going to the camp; and

from her correspondence with her sister there was still less

to be learnt, for her letters to Kitty, though rather longer,

were much too full of lines under the words to be made public.

 

After the first fortnight or three weeks of her absence,

health, good-humour, and cheerfulness began to reappear at

Longbourn. Everything wore a happier aspect. The fami-

lies who had been in town for the winter came back again,

and summer finery and summer engagements arose. Mrs.

Bennet was restored to her usual querulous serenity; and

by the middle of June Kitty was so much recovered as to be

able to enter Meryton without tears, -- an event of such happy

promise as to make Elizabeth hope that by the following

Christmas she might be so tolerably reasonable as not to men-

tion an officer above once a day, unless, by some cruel and

malicious arrangement at the War Office, another regiment

should be quartered in Meryton.

 

The time fixed for the beginning of their northern tour

was now fast approaching; and a fortnight only was wanting

of it, when a letter arrived from Mrs. Gardiner, which at

once delayed its commencement and curtailed its extent. Mr.

Gardiner would be prevented by business from setting out

till a fortnight later in July, and must be in London again

within a month; and as that left too short a period for them

to go so far and see so much as they had proposed, or at

least to see it with the leisure and comfort they had built on,

they were obliged to give up the Lakes, and substitute a more

contracted tour; and, according to the present plan, were to

go no farther northward than Derbyshire. In that county

there was enough to be seen to occupy the chief of their

three weeks; and to Mrs. Gardiner it had a peculiarly strong

attraction. The town where she had formerly passed some

years of her life, and where they were now to spend a few

days, was probably as great an object of her curiosity as all

the celebrated beauties of Matlock, Chatsworth, Dovedale, or

the Peak.

 

 [378]

 
{{prhprp379.jpg}}

 

 

Elizabeth was excessively disappointed: she had set her

heart on seeing the Lakes; and still thought there might have

been time enough. But it was her business to be satisfied --

and certainly her temper to be happy; and all was soon right

again.

 

With the mention of Derbyshire there were many ideas

connected. It was impossible for her to see the word without

thinking of Pemberley and its owner. 'But surely,' said she,

'I may enter his county with impunity, and rob it of a few

petrified spars, without his perceiving me.'

 

The period of expectation was now doubled. Four weeks

were to pass away before her uncle and aunt's arrival. But

they did pass away, and Mr. and Mrs. Gardiner, with their

four children, did at length appear at Longbourn. The chil-

dren, two girls of six and eight years old, and two younger

boys, were to be left under the particular care of their cousin

Jane, who was the general favourite, and whose steady sense

and sweetness of temper exactly adapted her for attending to

then: in every way -- teaching them, playing with them, and

loving them.

 

The Gardiners stayed only one night at Longbourn, and

get off the next morning with Elizabeth in pursuit of novelty

and amusement. One enjoyment was certain -- that of suit-

ableness as companions -- a suitableness which comprehended

health and temper to bear inconveniences -- cheerfulness to

enhance every pleasure -- and affection and intelligence, which

might supply it among themselves if there were disappoint-

ments abroad.

 

It is not the object of this work to give a description of

Derbyshire, nor of any of the remarkable places through

which their route thither lay -- Oxford, Blenheim, Warwick,

Kenilworth, Birmingham, etc., are sufficiently known. A

small part of Derbyshire is all the present concern. To the

little town of Lambton, the scene of Mrs. Gardiner's former

residence, and where she had lately learned that some ac-

quaintance still remained, they bent their steps, after having

seen all the principal wonders of the country; and within five

miles of Lambton, Elizabeth found, from her aunt, that

Pemberley was situated, if was not in their direct road;

nor more than a mile or two out of it. In talking over their

 

 [379]

 
{{prhprp380.jpg}}

 

route the evening before, Mrs. Gardiner expressed an in-

clination to see the place again. Mr. Gardiner declared his

willingness, and Elizabeth was applied to for her approbation.

 

'My love, should not you like to see a place of which you

have heard so much?' said her aunt. 'A place, too, with

which so many of your acquaintance are connected. Wick-

ham passed all his youth there, you know.'

 

Elizabeth was distressed. She felt that she had no business

at Pemberley, and was obliged to assume a disinclination for

seeing it. 'She must own that she was tired of great houses:

after going over so many, she really had no pleasure in fine

carpets or satin curtains.'

 

Mrs. Gardiner abused her stupidity. 'If it were merely a

fine house richly furnished,' said she, 'I should not care about

it myself; but the grounds are delightful. They have some

of the finest woods in the country.'

 

Elizabeth said no more; but her mind could not acquiesce.

The possibility of meeting Mr. Darcy, while viewing the

place, instantly occurred. It would be dreadful! She blushed

at the very idea; and thought it would be better to speak

openly to her aunt, than to run such a risk. But against this

there were objections; and she finally resolved that it could

be the last resource, if her private inquiries as to the absence

of the family were unfavourably answered.

 

Accordingly, when she retired at night, she asked the

chambermaid whether Pemberley were not a very fine place,

what was the name of its proprietor, and, with no little alarm,

whether the family were down for the summer. A most

welcome negative followed the last question; and her alarms

being now removed, she was at leisure to feel a great deal of

curiosity to see the house herself; and when the subject was

revived the next morning, and she was again applied to, could

readily answer, and with a proper air of indifference, that she

had not really any dislike to the scheme.

 

To Pemberley, therefore, they were to go.

 

 [380]

 
{{prhprp381.jpg}}

 

 

 

 

Chapter XLIII

 

ELIZABETH, as they drove along, watched for the first

appearance of Pemberley Woods with some perturba-

tion; and when at length they turned in at the lodge,

her spirits were in a high flutter.

 

The park was very large, and contained great variety of

ground. They entered it in one of its lowest points, and

drove for some time through a beautiful wood stretching

over a wide extent.

 

Elizabeth's mind was too full for conversation, but she saw

and admired every remarkable spot and point of view. They

gradually ascended for half a mile, and then found themselves

at the top of a considerable eminence, where the wood ceased,

and the eye was instantly caught by Pemberley House, situ-

ated on the opposite side of the valley, into which the road

with some abruptness wound. It was a large, handsome stone

building, standing well on rising ground, and backed by a

ridge of high woody hills; and in front a stream or some

natural importance was swelled into greater, but without any

artificial appearance. Its banks were neither formal nor

falsely adorned. Elizabeth was delighted. She had never

seen a place for which nature had done more, or where

natural beauty had been so little counteracted by an awkward

taste. They were all of them warm in their admiration; and

at that moment she felt that to be mistress of Pemberley

might be something!

 

They descended the hill, crossed the bridge, and drove to

the door; and, while examining the nearer aspect of the

house, all her apprehension of meeting its owner returned.

She dreaded lest the chambermaid had been mistaken. On

applying to sec the place, they were admitted into the hall;

and Elizabeth, as they waited for the housekeeper, had leisure

to wonder at her being where she was.

 

The housekeeper came, a respectable-looking elderly

woman, much less fine, and more civil, than she had any

 

 [381]

 
{{prhprp382.jpg}}

 

notion of finding her. They followed her into the dining-

parlour. It was a large, well-proportioned room, handsomely

fitted up. Elizabeth, after slightly surveying it, went to a

window to enjoy its prospect. The hill, crowned with wood,

from which they had descended, receiving increased abrupt-

ness from the distance, was a beautiful object. Every dis-

position of the ground was good; and she looked on the

whole scene, the river, the trees scattered on its banks, and

the winding of the valley, as far as she could trace it, with

delight. As they passed into other rooms, these objects were

taking different positions; but from every window there were

beauties to be seen. The rooms were lofty and handsome,

and their furniture suitable to the fortune of their proprietor;

but Elizabeth saw, with admiration of his taste, that it was

neither gaudy nor uselessly fine, with less of splendour,

and more real elegance, than the furniture of Rosings.

 

'And of this place,' thought she, 'I might have been mis-

tress! With these rooms I might have now been familiarly

acquainted! Instead of viewing them as a stranger, I might

have rejoiced in them as my own, and welcomed to them as

visitors my uncle and aunt. But no,' recollecting herself,

'that could never be; my uncle and aunt would have been

lost to me; I should not have been allowed to invite them.'

 

This was a lucky recollection -- it saved her from something

like regret.

 

She longed to inquire of the housekeeper whether her

master were really absent, but had not courage for it. At

length, however, the question was asked by her uncle; and

she turned away with alarm, while Mrs. Reynolds replied

that he was; adding, 'But we expect him to-morrow, with a

large party of friends.' How rejoiced was Elizabeth that

their own journey had not by any circumstance been delayed

a day.

 

Her aunt now called her to look at a picture. She ap-

proached, and saw the likeness of Mr. Wickham, suspended,

amongst several other miniatures, over the mantelpiece. Her

aunt asked her, smilingly, how she liked it. The housekeeper

came forward, and told them it was the picture of a young

gentleman, the son of her late master's steward, who had

been brought up by him at his own expense. 'He is now

 

 [382]

 
{{prhprp383.jpg}}

 

gone into the army,' she added; 'but I am afraid he has

turned out very wild.'

 

Mrs. Gardiner looked at her niece with a smile, but Eliza-

beth could not return it.

 

'And that,' said Mrs. Reynolds, pointing to another of the

miniatures, 'is my master -- and very like him. It was drawn

at the same time as the other -- about eight years ago.'

 

'I have heard much of your master's fine person,' said

Mrs. Gardiner, looking at the picture; 'it is a handsome face.

But, Lizzy, you can tell us whether it is like or not.'

 

Mrs. Reynolds's respect for Elizabeth seemed to increase

on this intimation of her knowing her master.

 

'Does that young lady know Mr. Darcy?'

 

Elizabeth coloured and said, 'A little.'

 

'And do not you think him a very handsome gentleman,

ma'am?'

 

'Yes, very handsome.'

 

'I am sure I know none so handsome; but in the gallery

upstairs you will see a finer, larger picture of him than this.

This room was my late master's favourite room, and these

miniatures are just as they used to be then. He was very

fond of them.'

 

This accounted to Elizabeth for Mr. Wickham's being

among them.

 

Mrs. Reynolds then directed their attention to one of Miss

Darcy, drawn when she was only eight years old.

 

'And is Miss Darcy as handsome as her brother?' said Mr.

Gardiner.

 

'Oh yes -- the handsomest young lady that ever was seen;

and so accomplished! She plays and sings all day long. In

the next room is a new instrument just come down for her

-- a present from my master; she comes here to-morrow with

him.'

 

Mr. Gardiner, whose manners were easy and pleasant, en-

couraged her communicativeness by his questions and re-

marks: Mrs. Reynolds, either from pride or attachment, had

evidently great pleasure in talking of her master and his

sister.

 

'Is your master much at Pemberley in the course of the

year?'

 

 [383]

 
{{prhprp384.jpg}}

 

 

'Not so much as I could wish, sir: but I daresay he may

spend half his time here; and Miss Darcy is always down for

the summer months.'

 

Except, thought Elizabeth, when she goes to Ramsgate.

 

'If your master would marry, you might see more of him.'

 

'Yes, sir; but I do not know when that will be. I do not

know who is good enough for him.'

 

Mr. and Mrs. Gardiner smiled. Elizabeth could not help

saying, 'It is very much to his credit, I am sure, that you

should think so.'

 

'I say no more than the truth, and what everybody will

say that knows him,' replied the other. Elizabeth thought

this was going pretty far; and she listened with increasing

astonishment as the housekeeper added, 'I have never had a

cross word from him in my life, and I have known him ever

since he was four years old.'

 

This was praise of all others most extraordinary, most

opposite to her ideas. That he was not a good-tempered man

had been her firmest opinion. Her keenest attention was

awakened: she longed to hear more; and was grateful to

her uncle for saying, --

 

'There are very few people of whom so much can be said.

You are lucky in having such a master.'

 

'Yes, sir, I know I am. If I were to go through the world,

I could not meet with a better. But I have always observed

that they who are good-natured when children are good-

natured when they grow up; and he was always the sweetest-

tempered, most generous-hearted boy in the world.'

 

Elizabeth almost stared at her. 'Can this be Mr. Darcy?'

thought she.

 

'His father was an excellent man,' said Mrs. Gardiner.

 

'Yes, ma'am, that he was indeed; and his son will be just

like him -- just as affable to the poor.'

 

Elizabeth listened, wondered, doubted, and was impatient

for more. Mrs. Reynolds could interest her on no other point.

She related the subjects of the pictures, the dimensions of

the rooms, and the price of the furniture in vain. Mr. Gar-

diner, highly amused by the kind of family prejudice, to

which he attributed her excessive commendation of her mas-

ter, soon led again to the subject; and she dwelt with energy

 

 [384]

 
{{prhprp385.jpg}}

 

on his many merits, as they proceeded together up the great

staircase.

 

'He is the best landlord, and the best master,' said she,

'that ever lived. Not like the wild young men nowadays, who

think of nothing but themselves. There is not one of his ten-

ants or servants but what will give him a good name. Some

people call him proud; but I am sure I never saw anything

of it. To my fancy, it is only because he does not rattle

away like other young men.'

 

'In what an amiable light does this place him!' thought

Elizabeth.

 

'This fine account of him,' whispered her aunt as they

walked, 'is not quite consistent with his behaviour to our

poor friend.'

 

'Perhaps we might be deceived.'

 

'That is not very likely; our authority was too good.'

 

On reaching the spacious lobby above, they were shown

into a very pretty sitting-room, lately fitted up with greater

elegance and lightness than the apartments below; and were

informed that it was but just done to give pleasure to Miss

Darcy, who had taken a liking to the room when last at

Pemberley.

 

'He is certainly a good brother,' said Elizabeth, as she

walked towards one of the windows.

 

Mrs. Reynolds anticipated Miss Darcy's delight when she

should enter the room. 'And this is always the way with

him,' she added. Whatever can give his sister any pleasure,

is sure to be done in a moment. There is nothing he would

not do for her.'

 

The picture gallery, and two or three of the principal bed-

rooms, were all that remained to be shown. In the former

were many good paintings: but Elizabeth knew nothing of the

art; and from such as had been already visible below, she had

willingly turned to look at some drawings of Miss Darcy's, in

crayons, whose subjects were usually more interesting, and

also more intelligible.

 

In the gallery there were many family portraits, but they

could have little to fix the attention of a stranger. Elizabeth

walked on in quest of the only face whose features would be

known to her. At last it arrested her -- and she beheld a

 

 [385]

 
{{prhprp386.jpg}}

 

striking resemblance of Mr. Darcy, with such a smile over

the face as she remembered to have sometimes seen when he

looked at her. She stood several minutes before the picture,

in earnest contemplation, and returned to it again before they

quitted the gallery. Mrs. Reynolds informed them that it

had been taken in his father's lifetime.

 

There was certainly at this moment, in Elizabeth's mind, a

more gentle sensation towards the original than she had ever

felt in the height of their acquaintance. The commendation

bestowed on him by Mrs. Reynolds was of no trifling nature.

What praise is more valuable than the praise of an intelligent

servant? As a brother, a landlord, a master, she considered

how many people's happiness was in his guardianship! How

much of pleasure or pain it was in his power to bestow!

How much of good or evil must be done by him! Every idea

that had been brought forward by the housekeeper was fa-

vourable to his character; and as she stood before the canvas

on which he was represented, and fixed his eyes upon herself,

she thought of his regard with a deeper sentiment of grat-

itude than it had ever raised before: she remembered its

warmth, and softened its impropriety of expression.

 

When all of the house that was open to general inspection

had been seen, they returned downstairs; and, taking leave of

the housekeeper, were consigned over to the gardener, who

met them at the hall door.

 

As they walked across the lawn towards the river, Elizabeth

turned back to look again; her uncle and aunt stopped also:

and while the former was conjecturing as to the date of the

building, the owner of it himself suddenly came forward from

the road which led behind it to the stables.

 

They were within twenty yards of each other, and so

abrupt was his appearance, that it was impossible to avoid

his sight. Their eyes instantly met, and the cheeks of each

were overspread with the deepest blush. He absolutely

started, and for a moment seemed immovable from surprise;

but shortly recovering himself, advanced towards the party,

and spoke to Elizabeth, if not in terms of perfect composure,

at least of perfect civility.

 

She had instinctively turned away; but, stopping on his

approach, received his compliments with an embarrassment

 

 [386]

 
{{prhprp387.jpg}}

 

impossible to be overcome. Had his first appearance, or his

resemblance to the picture they had just been examining,

been insufficient to assure the other two that they now saw

Mr. Darcy, the gardener's expression of surprise, on behold-

ing his master, must immediately have told it. They stood

a little aloof while he was talking to their niece, who, aston-

ished and confused, scarcely dared lift her eyes to his face,

and knew not what answer she returned to his civil inquiries

after her family. Amazed at the alteration of his manner

since they last parted, every sentence that he uttered was in-

creasing her embarrassment; and every idea of the impro-

priety of her being found there recurring to her mind, the

few minutes in which they continued together were some

of the most uncomfortable of her life. Nor did he seem

much more at ease; when he spoke, his accent had none

of its usual sedateness; and he repeated his inquiries as to

the time of her having left Longbourn, and of her stay in

Derbyshire, so often, and in so hurried a way, as plainly

spoke the distraction of his thoughts.

 

At length every idea seemed to fail him; and after stand-

ing a few moments without saying a word, he suddenly recol-

lected himself, and took leave.

 

The others then joined her, and expressed their admiration

of his figure; but Elizabeth heard not a word, and, wholly

engrossed by her own feelings, followed them in silence. She

was overpowered by shame and vexation. Her coming there

was the most unfortunate, the most ill-judged thing in the

world! How strange must it appear to him! In what a dis-

graceful light might it not strike so vain a man! It might

seem as if she had purposely thrown herself in his way again!

Oh! why did she come? or, why did he thus come a day

before he was expected? Had they been only ten minutes

sooner, they should have been beyond the reach of his dis-

crimination; for it was plain that he was that moment ar-

rived, that moment alighted from his horse or his carriage.

She blushed again and again over the perverseness of the

meeting. And his behaviour, so strikingly altered, -- what

could it mean? That he should even speak to her was amaz-

ing! -- but to speak with such civility, to inquire after her

family I Never in her life had she seen his manner so little

 

 [387]

 
{{prhprp388.jpg}}

 

dignified, never had he spoken with such gentleness as on

this unexpected meeting. What a contrast did it offer to his

last address in Rosings Park, when he put his letter into her

hand! She knew not what to think, or how to account for it.

 

They had now entered a beautiful walk by the side of the

water, and every step was bringing forward a nobler fall of

ground, or a finer reach of the woods to which they were ap-

proaching: but it was some time before Elizabeth was sen-

sible of any of it; and, though she answered mechanically to

the repeated appeals of her uncle and aunt, and seemed to

direct her eyes to such objects as they pointed out, she dis-

tinguished no part of the scene. Her thoughts were all fixed

on that one spot of Pemberley House, whichever it might be,

where Mr. Darcy then was. She longed to know what at that

moment was passing in his mind; in what manner he thought

of her, and whether, in defiance of everything, she was still

dear to him. Perhaps he had been civil only because he felt

himself at ease; yet there had been that in his voice, which

was not like ease. Whether he had felt more of pain or of

pleasure in seeing her she could not tell, but he certainly had

not seen her with composure.

 

At length, however, the remarks of her companions on

her absence of mind roused her, and she felt the necessity of

appearing more like herself.

 

They entered the woods, and, bidding adieu to the river for

a while, ascended some of the higher ground; whence, in

spots where the opening of the trees gave the eye power to

wander, were many charming views of the valley, the oppo-

site hills, with the long range of woods overspreading many,

and occasionally part of the stream. Mr. Gardiner expressed

a wish of going round the whole park, but feared it might be

beyond a walk. With a triumphant smile they were told

that it was ten miles round. It settled the matter; and they

pursued the accustomed circuit; which brought them again,

after some time, in a descent among hanging woods, to the

edge of the water, and one of its narrowest parts. They

crossed it by a simple bridge, in character with the general

air of the scene: it was a spot less adorned than any they had

yet visited; and the valley, here contracted into a glen,

allowed room only for the stream and a narrow walk amidst

 

 [388]

 
{{prhprp389.jpg}}

 

the rough coppice-wood which bordered it. Elizabeth longed

to explore its windings; but when they had crossed the bridge,

and perceived their distance from the house, Mrs. Gardiner,

who was not a great walker, could go no farther, and thought

only of returning to the carriage as quickly as possible. Her

niece was, therefore, obliged to submit, and they took their

way towards the house on the opposite side of the river, in

the nearest direction; but their progress was slow, for Mr.

Gardiner, though seldom able to indulge the taste, was very

fond of fishing, and was so much engaged in watching the

occasional appearance of some trout in the water, and talking

to the man about them, that he advanced but little. Whilst

wandering on in this slow manner, they were again sur-

prised, and Elizabeth's astonishment was quite equal to what

it had been at first, by the sight of Mr. Darcy approaching

them, and at no great distance. The walk, being here less

sheltered than on the other side, allowed them to see him

before they met. Elizabeth, however astonished, was at least

more prepared for an interview than before, and resolved to

appear and to speak with calmness, if he really intended to

meet them. For a few moments, indeed, she felt that he

would probably strike into some other path. The idea lasted

while a turning in the walk concealed him from their view;

the turning past, he was immediately before them. With a

glance she saw that he had lost none of his recent civility:

and, to imitate his politeness, she began as they met to admire

the beauty of the place; but she had not got beyond the words

'delightful' and 'charming,' when some unlucky recollections

obtruded, and she fancied that praise of Pemberley from her

might be mischievously construed. Her colour changed, and

she said no more.

 

Mr. Gardiner was standing a little behind; and on her

pausing, he asked her if she would do him the honour of

introducing him to her friends. This was a stroke of civility

for which she was quite unprepared; and she could hardly

suppress a smile at his being now seeking the acquaintance

of some of those very people, against whom his pride had

revolted in his offer to herself. 'What will be his surprise,'

thought she, 'when he knows who they are! He takes them

now for people of fashion.'

 

 [389]

 
{{prhprp390.jpg}}

 

 

The introduction, however, was immediately made; and as

she named their relationship to herself, she stole a sly look at

him, to see how he bore it; and was not without the expec-

tation of his decamping: as fast as he could from such dis-

graceful companions. That he was surprised by the connec-

tion was evident: he sustained it, however, with fortitude:

and, so far from going away, turned back with them, and

entered into conversation with Mr. Gardiner. Elizabeth

could not but be pleased, could not but triumph. It was con-

soling that he should know she had some relations for whom

there was no need to blush. She listened most attentively to

all that passed between them, and gloried in every expression,

every sentence of her uncle, which marked his intelligence,

his taste, or his good manners.

 

The conversation soon turned upon fishing; and she heard

Mr. Darcy invite him, with the greatest civility, to fish there

as often as he chose, while he continued in the neighbour-

hood, offering at the same time to supply him with fishing

tackle, and pointing out those parts of the stream where there

was usually most sport. Mrs. Gardiner, who was walking

arm in arm with Elizabeth, gave her a look expressive of her

wonder. Elizabeth said nothing, but it gratified her exceed-

ingly; the compliment must be all for herself. Her aston-

ishment, however, was extreme; and continually was she re-

peating, 'Why is he so altered? From what can it proceed?

It cannot be for me, it cannot be for my sake that his man-

ners are thus softened. My reproofs at Hunsford could not

work such a change as this. It is impossible that he should

still love me.'

 

After walking some time in this way, the two ladies in

front, the two gentlemen behind, on resuming their places,

after descending to the brink of the river for the better in-

spection of some curious water-plant, there chanced to be a

little alteration. It originated in Mrs. Gardiner, who, fa-

tigued by the exercise of the morning, found Elizabeth's arm

inadequate to her support, and consequently preferred her

husband's. Mr. Darcy took her place by her niece, and they

walked on together. After a short silence the lady first spoke.

She wished him to know that she had been assured of his

absence before she came to the place, and accordingly began

 

 [390]

 
{{prhprp391.jpg}}

 

by observing, that his arrival had been very unexpected -- 'for

your housekeeper,' she added, 'informed us that you would

certainly not be here till to-morrow; and, indeed, before we

left Bakewell, we understood that you were not immediately

expected in the country.' He acknowledged the truth of it

all; and said that business with his steward had occasioned

his coming forward a few hours before the rest of the party

with whom he had been travelling. 'They will join me early

to-morrow,' he continued, 'and among them are some who

will claim an acquaintance with you, -- Mr. Bingley and his

sisters.'

 

Elizabeth answered only by a slight bow. Her thoughts

were instantly driven back to the time when Mr. Bingley's

name had been last mentioned between them; and if she;

might judge from his complexion, his mind was not very

differently engaged.

 

There is also one other person in the party,' he continued

after a pause, 'who more particularly wishes to be known to

you. Will you allow me, or do I ask too much to introduce ray

sister to your acquaintance during your stay at Lambton?'

 

The surprise of such an application was great indeed; it

was too great for her to know in what manner she acceded

to it. She immediately felt that whatever desire Miss Darcy

might have of being acquainted with her must be the work of

her brother, and without looking farther, it was satisfactory;

it was gratifying to know that his resentment had not made

him think really ill of her.

 

They now walked on in silence; each of them deep in

thought. Elizabeth was not comfortable; that was impos-

sible; but she was flattered and pleased. His wish of intro-

ducing his sister to her was a compliment of the highest kind.

They soon outstripped the others; and when they had reached

the carriage, Mr. and Mrs. Gardiner were half a quarter of

a mile behind.

 

He then asked her to walk into the house -- but she declared

herself not tired, and they stood together on the lawn. At

such a time much might have been said, and silence was very

awkward. She wanted to talk, but there seemed an embargo

on every subject. At last she recollected that she had been

travelling, and they talked of Matlock and Dovedale with

 

 [391]

 
{{prhprp392.jpg}}

 

great perseverance. Yet time and her aunt moved slowly --

and her patience and her ideas were nearly worn out before

the tete-a-tete was over.

 

On Mr. and Mrs. Gardiner's coming up they were all

pressed to go into the house and take some refreshment; but

this was declined, and they parted on each side with the ut-

most politeness. Mr. Darcy handed the ladies into the car-

riage, and when it drove off, Elizabeth saw him walking

slowly towards the house.

 

The observations of her uncle and aunt now began; and

each of them pronounced him to be infinitely superior to any-

thing they had expected. 'He is perfectly well behaved,

polite, and unassuming,' said her uncle.

 

There is something a little stately in him to be sure,'

replied her aunt; 'but it is confined to his air, and is not un-

becoming. I can now say with the housekeeper, that though

some people may call him proud, I have seen nothing of it.'

 

'I was never more surprised than by his behaviour to us.

It was more than civil; it was really attentive; and there was

no necessity for such attention. His acquaintance with Eliza-

beth was very trifling.'

 

'To be sure, Lizzy.' said her aunt, 'he is not so handsome

as Wickham; or rather he has not Wickham's countenance,

for his features are perfectly good. But how came you to tell

us that he was so disagreeable?'

 

Elizabeth excused herself as well as she could: said that

she had liked him better when they met in Kent than before,

and that she had never seen him so pleasant as this morning.

 

'But perhaps he may be a little whimsical in his civilities,'

replied her uncle. 'Your great men often are; and, therefore,

I shall not take him at his word about fishing, as he might

change his mind another day, and warn me off his grounds.'

 

Elizabeth felt that they had entirely mistaken his charac-

ter, but said nothing.

 

'From what we have seen of him,' continued Mrs. Gardiner,

'I really should not have thought that he could have behaved

in so cruel a way by anybody, as he has done by poor Wick-

ham. He has not an ill-natured look. On the contrary, there

is something pleasing about his mouth when he speaks. And

there is something of dignity in his countenance, that would

 

 [392]

 
{{prhprp393.jpg}}

 

not give one an unfavorable idea of his heart. But, to be

sure, the good lady who showed us the house did give him a

most flaming character! I could hardly help laughing aloud

sometimes. But he is a liberal master, I suppose, and that,

in the eye of a servant, comprehends every virtue.'

 

Elizabeth here felt herself called on to say something in

vindication of his behaviour to Wickham; and, therefore,

gave them to understand, in as guarded a manner as she

could, that by what she had heard from his relations in Kent,

his actions were capable of a very different construction;

and that his character was by no means so faulty, nor Wick-

ham's so amiable, as they had been considered in Hertford-

shire. In confirmation of this, she related the particulars of

all the pecuniary transactions in which they had been con-

nected, without actually naming her authority, but stating it

to be such as might be relied on.

 

Mrs. Gardiner was surprised and concerned: but as they

were now approaching the scene of her former pleasures,

every idea gave way to the charm of recollection; and she

was too much engaged in pointing out to her husband all the

interesting spots in its environs, to think of anything else.

Fatigued as she had been by the morning's walk, they had no

sooner dined than she set off again in quest of her former

acquaintance, and the evening was spent in the satisfactions

of an intercourse renewed after many years' discontinuance.

 

The occurrences of the day were too full of interest to

leave Elizabeth much attention for any of these new friends;

and she could do nothing but think, and think with wonder,

of Mr. Darcy's civility, and above all, of his wishing her to

be acquainted with his sister.

 

 [393]

 
{{prhprp394.jpg}}

 

 

 

 

Chapter XLIV

 

ELIZABETH had settled it that Mr. Darcy would bring

his sister to visit her the very day after her reaching

Pemberley; and was, consequently, resolved not to be

out of sight of the inn the whole of that morning. But her

conclusion was false; for on the very morning after their

own arrival at Lambton these visitors came. They had been

walking about the place with some of their new friends, and

were just returned to the inn to dress themselves for dining

with the same family, when the sound of a carriage drew

them to a window, and they saw a gentleman and lady in a

curricle driving up the street. Elizabeth, immediately rec-

ognising the livery, guessed what it meant, and imparted no

small degree of surprise to her relations by acquainting them

with the honour which she expected. Her uncle and aunt

were all amazement; and the embarrassment of her manner

as she spoke, joined to the circumstance itself, and many of

the circumstances of the preceding day, opened to them a

new idea on the business. Nothing had ever suggested it

before, but they now felt that there was no other way of

accounting for such attentions from such a quarter than by

supposing a partiality for their niece. While these newly-

born notions were passing in their heads, the perturbation of

Elizabeth's feelings was every moment increasing. She was

quite amazed at her own discomposure; but, amongst other

causes of disquiet, she dreaded lest the partiality of the

brother should have said too, much in her favour; and, more

than commonly anxious to please, she naturally suspected that

every power of pleasing would fail her.

 

She retreated from the window, fearful of being seen; and

as she walked up and down the room, endeavouring to com-

pose herself, saw such looks of inquiring surprise in her uncle

and aunt as made everything worse.

 

Miss Darcy and her brother appeared, and this formidable

introduction took place. With astonishment did Elizabeth

 

 [394]

 
{{prhprp395.jpg}}

 

see that her new acquaintance was at least as much embar-

rassed as herself. Since her being at Lambton, she had

heard that Miss Darcy was exceedingly proud; but the ob-

servation of a very few minutes convinced her that she was

only exceedingly shy. She found it difficult to obtain even a

word from her beyond a monosyllable.

 

Miss Darcy was tall, and on a larger scale than Elizabeth;

and, though little more than sixteen, her figure was formed,

and her appearance womanly and graceful. She was less

handsome than her brother, but there was sense and good-

humour in her face, and her manners were perfectly un-

assuming and gentle. Elizabeth, who had expected to find in

her as acute and unembarrassed an observer as ever Mr.

Darcy had been, was much relieved by discerning such differ-

ent feelings.

 

They had not been long together before Darcy told her

that Bingley was also coming to wait on her; and she had

barely time to express her satisfaction, and prepare for such

a visitor, when Bingley's quick step was heard on the stairs,

and in a moment he entered the room. All Elizabeth's anger

against him had been long done away: but had she still felt

any, it could hardly have stood its ground against the un-

affected cordiality with which he expressed himself on seeing

her again. He inquired in a friendly, though general, way,

after her family, and looked and spoke with the same good-

humoured ease that he had ever done.

 

To Mr. and Mrs. Gardiner he was scarcely a less inter-

esting personage than to herself. They had long wished to

see him. The whole party before them, indeed, excited a

lively attention. The suspicions which had just arisen of

Mr. Darcy and their niece directed their observation towards

each with an earnest, though guarded, inquiry: and they

soon drew from those inquiries the full conviction that

one of them at least knew what it was to love. Of the

lady's sensations they remained a little in doubt; but that

the gentleman was overflowing with admiration was evident

enough.

 

Elizabeth, on her side, had much to do. She wanted to

ascertain the feelings of each of her visitors, she wanted to

compose her own, and to make herself agreeable to all; and

 

 [395]

 
{{prhprp396.jpg}}

 

in the latter object, where she feared most to fail, she was

most sure of success, for those to whom she endeavoured to

give pleasure were prepossessed in her favour. Bingley was

ready, Georgiana was eager, and Darcy determined, to be

pleased.

 

In seeing Bingley, her thoughts naturally flew to her sister;

and oh! how ardently did she long to know whether any

of his were directed in a like manner. Sometimes she could

fancy that he talked less than on former occasions, and once

or twice pleased herself with the notion that as he looked at

her he was trying to trace a resemblance. But, though this

might be imaginary, she could not be deceived as to his

behaviour to Miss Darcy, who had been set up as a rival to

Jane. No look appeared on either side that spoke particular

regard. Nothing occurred between them that could justify

the hopes of his sister. On this point she was soon satisfied:

and two or three little circumstances occurred ere they

parted, which, in her anxious interpretation, denoted a

recollection of Jane, not untinctured by tenderness, and

a wish of saying more that might lead to the mention of her,

had he dared.

 

He observed to her, at a moment when the others were

talking together, and in a tone which had something of real

regret, that, it 'was a very long time since he had had the

pleasure of seeing her'; and, before she could reply, he added.

'It is above eight months. We have not met since the 26th of

November, when we were all dancing together at Nether-

field.'.

 

Elizabeth was pleased to find his memory so exact; and he

afterwards took occasion to ask her, when unattended to by

any of the rest, whether all her sisters were at Longbourn.

There was not much in the question, nor in the preceding

remark; but there was a look and a manner which gave them

meaning.

 

It was not often that she could turn her eyes on Mr.

Darcy himself; but whenever she did catch a glimpse she

saw an expression of general complaisance, and in all that he

said she heard an accent so far removed from hauteur or

disdain of his companions, as convinced her that the improve-

ment of manners which she had yesterday witnessed, however

 

 [396]

 
{{prhprp397.jpg}}

 

temporary its existence might prove, had at least outlived one

day. When she saw him thus seeking the acquaintance and

courting the good opinion of people with whom any inter-

course a few months ago would have been a disgrace; when

she saw him thus civil, not only to herself, but to the very

relations whom he had openly disdained, and recollected their

last lively scene in Hunsford Parsonage, the difference, the

change was so great, and struck so forcibly on her mind,

that she could hardly restrain her astonishment from being

visible. Never, even in the company of his dear friends at

Netherfield, or his dignified relations at Rosings, had she

seen him so desirous to please, so free from self-consequence

or unbending reserve, as now when no importance could

result from the success of his endeavours, and when even the

acquaintance of those to whom his attentions were addressed

would draw down the ridicule and censure of the ladies both

of Netherfield and Rosings.

 

Their visitors stayed with them above half an hour; and

when they arose to depart, Mr. Darcy called on his sister

to join him in expressing their wish of seeing Mr. and Mrs.

Gardiner, and Miss Bennet, to dinner at Pemberley, before

they left the country. Miss Darcy, though with a diffidence

which marked her little in the habit of giving invitations,

readily obeyed.

 

Mrs. Gardiner looked at her niece, desirous of know-

ing how she, whom the invitation most concerned, fell

disposed as to its acceptance, but Elizabeth had turned

away her head. Presuming, however, that this studied avoid-

ance spoke rather a momentary embarrassment than any

dislike of the proposal, and seeing in her husband, who was

fond of society, a perfect willingness to accept it, she ven-

tured to engage for her attendance, and the day after the

next was fixed on.

 

Bingley expressed great pleasure in the certainty of seeing

Elizabeth again, having still a great deal to say to her, and

many inquiries to make after all their Hertfordshire friends

Elizabeth, construing all this into a wish of hearing her speak

of her sister, was pleased; and on this account, as well as

some others, found herself, when their visitors left them,

capable of considering the last half-hour with some satisfac-

 

 [397]

 
{{prhprp398.jpg}}

 

tion, though while it was passing the enjoyment of it had

been little. Eager to be alone, and fearful of inquiries or

hints from her uncle and aunt, she stayed with them only

long enough to hear their favourable opinion of Bingley, and

then hurried away to dress.

 

But she had no reason to fear Mr. and Mrs. Gardiner's

curiosity; it was not their wish to force her communication.

It was evident that she was much better acquainted with

Mr. Darcy than they had before any idea of; it was evident

that he was very much in love with her. They saw much

to interest, but nothing to justify inquiry.

 

Of Mr. Darcy it was now a matter of anxiety to think well;

and, as far as their acquaintance reached, there was no fault

to find. They could not be untouched by his politeness;

and had they drawn his character from their own feelings

and his servant's report, without any reference to any other

account, the circle in Hertfordshire to which he was known

would not have recognised it for Mr. Darcy. There was now

an interest, however, in believing the housekeeper; and they

soon became sensible that the authority of a servant, who

had known him since he was four years old, and whose own

manners indicated respectability, was not to be hastily re-

jected. Neither had anything occurred in the intelligence of

their Lambton friends that could materially lessen its weight.

They had nothing to accuse him of but pride; pride he

probably had, and if not, it would certainly be imputed by the

inhabitants of a small market town where the family did not

visit. It was acknowledged, however, that he was a liberal

man, and did much good among the poor.

 

With respect to Wickham, the travellers soon found that

he was not held there in much estimation; for though the

chief of his concerns with the son of his patron were imper-

fectly understood, it was yet a well-known fact that on his

quitting Derbyshire, he had left many debts behind him,

which Mr. Darcy afterwards discharged.

 

As for Elizabeth, her thoughts were at Pemberley this

evening more than the last; and the evening, though as it

passed it seemed long, was not long enough to determine her

feelings towards one in that mansion; and she lay awake two

whole hours, endeavouring to make them out. She certainly

 

 [398]

 
{{prhprp399.jpg}}

 

did not hate him. No: hatred had vanished long ago, and

she had almost as long been ashamed of ever feeling a dis-

like against him that could be so called. The respect created

by the conviction of his valuable qualities, though at first un-

willingly admitted, had for some time ceased to be repugnant

to her feelings; and it was now heightened into somewhat

of a friendlier nature by the testimony so highly in his

favour, and bringing forward his disposition in so amiable a

light, which yesterday had produced. But above all, above

respect and esteem, there was a motive within her of good-

will which could not he overlooked. It was gratitude; --

gratitude, not merely for having once loved her, but for

loving her still well enough to forgive all the petulance and

acrimony of her manner in rejecting him, and all the unjust

accusations accompanying her rejection. He who, she had

been persuaded, would avoid her as his greatest enemy,

seemed, on this accidental meeting, most eager to preserve

the acquaintance, and without any indelicate display of re-

gard, or any peculiarity of manner, where their two selves

only were concerned, was soliciting the good opinion of her

friends, and bent on making her known to his sister. Such a

change in a man of so much pride excited not only astonish-

ment but gratitude -- for to love, ardent love, it must be at-

tributed; and, as such, its impression on her was of a sort to

be encouraged, as by no means unpleasing, though it could

not be exactly defined. She respected, she esteemed, she was

grateful to him, she felt a real interest in his welfare; and

she only wanted to know how far she wished that welfare

to depend upon herself, and how far it would be for the hap-

piness of both that she should employ the power, which her

fancy told her she still possessed, of bringing on the renewal

of his addresses.

 

It had been settled in the evening, between the aunt and

niece, that such a striking civility as Miss Darcy's in coming

to them on the very day of her arrival at Pemberley, for she

had reached it only to a late breakfast, ought to be imitated,

though it could not be equalled, by some exertion of polite-

ness on their side; and, consequently, that it would be highly

expedient to wait on her at Pemberley the following morning.

They were, therefore, to go. Elizabeth was pleased; though

 

 [399]

 
{{prhprp400.jpg}}

 

when she asked herself the reason, she had very little to say

in reply.

 

Mr. Gardiner left them soon after breakfast. The fishing

scheme had been renewed the day before, and a positive

engagement made of his meeting some of the gentlemen at

Pemberley by noon.

 

 [400]

 
{{prhprp401.jpg}}

 

 

 

 

Chapter XLV

 

CONVINCED as Elizabeth now was that Miss Bingley's

dislike of her had originated in jealousy, she could not

help feeling how very unwelcome her appearance at

Pemberley must be to her, and was curious to know with

how much civility on that lady's side the acquaintance would

now be renewed.

 

On reaching the house they were shown through the hall

into the saloon, whose northern aspect rendered it delightful

for summer. Its windows, opening to the ground, admitted

a most refreshing view of the high woody hills behind the

house, and of the beautiful oaks and Spanish chestnuts which

were scattered over the intermediate lawn.

 

In this room they were received by Miss Darcy, who was

sitting there with Mrs. Hurst and Miss Bingley, and the lady

with whom she lived in London. Georgiana's reception of

them was very civil, but attended with all that embarrassment

which, though proceeding from shyness and the fear of doing

wrong, would easily give to those who felt themselves in-

ferior the belief of her being proud and reserved. Mrs. Gar-

diner and her niece, however, did her justice, and pitied her.

 

By Mrs. Hurst and Miss Bingley they were noticed only

by a courtesy; and on their being seated, a pause, awkward

as such pauses must always be, succeeded for a few moments.

It was first broken by Mrs. Annesley, a genteel, agreeable-

looking woman, whose endeavour to introduce some kind of

discourse proved her to be more truly well-bred than either

of the others; and between her and Mrs. Gardiner, with

occasional help from Elizabeth, the conversation was carried

on. Miss Darcy looked as if she wished for courage enough

to join in it; and sometimes did venture a short sentence,

when there was least danger of its being heard.

 

Elizabeth soon saw that she was herself closely watched

by Miss Bingley, and that she could not speak a word,

especially to Miss Darcy, without calling her attention. This

 

 [401]

 
{{prhprp402.jpg}}

 

observation would not have prevented her from trying to talk

to the latter, had they not been seated at an inconvenient

distance; but she was not sorry to be spared the necessity of

saying much: her own thoughts were employing her. She

expected every moment that some of the gentlemen would

enter the room: she wished, she feared, that the master of

the house might be amongst them; and whether she wished

or feared it most, she could scarcely determine. After sitting

in this manner a quarter of an hour, without hearing Miss

Bingley's voice, Elizabeth was aroused by receiving from her

a cold inquiry after the health of her family. She answered

with equal indifference and brevity, and the other said no

more.

 

The next variation which their visit afforded was produced

by the entrance of servants with cold meat, cake, and a

variety of all the finest fruits in season; but this did not

take place till after many a significant look and smile from

Airs. Annesley to Miss Darcy had been given, to remind her

of her post. There was now employment for the whole

party; for though they could not all talk, they could all eat;

and the beautiful pyramids of grapes, nectarines, and peaches,

soon collected them round the table.

 

While thus engaged, Elizabeth had a fair opportunity of

deciding whether she most feared or wished for the appear-

ance of Mr. Darcy, by the feelings which prevailed on his

entering the room; and then, though but a moment before

she had believed her wishes to predominate, she began to

regret that he came.

 

He had been some time with Mr. Gardiner, who with two

or three other gentlemen from the house, was engaged by

the river, and had left him only on learning that the ladies

of the family intended a visit to Georgiana that morning.

No sooner did he appear, than Elizabeth wisely resolved to

be perfectly easy and unembarrassed; -- a resolution the more

necessary to be made, but perhaps not the more easily kept,

because she saw that the suspicions of the whole party were

awakened against them, and that there was scarcely an eye

which did not watch his behaviour when he first came into

the room. In no countenance was attentive curiosity so

strongly marked as in Miss Bingley's, in spite of the smiles

 

 [402]

 
{{prhprp403.jpg}}

 

which overspread her face whenever she spoke to one of its

objects: for jealousy had not yet made her desperate, and her

attentions to Mr. Darcy were by no means over. Miss Darcy,

on her brother's entrance, exerted herself much more to talk;

and Elizabeth saw that he was anxious for his sister and her-

self to get acquainted, and forwarded, as much as possible,

every attempt at conversation on either side. Miss Bingley

saw all this likewise; and, in the imprudence of anger, took

the first opportunity of saying, with sneering civility, --

 

'Pray, Miss Eliza, are not the shire militia removed

from Meryton? They must be a great loss to your family.'

 

In Darcy's presence she dared not mention Wickham's

name; but Elizabeth instantly comprehended that he was

uppermost in her thoughts; and the various recollections

connected with him gave her a moment's distress; but, exert-

ing herself vigorously to repel the ill-natured attack, she

presently answered the question in a tolerably disengaged

tone. While she spoke, an involuntary glance showed her

Darcy with a heightened complexion, earnestly looking at

her, and his sister overcome with confusion, and unable to lift

up her eyes. Had Miss Bingley known what pain she was

then giving her beloved friend, she undoubtedly would have

refrained from the hint; but she had merely intended to dis-

compose Elizabeth, by bringing forward the idea of a man to

whom she believed her partial, to make her betray a sensi-

bility which might injure her in Darcy's opinion, and, perhaps,

to remind the latter of all the follies and absurdities by which

some part of her family were connected with that corps. Not

a syllable had ever reached her of Miss Darcy's meditated

elopement. To no creature had it been revealed, where

secrecy was possible, except to Elizabeth; and from all Bing-

ley's connections her brother was particularly anxious to con-

ceal it, from that very wish which Elizabeth had long ago

attributed to him, of their becoming hereafter her own. He

had certainly formed such a plan; and without meaning that

it should affect his endeavour to separate him from Miss

Bennet, it is probable that it might add something to his lively

concern for the welfare of his friend.

 

Elizabeth's collected behaviour, however, soon quieted his

emotion; and as Miss Bingley, vexed and disappointed, dared

 

 [403]

 
{{prhprp404.jpg}}

 

not approach nearer lo Wickham, Georgiana also recovered

in time, though not enough to be able to speak any more.

Her brother, whose eye she feared to meet, scarcely recol-

lected her interest in the affair; and the very circumstance

which had been designed to turn his thoughts from Elizabeth

seemed to have fixed them on her more and more cheerfully.

 

Their visit did not continue long after the question and

answer above mentioned; and while Mr. Darcy was attending

them to their carriage, Miss Bingley was venting her feelings

in criticisms on Elizabeth's person, behaviour, and dress. But

Georgiana would not join her. Her brother's recommenda-

tion was enough to insure her favour: his judgment could not

err; and he had spoken in such terms of Elizabeth as to leave

Georgiana without the power of finding her otherwise than

lovely and amiable. When Darcy returned to the saloon.

Miss Bingley could not help repeating to him some part of

what she had been saying to his sister.

 

'How very ill Eliza Bennet looks this morning, Mr. Darcy,'

she cried: 'I never in my life saw any one so much altered

as she is since the winter. She is grown so brown and coarse.

Louisa and I were agreeing that we should not have known

her again.'

 

However little Mr. Darcy might have liked such an ad-

dress, he contented himself with coolly replying that he per-

ceived no other alteration than her being rather tanned, -- no

miraculous consequence of travelling in the summer.

 

'For my own part,' she rejoined, 'I must confess that I

never could see any beauty in her. Her face is too thin;

her complexion has no brilliancy; and her features are not

at all handsome. Her nose wants character; there is nothing

marked in its lines. Her teeth are tolerable, but not out of

the common way; and as for her eyes, which have sometimes

been called so fine, I never could perceive anything extraor-

dinary in them. They have a sharp, shrewish look, which I

do not like at all; and in her air altogether there is a self-

sufficiency without fashion, which is intolerable.'

 

Persuaded as Miss Bingley was that Darcy admired Eliza-

beth, this was not the best method of recommending herself;

but angry people are not always wise; and in seeing him at

last look somewhat nettled, she had all the success she ex-

 

 [404]

 
{{prhprp405.jpg}}

 

pected. He was resolutely silent, however: and, from a

determination of making him speak, she continued, --

 

'I remember, when we first knew her in Hertfordshire,

how amazed we all were to find that she was a reputed

beauty; and I particularly recollect your saying one night,

after they had been dining at Netherfield. "She a beauty! I

should as soon call her mother a wit." But afterwards she

seemed to improve on you, and I believe you thought her

rather pretty at one time.'

 

'Yes,' replied Darcy, who could contain himself no longer,

'but that was only when I first knew her; for it is many

months since I have considered her as one of the handsomest

women of my acquaintance.'

 

He then went away, and Miss Bingley was left to all the

satisfaction of having forced him to say what gave no one

any pain but herself.

 

Mrs. Gardiner and Elizabeth talked of all that had occurred

during their visit, as they returned, except what had particu-

larly interested them both. The looks and behaviour of

everybody they had seen were discussed, except of the person

who had mostly engaged their attention. They talked of his

sister, his friends, his house, his fruit, of everything but him-

self; yet Elizabeth was longing to know what Mrs. Gardiner

thought of him, and Mrs. Gardiner would have been highly

gratified by her niece's beginning the subject.

 

 [405]

 
{{prhprp406.jpg}}

 

 

 

 

Chapter XLVI

 

ELIZABETH had been a good deal disappointed in

not finding a letter from Jane on their first arrival at

Lambton; and this disappointment had been renewed

on each of the mornings that had now been spent there;

but on the third her repining was over, and her sister justi-

fied, by the receipt of two letters from her at once, on one

of which was marked that it had been mis-sent elsewhere.

Elizabeth was not surprised at it, as Jane had written the

direction remarkably ill.

 

They had just been preparing to walk as the letters

came in; and her uncle and aunt, leaving her to enjoy them

in quiet, set off by themselves. The one mis-sent must be

first attended to; it had been written five days ago. The

beginning contained an account of all their little parties and

engagements, with such news as the country afforded; but

the latter half, which was dated a day later, and written in

evident agitation, gave more important intelligence. It was

to this effect: --

 

'Since writing the above, dearest Lizzy, something has

occurred of a most unexpected and serious nature; but I am

afraid of alarming you -- be assured that we are all well.

What I have to say relates to poor Lydia. An express came

at twelve last night, just as we were all gone to bed, from

Colonel Forster, to inform us that she had gone off to Scot-

land with one of his officers; to own the truth, with Wick-

ham! Imagine our surprise. To Kitty, however, it does

not seem so wholly unexpected. I am very, very sorry. So

imprudent a match on both sides! But I am willing to hope

the best, and that his character has been misunderstood.

Thoughtless and indiscreet I can easily believe him, but this

step (and let us rejoice over it) marks nothing bad at heart.

His choice is disinterested at least, for he must know my

father can give her nothing. Our poor mother is sadly

grieved. My father bears it better. How thankful am I,

 

 [406]

 
{{prhprp407.jpg}}

 

that we never let them know what has been said against

him; we must forget it ourselves. They were off Satur-

day night about twelve, as is conjectured, but were not

missed till yesterday morning at eight. The express was

sent off directly. My dear Lizzy, they must have passed

within ten miles of us. Colonel Forster gives us reason

to expect him here soon. Lydia left a few lines for his

wife, informing her of their intention. I must conclude,

for I cannot be long from my poor mother. I am afraid

you will not be able to make it out, but I hardly know what

I have written.'

 

Without allowing herself time for consideration and

scarcely knowing what she felt, Elizabeth, on finishing this

letter, instantly seized the other, and opening it with the

utmost impatience, read as follows: it had been written a

day later than the conclusion of the first.

 

'By this time, my dearest sister, you have received my

hurried letter; I wish this may be more intelligible, but

though not confined for time, my head is so bewildered that

I cannot answer for being coherent. Dearest Lizzy, I hardly

know what I would write, but I have bad news for you, and

it cannot be delayed. Imprudent as a marriage between Mr.

Wickham and our poor Lydia would be, we are now anxious

to be assured it has taken place, for there is but too much

reason to fear they are not gone to Scotland. Colonel Fors-

ter came yesterday, having left Brighton the day before,

not many hours after the express. Though Lydia's short

letter to Mrs. F. gave them to understand that they were

going to Gretna Green, something was dropped by Denny

expressing his belief that W. never intended to go there,

or to marry Lydia at all, which was repeated to Colonel

V., who, instantly taking the alarm, set off from B., intend-

ing to trace their route. He did trace them easily to Clap-

ham, but no farther; for on entering that place, they re-

moved into a hackney-coach, and dismissed the chaise that

brought them from Epsom. All that is known after this

is, that they were seen to continue the London road. I

know not what to think. After making every possible

inquiry on that side London, Colonel F. came on into Hert-

fordshire, anxiously renewing them at all the turnpikes,

 

 [407]

 
{{prhprp408.jpg}}

 

and at the inns in Barnet and Hatfield, but without any

success, -- no such people had been seen to pass through.

With the kindest concern he came on to Longbourn, and

broke his apprehensions to us in a manner most creditable

to his heart. I am sincerely grieved for him and Mrs.

F.; but no one can throw any blame on them. Our dis-

tress, my dear Lizzy, is very great. My father and mother

believe the worst, but I cannot think so ill of him. Many

circumstances might make it more eligible for them to be

married privately in town than to pursue their first plan;

and even if he could form such a design against a young

woman of Lydia's connections, which is not likely, can I

suppose her so lost to everything? Impossible! I grieve

to find, however, that Colonel F. is not disposed to depend

upon their marriage: he shook his head when I expressed

my hopes, and said he feared W. was not a man to be

trusted. My poor mother is really ill, and keeps her room.

Could she exert herself, it would be better, but this is not

to be expected; and as to my father, I never in my life

saw him so affected. Poor Kitty has anger for having con-

cealed their attachment; but as it was a matter of confi-

dence, one cannot wonder. I am truly glad, dearest Lizzy,

that you have been spared something of these distressing

scenes; but now, as the first shock is over, shall I own that I

long for your return? I am not so selfish, however, as to

press for it, if inconvenient. Adieu! I take up my pen

again to do what I have just told you I would not; but cir-

cumstances are such, that I cannot help earnestly begging

you all to come here as soon as possible. I know my dear

uncle and aunt so well, that I am not afraid of requesting

it, though I have still something more to ask of the former.

My father is going to London with Colonel Forster instantly,

to try to discover her. What he means to do, I am sure

I know not; but his excessive distress will not allow him

to pursue any measure in the best and safest way, and

Colonel Forster is obliged to be at Brighton again to-mor-

row evening. In such an exigence my uncle's advice and

assistance would be everything in the world; he will imme-

diately comprehend what I must feel, and I rely upon his

goodness.'

 

 [408]

 
{{prhprp409.jpg}}

 

 

'Oh! where, where is my uncle?' cried Elizabeth, darting

from her seat as she finished the letter, in eagerness to fol-

low him, without losing a moment of the time so precious;

but as she reached the door, it was opened by a servant,

and Mr. Darcy appeared. Her pale face and impetuous

manner made him start, and before he could recover him-

self enough to speak, she, in whose mind every idea was

superseded by Lydia's situation, hastily exclaimed. 'I beg

your pardon, but I must leave you. I must find Mr. Gar-

diner this moment on business that cannot be delayed; I

have not an instant to lose.'

 

'Good God I what is the matter?' cried he, with more

feeling than politeness; then recollecting himself, 'I will not

detain you a minute; but let me, or let the servant, go after

Mr. and Mrs. Gardiner. You are not well enough; you

cannot go yourself.'

 

Elizabeth hesitated, but her knees trembled under her, and

she felt how little would be gained by her attempting to

pursue them. Calling back the servant, therefore, she com-

missioned him, though in so breathless an accent as made

her almost unintelligible, to fetch his master and mistress

home instantly.

 

On his quitting the room, she sat down, unable to support

herself, and looking so miserably ill, that it was impossible

for Darcy to leave her, or to refrain from saying, in a

tone of gentleness and commiseration. 'Let me call your

maid. Is there nothing you could take to give you present

relief? A glass of wine; shall I get you one? You are

very ill.'

 

'No. I thank you.' she replied, endeavouring to recover

herself. 'There is nothing the matter with me. I am quite

well, I am only distressed by some dreadful news which I

have just received from Longbourn.'

 

She burst into tears as she alluded to it, and for a few

minutes could not speak another word. Darcy, in wretched

suspense, could only say something indistinctly of his con-

cern, and observe her in compassionate silence. At length

she spoke again. 'I have just had a letter from Jane, with

such dreadful news. It cannot be concealed from any one.

My youngest sister has left all her friends -- has eloped; has

 

 [409]

 
{{prhprp410.jpg}}

 

thrown herself into the power of -- of Mr. Wickham. They

are gone off together from Brighton. You know him too

well to doubt the rest. She has no money, no connections,

nothing that can tempt him to -- she is lost for ever.'

 

Darcy was fixed in astonishment. 'When I consider,' she

added, in a yet more agitated voice, 'that I might have pre-

vented it! I who knew what he was. Had I but explained

some part of it only -- some part of what I learnt, to my own

family! Had his character been known, this could not have

happened. But it is all, all too late now.'

 

'I am grieved, indeed.' cried Darcy: 'grieved -- shocked.

But is it certain, absolutely certain?'

 

'Oh, yes! They left Brighton together on Sunday night,

and were traced almost to London, but not beyond: they are

certainly not gone to Scotland.'

 

'And what has been done, what has been attempted, to

recover her?'

 

'My father has gone to London, and Jane has written to

beg my uncle's immediate assistance, and we shall be off, I

hope, in half an hour. But nothing can be done; I know

very well that nothing can be done. How is such a man

to be worked on? How are they even to be discovered? I

have not the smallest hope. It is every way horrible!'

 

Darcy shook his head in silent acquiescence.

 

'When my eyes were open to his real character. Oh!

had I known what I ought, what I dared to do! But I knew

not -- I was afraid of doing too much. Wretched, wretched

mistake!'

 

Darcy made no answer. He seemed scarcely to hear her,

and was walking up and down the room in earnest medita-

tion; his brow contracted, his air gloomy. Elizabeth soon

observed, and instantly understood it. Her power was sink-

ing; everything must sink under such a proof of family

weakness, such an assurance of the deepest disgrace. She

could neither wonder nor condemn, but the belief of his

self-conquest brought nothing consolatory to her bosom,

afforded no palliation of her distress. It was, on the con-

trary, exactly calculated to make her understand her own

wishes; and never had she so honestly felt that she could

have loved him, as now, when all love must be vain.

 

 [410]

 
{{prhprp411.jpg}}

 

 

But self, though it would intrude, could not engross her.

Lydia -- the humiliation, the misery she was bringing on them

all -- soon swallowed up every private care; and covering

her face with her handkerchief, Elizabeth was soon lost

to everything else; and, after a pause of several minutes,

was only recalled to a sense of her situation by the voice

of her companion, who, in a manner which, though it spoke

compassion, spoke likewise restraint, said, 'I am afraid

you have been long desiring my absence, nor have I any-

thing to plead in excuse of my stay, but real, though

unavailing concern. Would to Heaven that anything could

be either said or done on my part, that might offer con-

solation to such distress! But I will not torment you with

vain wishes, which may seem purposely to ask for your

thanks. This unfortunate affair will, I fear, prevent my sis-

ter's having the pleasure of seeing you at Pemberley to-day.'

 

'Oh yes. Be so kind as to apologise for us to Miss Darcy.

Say that urgent business calls us home immediately. Con-

ceal the unhappy truth as long as it is possible. I know it

cannot be long.'

 

He readily assured her of his secrecy, again expressed

his sorrow for her distress, wished it a happier conclusion

than there was at present reason to hope, and, leaving his

compliments for her relations, with only one serious parting

look went away.

 

As he quitted the room, Elizabeth felt how improbable it

was that they should ever see each other again on such

terms of cordiality as had marked their several meetings

in Derbyshire; and as she threw a retrospective glance over

the whole of their acquaintance, so full of contradictions

and varieties, sighed at the perverseness of those feelings

which would now have promoted its continuance, and would

formerly have rejoiced in its termination.

 

If gratitude and esteem are good foundations of affection,

Elizabeth's change of sentiment will be neither improbable

nor faulty. But if otherwise, if the regard springing from

such sources is unreasonable or unnatural, in comparison

of what is so often described as arising on a first inter-

view with its object, and even before two words have been

exchanged, nothing can be said in her defence, except that

 

 [411]

 
{{prhprp412.jpg}}

 

she had given somewhat of a trial to the latter method,

in her partiality for Wickham, and that its ill success might,

perhaps, authorize her to seek the other less interesting

mode of attachment. Be that as it may, she saw him go

with regret; and in this early example of what Lydia's

infamy must produce, found additional anguish as she

reflected on that wretched business. Never since reading

Jane's second letter had she entertained a hope of Wick-

ham's meaning to marry her. No one but Jane, she thought,

could flatter herself with such an expectation. Surprise

was the least of all her feelings on this development. While

the contents of the first letter remained on her mind, she

was all surprise, all astonishment, that Wickham should

marry a girl, whom it was impossible he could marry for

money; and how Lydia could ever have attached him had

appeared incomprehensible. But now it was all too natural.

For such an attachment as this she might have sufficient

charms; and though she did not suppose Lydia to be de-

liberately engaging in an elopement, without the intention

of marriage, she had no difficulty in believing that neither

her virtue nor her understanding would preserve her from

falling an easy prey.

 

She had never perceived, while the regiment was in

Hertfordshire, that Lydia had any partiality for him; but

she was convinced that Lydia had wanted only encourage-

ment to attach herself to anybody. Sometimes one offi-

cer, sometimes another, had been her favourite, as their

attentions raised them in her opinion. Her affections had

been continually fluctuating, but never without an object.

The mischief of neglect and mistaken indulgence towards

such a girl -- oh! how acutely did she now feel it.

 

She was wild to be at home -- to hear, to see, to be upon

the spot to share with Jane in the cares that must now fall

wholly upon her, in a family so deranged; a father absent, a

mother incapable of exertion, and requiring constant attend-

ance; and though almost persuaded that nothing could be

done for Lydia, her uncle's interference seemed of the

utmost importance, and till he entered the room the misery

of her impatience was severe. Mr. and Mrs. Gardiner had

hurried back in alarm, supposing, by the servant's account.

 

 [412]

 
{{prhprp413.jpg}}

 

that their niece was taken suddenly ill; but satisfying them

instantly on that head, she eagerly communicated the cause

of their summons, reading the two letters aloud, and

dwelling on the postscript of the last with trembling energy,

though Lydia had never been a favourite with them. Mr.

and Mrs. Gardiner could not but be deeply afflicted. Not

Lydia only, but all were concerned in it; and after the

first exclamations of surprise and horror, Mr. Gardiner

readily promised every assistance in his power. Elizabeth,

though expecting no less, thanked him with tears of grati-

tude; and all three being actuated by one spirit, everything

relating to their journey was speedily settled. They were

to be off as soon as possible. 'But what is to be done

about Pemberley?' cried Mrs. Gardiner. 'John told us Mr.

Darcy was here when you sent for us; -- was it so?'

 

'Yes; and I told him we should not be able to keep our

engagement. That is all settled.'

 

'What is all settled?' repeated the other, as she ran into

her room to prepare. 'And are they upon such terms as for

her to disclose the real truth! Oh that I knew how it was!'

 

But wishes were vain; or, at best, could serve only to

amuse her in the hurry and confusion of the following hour.

Had Elizabeth been at leisure to be idle, she would have

remained certain that all employment was impossible to one

so wretched as herself; but she had her share of business as

well as her aunt, and amongst the rest there were notes to

be written to all their friends at Lambton, with false ex-

cuses for their sudden departure. An hour, however, saw

the whole completed; and Mr. Gardiner, meanwhile, having

settled his account at the inn, nothing remained to be done

but to go; and Elizabeth, after all the misery of the morn-

ing, found herself, in a shorter space of time than she could

have supposed, seated in the carriage, and on the road to

Longbourn.

 

 [413]

 
{{prhprp414.jpg}}

 

 

 

 

Chapter XLVII

 

'I HAVE been thinking it over again, Elizabeth,' said

her uncle, as they drove from the town; 'and really,

upon serious consideration, I am much more inclined

than I was to judge as your eldest sister does of the matter.

It appears to me so very unlikely that any young man

should form such a design against a girl who is by no

means unprotected or friendless, and who was actually stay-

ing in his Colonel's family, that I am strongly inclined to

hope the best. Could he expect that her friends would not

step forward? Could he expect to be noticed again by the

regiment, after such an affront to Colonel Forster? His

temptation is not adequate to the risk.'

 

'Do you really think so?' cried Elizabeth, brightening up

for a moment.

 

'Upon my word,' said Mrs. Gardiner, 'I begin to be of your

uncle's opinion. It is really too great a violation of decency,

honour, and interest, for him to be guilty of it. I cannot

think so very ill of Wickham. Can you, yourself, Lizzy, so

wholly give him up, as to believe him capable of it?'

 

'Not perhaps of neglecting his own interest. But of every

other neglect I can believe him capable. If, indeed, it should

be so!. But I dare not hope it. Why should they not go on

to Scotland, if that had been the case?'

 

'In the first place,' replied Mr. Gardiner, 'there is no

absolute proof that they are not gone to Scotland.'

 

'Oh, but their removing from the chaise into a hackney

coach is such a presumption! And, besides, no traces of

them were to be found on the Barnet road.'

 

'Well, then, -- supposing them to be in London. They

may be there, though for the purpose of concealment, for no

more exceptionable purpose. It is not likely that money

should be very abundant on either side; and it might strike

them that they could be more economically, though less

expeditiously, married in London than in Scotland.'

 

 [414]

 
{{prhprp415.jpg}}

 

 

'But why all this secrecy? Why any fear of detection?

Why must their marriage be private? Oh no, no, this is not

likely. His most particular friend, you see by Jane's account,

was persuaded of his never intending to marry her. Wick-

ham will never marry a woman without some money. He

cannot afford it. And what claims has Lydia, what attrac-

tions has she beyond youth, health, and good humour, that

could make him for her sake forego every chance of bene-

fiting himself by marrying well? As to what restraint the

apprehensions of disgrace in the corps might throw on a

dishonourable elopement with her, I am not able to judge;

for I know nothing of the effects that such a step might

produce. But as to your other objection, I am afraid it

will hardly hold good. Lydia has no brothers to step for-

ward; and he might imagine, from my father's behaviour,

from his indolence and the little attention he has ever seemed

to give to what was going forward in his family, that he

would do as little and think as little about it, as any father

could do, in such a matter.'

 

'But can you think that Lydia is so lost to everything but

love of him, as to consent to live with him on any other terms

than marriage?'

 

'It does seem, and it is most shocking, indeed,' replied

Elizabeth, with tears in her eyes, 'that a sister's sense of

decency and virtue in such a point should admit of doubt.

But, really, I know not what to say. Perhaps I am not doing

her justice. But she is very young; she has never been

taught to think on serious subjects; and for the last half-

year, nay, for a twelvemonth, she has been given up to noth-

ing but amusement and vanity. She has been allowed to

dispose of her time in the most idle and frivolous manner,

and to adopt any opinions that came in her way. Since

the shire were first quartered in Meryton, nothing but

love flirtation, and officers, has been in her head. She

has been doing everything in her power, by thinking

and talking on the subject, to give greater -- what shall I

call it? -- susceptibility to her feelings; which are na-

turally lively enough. And we all know that Wickham

has every charm of person and address that can captivate

a woman.'

 

 [415]

 
{{prhprp416.jpg}}

 

 

'But you see that Jane,' said her aunt, 'does not think so

ill of Wickham as to believe him capable of the attempt.'

 

'Of whom does Jane ever think ill? And who is there,

whatever might be their former conduct, that she would be-

lieve capable of such an attempt, till it were proved against

them? But Jane knows, as well as I do, what Wickham

really is. We both know that he has been profligate in

every sense of the word. That he has neither integrity

nor honour. That he is as false and deceitful as he is in-

sinuating.'

 

'And do you really know all this?' cried Mrs. Gardiner,

whose curiosity as to the mode of her intelligence was all

alive.

 

'I do, indeed,' replied Elizabeth, colouring. 'I told you

the other day of his infamous behaviour to Mr. Darcy; and

you, yourself, when last at Longbourn, heard in what manner

he spoke of the man who had behaved with such forbearance

and liberality towards him. And there are other circum-

stances which I am not at liberty -- which it is not worth

while to relate; but his lies about the whole Pemberley

family are endless. From what he said of Miss Darcy, I

was thoroughly prepared to see a proud, reserved, dis-

agreeable girl. Yet he knew to the contrary himself. He

must know that she was as amiable and unpretending as we

have found her.'

 

'But does Lydia know nothing of this; can she be ignorant

of what you and Jane seem so well to understand?'

 

'Oh yes! -- that, that is the worst of all. Till I was in

Kent, and saw so much both of Mr. Darcy and his relation

Colonel Fitzwilliam, I was ignorant of the truth myself. And

when I returned home the shire was to leave Meryton

in a week or fortnight's time. As that was the case, neither

Jane, to whom I related the whole, nor I, thought it necessary

to make our knowledge public; for of what use could it

apparently be to any one, that the good opinion which all the

neighbourhood had of him should then be overthrown? And

even when it was settled that Lydia should go with Mrs.

Forster, the necessity of opening her eyes to his character

never occurred to me. That she could be in any danger from

the deception never entered my head. That such a conse-

 

 [416]

 
{{prhprp417.jpg}}

 

quence as this should ensue, you may easily believe was far

enough from my thoughts.'

 

'When they all removed to Brighton, therefore, you had

no reason, I suppose, to believe them fond of each other?'

 

'Not the slightest. I can remember no symptom of affec-

tion on either side; and had anything of the kind been

perceptible, you must be aware that ours is not a family on

which it could be thrown away. When first he entered the

corps, she was ready enough to admire him; but so we all

were. Every girl in or near Meryton was out of her senses

about him for the first two months; but he never dis-

tinguished her by any particular attention; and, conse-

quently, after a moderate period of extravagant and wild

admiration, her fancy for him gave way, and others of the

regiment, who treated her with more distinction, again be-

came her favourites.'

 

It may be easily believed that, however little of novelty

could be added to their fears, hopes, and conjectures, on this

interesting subject, by its repeated discussion, no other could

detain them from it long, during the whole of the journey.

From Elizabeth's thoughts it was never absent. Fixed there

by the keenest of all anguish, self-reproach, she could find

no interval of ease or forgetfulness.

 

They travelled as expeditiously as possible; and, sleeping

one night on the road, reached Longbourn by dinner-time

the next day. It was a comfort to Elizabeth to consider that

Jane could not have been wearied by long expectations.

 

The little Gardiners, attracted by the sight of a chaise,

were standing on the steps of the house, as they entered the

paddock; and when the carriage drove up to the door, the

joyful surprise that lighted up their faces and displayed it-

self over their whole bodies, in a variety of capers and

frisks, was the first pleasing earnest of their welcome.

 

Elizabeth jumped out; and after giving each of them a

hasty kiss, hurried into the vestibule, where Jane, who came

running downstairs from her mother's apartment, imme-

diately met her.

 

Elizabeth, as she affectionately embraced her, whilst tears

filled the eyes of both, lost not a moment in asking whether

anything had been heard of the fugitives.

 

 [417]

 
{{prhprp418.jpg}}

 

 

'Not yet.' replied Jane. 'But now that my dear uncle is

come, I hope everything will be well.'

 

'Is my father in town?'

 

'Yes, he went on Tuesday, as I wrote you word.'

 

'And have you heard from him often?'

 

'We have heard only once. He wrote me a few lines on

Wednesday, to say that he had arrived in safety, and to give

me his directions, which I particularly begged him to do. He

merely added, that he should not write again, till he had

something of importance to mention.'

 

'And my mother -- how is she? How are you all?'

 

'My mother is tolerably well, I trust; though her spirits

are greatly shaken. She is upstairs, and will have great

satisfaction in seeing you all. She does not yet leave her

dressing-room. Mary and Kitty, thank Heaven! are quite

well.'

 

'But you -- how are you?' cried Elizabeth. 'You look pale.

How much you must have gone through!'

 

Her sister, however, assured her of her being perfectly

well; and their conversation, which had been passing while

Mr. and Mrs. Gardiner were engaged with their children,

was now put an end to by the approach of the whole party.

Jane ran to her uncle and aunt, and welcomed and thanked

them both, with alternate smiles and tears.

 

When they were all in the drawing-room, the questions

which Elizabeth had already asked were of course repeated

by the others, and they soon found that Jane had no in-

telligence to give. The sanguine hope of good, however,

which the benevolence of her heart suggested, had not yet

deserted her; she still expected that it would all end well,

and that every morning would bring some letter, either

from Lydia or her father, to explain their proceedings, and,

perhaps, announce the marriage.

 

Mrs. Bennet, to whose apartment they all repaired, after a

few minutes' conversation together, received them exactly

as might be expected; with tears and lamentations of re-

gret, invectives against the villainous conduct of Wickham,

and complaints of her own sufferings and ill-usage. Blaming

everybody but the person to whose ill-judging indulgence

the errors of her daughter must be principally owing.

 

 [418]

 
{{prhprp419.jpg}}

 

 

'If I had been able,' said she, 'to carry my point in going

to Brighton with all my family, this would not have hap-

pened: but poor dear Lydia had nobody to take care of her.

Why did the Forsters ever let her go out of their sight?

I am sure there was some great neglect or other on their

side, for she is not the kind of girl to do such a thing, if

she had been well looked after. I always thought they were

very unfit to have the charge of her; but I was overruled,

as I always am. Poor, dear child! And now here's Mr.

Bennet gone away, and I know he will fight Wickham.

wherever he meets him, and then he will be killed, and

what is to become of us all? The Collinses will turn us

out, before he is cold in his grave; and if you are not kind

to us, brother, I do not know what we shall do.'

 

They all exclaimed against such terrific ideas; and Mr.

Gardiner, after general assurances of his affection for her

and all her family, told her that he meant to be in London

the very next day, and would assist Mr. Bennet in every

endeavour for recovering Lydia.

 

'Do not give way to useless alarm,' added he: 'though it

is right to be prepared for the worst, there is no occasion to

look on it as certain. It is not quite a week since they left

Brighton. In a few days more we may gain some news of

them; and till we know that they are not married, and have

no design of marrying, do not let us give the matter over

as lost. As soon as I get to town, I shall go to my brother,

and make him come home with me to Gracechurch Street,

and then we may consult together as to what is to be

done.'

 

'Oh, my dear brother,' replied Mrs. Bennet, 'that is ex-

actly what I could most wish for. And now do, when you

get to town, find them out, wherever they may be; and if

they are not married already, make them marry. And as

for wedding clothes, do not let them wait for that, but tell

Lydia she shall have as much money as she chooses to buy

them, after they are married. And, above all things, keep

Mr. Bennet from fighting. Tell him what a dreadful state

I am in -- that I am frightened out of my wits; and have

such tremblings, such flutterings, all over me, such spasms

in my side, and pains in my head, and such beatings at heart

 

 [419]

 
{{prhprp420.jpg}}

 

that I can get no rest by night nor by day. And tell my dear

Lydia not to give any directions about her clothes till she

has seen me, for she does not know which are the best

warehouses. Oh, brother, how kind you are! I know you

will contrive it all.'

 

But Mr. Gardiner, though he assured her again of his

earnest endeavours in the cause, could not avoid recom-

mending moderation to her, as well in her hopes as her

fears; and after talking with her in this manner till din-

ner was on table, they left her to vent all her feelings

on the housekeeper, who attended in the absence of her

daughters.

 

Though her brother and sister were persuaded that there

was no real occasion for such a seclusion from the family,

they did not attempt to oppose it, for they knew that she

had not prudence enough to hold her tongue before the

servants, while they waited at table, and judged it better

that one only of the household, and the one whom they

could most trust, should comprehend all her fears and

solicitude on the subject.

 

In the dining-room they were soon joined by Mary and

Kitty, who had been too busily engaged in their separate

apartments to make their appearance before. One came from

her books, and the other from her toilette. The faces of

both, however, were tolerably calm; and no change was

visible in either, except that the loss of her favourite sister,

or the anger which she had herself incurred in the business,

had given something more of fretfulness than usual to the

accents of Kitty. As for Mary, she was mistress enough of

herself to whisper to Elizabeth, with a countenance of grave

reflection, soon after they were seated at table, --

 

'This is a most unfortunate affair, and will probably be

much talked of. But we must stem the tide of malice, and

pour into the wounded bosoms of each other the balm of

sisterly consolation.'

 

Then perceiving in Elizabeth no inclination of replying,

she added, 'Unhappy as the event must be for Lydia, we may

draw from it this useful lesson: -- that loss of virtue in a

female is irretrievable, that one false step involves her in

endless ruin, that her reputation is no less brittle than it is

 

 [420]

 
{{prhprp421.jpg}}

 

beautiful, and that she cannot be too much guarded in her

behaviour towards the undeserving of the other sex.'

 

Elizabeth lifted up her eyes in amazement, but was too

much oppressed to make any reply. Mary, however, con-

tinued to console herself with such kind of moral extrac-

tions from the evil before them.

 

In the afternoon, the two elder Miss Bennets were able to

be for half an hour by themselves; and Elizabeth instantly

availed herself of the opportunity of making any inquiries

which Jane was equally eager to satisfy. After joining in

general lamentations over the dreadful sequel of this event,

which Elizabeth considered as all but certain, and Miss

Bonnet could not assert to be wholly impossible, the former

continued the subject by saying, 'But tell me all and every-

thing about it which I have not already heard. Give me

further particulars. What did Colonel Forster say? Had

they no apprehension of anything before the elopement

took place? They must have seen them together for ever.'

 

'Colonel Forster did own that he had often suspected some

partiality, especially on Lydia's side, but nothing to give him

any alarm. I am so grieved for him. His behaviour was

attentive and kind to the utmost. He was coming to us, in

order to assure us of his concern, before he had any idea of

their not being gone to Scotland: when that apprehension

first got abroad, it hastened his journey.'

 

'And was Denny convinced that Wickham would not

marry? Did he know of their intending to go off? Had

Colonel Forster seen Denny himself?'

 

'Yes; but when questioned by him Denny denied knowing

anything of their plan, and would not give his real opinion

about it. He did not repeat his persuasion of their not

marrying, and from that I am inclined to hope he might have

been misunderstood before.'

 

'And till Colonel Forster came himself, not one of you

entertained a doubt, I suppose, of their being really married?'

 

'How was it possible that such an idea should enter our

brains? I felt a little uneasy -- a little fearful of my sister's

happiness with him in marriage, because I knew that his

conduct had not been always quite right. My father and

mother knew nothing of that, they only felt how imprudent a

 

 [421]

 
{{prhprp422.jpg}}

 

match it must be. Kitty then owned, with a very natural tri-

umph on knowing more than the rest of us, that in Lydia's last

letter she had prepared her for such a step. She had known,

it seems, of their being in love with each other many weeks.'

 

'But not before they went to Brighton?'

 

'No, I believe not.'

 

'And did Colonel Forster appear to think ill of Wickham

himself? Does he know his real character?'

 

'I must confess that he did not speak so well of Wickham

as he formerly did. He believed him to be imprudent and

extravagant; and since this sad affair has taken place, it is

said that he left Meryton greatly in debt: but I hope this may

be false.'

 

'Oh, Jane, had we been less secret, had we told what we

knew of him, this could not have happened!'

 

'Perhaps it would have been better,' replied her sister.

 

'But to expose the former faults of any person, without

knowing what their present feelings were, seemed un-

justifiable.'

 

'We acted with the best intentions.'

 

'Could Colonel Forster repeat the particulars of Lydia's

note to his wife?'

 

'He brought it with him for us to see.'

 

Jane then took it from her pocket-book, and gave it to

Elizabeth. These were the contents: --

 

'My Dear Harriet -- You will laugh when you know where I am

gone, and I cannot help laughing myself at your surprise to-morrow

morning, as soon as I am missed. I am going to Gretna Green, and

if you cannot guess with who, I shall think you a simpleton, for there

is but one man in the world I love, and he is an angel. I should

never be happy without him, so think it no harm to be off. You

need not send them word at Longbourn of my going, if you do not

like it, for it will make the surprise the greater when I write to

them, and sign my name Lydia Wickham. What a good joke it will

be! I can hardly write for laughing. Pray make my excuses to

Pratt for not keeping my engagement and dancing with him to-night.

Tell him I hope he will excuse me when he knows all, and tell him

I will dance with him at the next ball we meet with great pleasure.

I shall send for my clothes when I get to Longbourn; but I wish

you would tell Sally to mend a great slit in my worked muslin gown

before they are packed up. Good-bye. Give my love to Colonel

Forster. I hope you will drink to our good journey. -- Your affec-

tionate friend, Lydia Bennet.'

 

 [422]

 
{{prhprp423.jpg}}

 

 

'Oh, thoughtless, thoughtless Lydia!' cried Elizabeth, when

she had finished it. 'What a letter is this, to be written at

such a moment! But at least it shows that she was serious

in the object of her journey. Whatever he might afterwards

persuade her to, it was not on her side a scheme of infamy.

My poor father! how he must have felt it!'

 

'I never saw any one so shocked. He could not speak

a word for full ten minutes. My mother was taken ill

immediately, and the whole house in such confusion!'

 

'Oh, Jane,' cried Elizabeth, 'was there a servant belonging

to it who did not know the whole story before the end of the

day?'

 

'I do not know: I hope there was. But to be guarded at

such a time is very difficult. My mother was in hysterics;

and though I endeavoured to give her every assistance in

my power, I am afraid I did not do so much as I might have

done! but the horror of what might possibly happen almost

took from me my faculties.'

 

'Your attendance upon her has been too much for you.

You do not look well. Oh that I had been with you! you

have had every care and anxiety upon yourself alone.'

 

'Mary and Kitty have been very kind, and would have

shared in every fatigue, I am sure, but I did not think it

right for either of them. Kitty is slight and delicate, and

Mary studies so much that her hours of repose should not

be broken in on. My aunt Philips came to Longbourn on

Tuesday, after my father went away; and was so good as to

stay till Thursday with me. She was of great use and

comfort to us all, and Lady Lucas has been very kind: she

walked here on Wednesday morning to condole with us, and

offered her services, or any of her daughters, if they could

be of use to us.'

 

'She had better have stayed at home,' cried Elizabeth:

'perhaps she meant well, but, under such a misfortune as

this, one cannot see too little of one's neighbours. Assistance

is impossible; condolence, insufferable. Let them triumph

over us at a distance, and be satisfied.'

 

She then proceeded to inquire into the measures which

her father had intended to pursue, while in town, for the

recovery of his daughter.

 

 [423]

 
{{prhprp424.jpg}}

 

 

'He meant, I believe,' replied Jane, 'to go to Epsom, the

place where they last changed horses, see the postilions, and

try if anything could be made out from them. His principal

object must be to discover the number of the hackney coach

which took them from Clapham. It had come with a fare

from London; and as he thought the circumstance of a

gentleman and lady's removing from one carriage into

another might be remarked, he meant to make inquiries at

Clapham. If he could anyhow discover at what house the

coachman had before set down his fare, he determined to

make inquiries there, and hoped it might not be impossible to

find out the stand and number of the coach. I do not know

of any other designs that he had formed; but he was in

such a hurry to be gone, and his spirits so greatly discom-

posed, that I had difficulty in finding out even so much as

this.'

 

 [424]

 
{{prhprp425.jpg}}

 

 

 

 

Chapter XLVIII

 

THE whole party were in hopes of a letter from Mr.

Bennet the next morning, but the post came in with-

out bringing a single line from him. His family

knew him to be, on all common occasions, a most negligent

and dilatory correspondent; but at such a time they had

hoped for exertion. They were forced to conclude that he

had no pleasing intelligence to send, but even of that they

would have been glad to be certain. Mr. Gardiner had

waited only for the letters before he set off.

 

When he was gone, they were certain at least of receiving

constant information of what was going on; and their uncle

promised, at parting, to prevail on Mr. Bennet to return to

Longbourn as soon as he could, to the great consolation of

his sister, who considered it as the only security for her

husband's not being killed in a duel.

 

Mrs. Gardiner and the children were to remain in

Hertfordshire a few days longer, as the former thought her

presence might be serviceable to her nieces. She shared in

their attendance on Mrs. Bennet, and was a great comfort

to them in their hours of freedom. Their other aunt also

visited them frequently, and always, as she said, with the

design of cheering and heartening them up, though, as she

never came without reporting some fresh instance of

Wickham's extravagance or irregularity, she seldom went

away without leaving them more dispirited than she found

them.

 

All Meryton seemed striving to blacken the man who, but

three months before, had been almost an angel of light. He

was declared to be in debt to every tradesman in the place-,

and his intrigues, all honoured with the title of seduction,

had been extended into every tradesman's family. Every-

body declared that he was the wickedest young man in the

world; and everybody began to find out that they had

always distrusted the appearance of his goodness. Elizabeth,

 

 [425]

 
{{prhprp426.jpg}}

 

though she did not credit above half of what was said, be-

lieved enough to make her former assurance of her sister's

ruin still more certain; and even Jane, who believed still

less of it, became almost hopeless, more especially as the

time was now come, when, if they had gone to Scotland,

which she had never before entirely despaired of, they must

in all probability have gained some news of them.

 

Mr. Gardiner left Longbourn on Sunday; on Tuesday his

wife received a letter from him: it told them that on his

arrival he had immediately found out his brother, and per-

suaded him to come to Gracechurch Street. That Mr.

Bennet had been to Epsom and Clapham, before his arrival,

but without gaining any satisfactory information; and that

he was now determined to inquire at all the principal hotels

in town, as Mr. Bennet thought it possible they might have

gone to one of them, on their first coming to London, be-

fore they procured lodgings. Mr. Gardiner himself did not

expect any success from this measure; but as his brother

was eager in it, he meant to assist him in pursuing it. He

added, that Mr. Bennet seemed wholly disinclined at present

to leave London, and promised to write again very soon.

There was also a postscript to this effect: --

 

'I have written to Colonel Forster to desire him to find

out, if possible, from some of the young man's intimates in

the regiment, whether Wickham has any relations or connec-

tions who would be likely to know in what part of the town

he has now concealed himself. If there were any one that

one could apply to, with a probability of gaining such a clue

as that, it might be of essential consequence. At present we

have nothing to guide us. Colonel Forster will, I daresay,

do everything in his power to satisfy us on this head. But,

on second thoughts, perhaps Lizzy could tell us what relations

he has now living better than any other person.'

 

Elizabeth was at no loss to understand from whence this

deference for her authority proceeded; but it was not in her

power to give any information of so satisfactory a nature

as the compliment deserved.

 

She had never heard of his having had any relations,

except a father and mother, both of whom had been dead

many years. It was possible, however, that some of his

 

 [426]

 
{{prhprp427.jpg}}

 

companions in the shire might be able to give more in-

formation; and though she was not very sanguine in ex-

pecting it, the application was a something to look for-

ward to.

 

Every day at Longbourn was now a day of anxiety; but

the most anxious part of each was when the post was ex-

pected. The arrival of letters was the first grand object

of every morning's impatience. Through letters, whatever

of good or bad was to be told would be communicated, and

every succeeding day was expected to bring some news of

importance.

 

But before they heard again from Mr. Gardiner, a letter

arrived for their father, from a different quarter, from Mr.

Collins: which, as Jane had received directions to open all

that came for him in his absence, she accordingly read; and

Elizabeth, who knew what curiosities his letters always were,

looked over her, and read it likewise. It was as follows: --

 

'My Dear Sir -- I feel myself called upon, by our relationship, and

my situation in life, to condole with you on the grievous affliction

you are now suffering under, of which we were yesterday informed

by a letter from Hertfordshire. Be assured, my dear sir, that Mrs.

Collins and myself sincerely sympathise with you, and all your

respectable family, in your present distress, which must be of the

bitterest kind, because proceeding from a cause which no time can

remove. No arguments shall be wanting on my part, that can alleviate

so severe a misfortune; or that may comfort you, under a circum-

stance that must be, of all others, most afflicting to a parent's mind.

The death of your daughter would have been a blessing in com-

parison of this. And it is the more to be lamented, because there

is reason to suppose, as my dear Charlotte informs me, that this

licentiousness of behaviour in your daughter has proceeded from a

faulty degree of indulgence; though, at the same time, for the con-

solation of yourself and Mrs. Bennet, I am inclined to think that

her own disposition must be naturally bad, or she could not be guilty

of such an enormity, at so early an age. Howsoever that may be,

you are grievously to be pitied, in which opinion I am not only joined

by Mrs. Collins, but likewise by Lady Catherine and her daughter,

to whom I have related the affair. They agree with me in appre-

hending that this false step in one daughter will be injurious to

the fortunes of all the others: for who, as Lady Catherine herself

condescendingly says, will connect themselves with such a family?

And this consideration leads me, moreover, to reflect, with aug-

mented satisfaction, on a certain event of last November; for had

it been otherwise, I must have been involved in all your sorrow and

disgrace. Let me advise you, then, my dear sir, to console yourself

 

 [427]

 
{{prhprp428.jpg}}

 

as much as possible, to throw out your unworthy child from your

attention for ever, and leave her to reap the fruits of her own

heinous offence. -- I am, dear sir,' etc.

 

Mr. Gardiner did not write again till he had received an

answer from Colonel Forster; and then he had nothing of

a pleasant nature to send. It was not known that Wickham

had a single relation with whom he kept up any connection,

and it was certain that he had no near one living. His

former acquaintance had been numerous; but since he had

been in the militia, it did not appear that he was on terms

of particular friendship with any of them. There was no

one, therefore, who could be pointed out as likely to give

any news of him. And in the wretched state of his own

finances there was a very powerful motive for secrecy, in

addition to his fear of discovery by Lydia's relations; for

it had just transpired that he had left gaming debts behind

him to a very considerable amount. Colonel Forster be-

lieved that more than a thousand pounds would be necessary

to clear his expenses at Brighton. He owed a good deal

in the town, but his debts of honour were still more for-

midable. Mr. Gardiner did not attempt to conceal these

particulars from the Longbourn family; Jane heard them

with horror. 'A gamester!' she cried. This is wholly un-

expected; I had not an idea of it.'

 

Mr. Gardiner added, in his letter, that they might expect

to see their father at home on the following day, which was

Saturday. Rendered spiritless by the ill success of all their

endeavours, he had yielded to his brother-in-law's entreaty

that he would return to his family and leave it to him to do

whatever occasion might suggest to be advisable for con-

tinuing their pursuit. When Mrs. Bennet was told of this,

she did not express so much satisfaction as her children ex-

pected, considering what her anxiety for his life had been

before.

 

'What! is he coming home, and without poor Lydia?' she

cried. 'Sure he will not leave London before he has found

them. Who is to fight Wickham, and make him marry her,

if he comes away?'

 

As Mrs. Gardiner began to wish to be at home, it was

settled that she and her children should go to London at the

 

 [428]

 
{{prhprp429.jpg}}

 

same time that Mr. Bennet came from it. The coach, there-

fore, took them the first stage of their journey, and brought

its master back to Longbourn.

 

Mrs. Gardiner went away in all the perplexity about

Elizabeth and her Derbyshire friend that had attended her

from that part of the world. His name had never been

voluntarily mentioned before them by her niece; and the

kind of half-expectation which Mrs. Gardiner had formed,

of their being followed by a letter from him, had ended in

nothing. Elizabeth had received none since her return, that

could come from Pemberley.

 

The present unhappy state of the family rendered any

other excuse for the lowness of her spirits unnecessary;

nothing, therefore, could be fairly conjectured from that,

though Elizabeth, who was by this time tolerably well ac-

quainted with her own feelings, was perfectly aware that,

had she known nothing of Darcy, she could have borne the

dread of Lydia's infamy somewhat better. It would have

spared her, she thought, one sleepless night out of two.

 

When Mr. Bennet arrived, he had all the appearance of

his usual philosophic composure. He said as little as he

had ever been in the habit of saying; made no mention of

the business that had taken him away, and it was some time

before his daughters had courage to speak of it.

 

It was not till the afternoon, when he joined them at tea,

that Elizabeth ventured to introduce the subject; and then,

on her briefly expressing her sorrow for what he must have

endured, he replied, 'Say nothing of that. Who should suffer

but myself? It has been my own doing, and I ought to

feel it'.'

 

'You must not be too severe upon yourself,' replied

Elizabeth.

 

'You may well warn me against such an evil. Human

nature is so prone to fall into it! No, Lizzy, let me once

in my life feel how much I have been to blame. I am not

afraid of being overpowered by the impression. It will pass

away soon enough.'

 

'Do you suppose them to be in London?'

 

'Yes; where else can they be so well concealed?'

 

'And Lydia used to want to go to London,' added Kitty.

 

 [429]

 
{{prhprp430.jpg}}

 

 

'She is happy, then,' said her father, drily; 'and her

residence there will probably be of some duration.'

 

Then, after a short silence, he continued, 'Lizzy, I bear

you no ill-will for being justified in your advice to me last

May, which, considering the event, shows some greatness of

mind.'

 

They were interrupted by Miss Bennet, who came to fetch

her mother's tea.

 

'This is a parade,' cried he, 'which does one good; it

gives such an elegance to misfortune! Another day I will do

the same; I will sit in my library, in my night-cap and

powdering gown, and give as much trouble as I can, -- or

perhaps I may defer it till Kitty runs away.'

 

'I am not going to run away, papa,' said Kitty, fretfully.

'If I should ever go to Brighton, I would behave better than

Lydia.'

 

'You go to Brighton! I would not trust you so near it as

East Bourne, for fifty pounds! No, Kitty, I have at least

learnt to be cautious, and you will feel the effects of it. No

officer is ever to enter my house again, nor even to pass

through the village. Balls will be absolutely prohibited, un-

less you stand up with one of your sisters. And you are

never to stir out of doors, till you can prove that you have

spent ten minutes of every day in a rational manner.'

 

Kitty, who took all these threats in a serious light, began

to cry.

 

'Well, well,' said he, 'do not make yourself unhappy. If

you are a good girl for the next ten years, I will take you

to a review at the end of them.'

 

 [430]

 
{{prhprp431.jpg}}

 

 

 

 

Chapter XLIX

 

TWO days after Mr. Bennet's return, as Jane and

Elizabeth were walking together in the shrubbery be-

hind the house, they saw the housekeeper coming

towards them, and concluding that she came to call them to

their mother, went forward to meet her; but instead of the

expected summons, when they approached her, she said to

Miss Bennet, 'I beg your pardon, madam, for interrupting

you, but I was in hopes you might have got some good news

from town, so I took the liberty of coming to ask.'

 

'What do you mean, Hill? We have heard nothing from

town.'

 

'Dear madam,' cried Mrs. Hill, in great astonishment,

'don't you know there is an express come for master from

Mr. Gardiner? He has been here this half-hour, and mas-

ter has had a letter.'

 

Away ran the girls, too eager to get in to have time for

speech. They ran through the vestibule into the breakfast-

room; from thence to the library; -- their father was in

neither; and they were on the point of seeking him upstairs

with their mother, when they were met by the butler, who

said, --

 

'If you are looking for my master, ma'am, he is walking

towards the little copse.'

 

Upon this information, they instantly passed through the

hall once more, and ran across the lawn after their father,

who was deliberately pursuing his way towards a small wood

on one side of the paddock.

 

Jane, who w'as not so light, nor so much in the habit of

running as Elizabeth, soon lagged behind, while her sister,

panting for breath, came up with him, and eagerly cried

out, --

 

'Oh, papa, what news? what news? have you heard from

my uncle?'

 

'Yes, I have had a letter from him by express.'

 

'Well, and what news does it bring -- good or bad?'

 

 [431]

 
{{prhprp432.jpg}}

 

 

'What is there of good to be expected?' said he, taking the

letter from his pocket; 'but perhaps you would like to read it.'

 

Elizabeth impatiently caught it from his hand. Jane now

came up.

 

'Read it aloud,' said their father, 'for I hardly know myself

what it is about.'

 

'Gracechurch Street, Monday, August 2.

 

'My dear Brother -- At last I am able to send you some tidings

of my niece, and such as, upon the whole, I hope will give you

satisfaction. Soon after you left me on Saturday, I was fortunate

enough to find out in what part of London they were. The par-

ticulars I reserve till we meet. It is enough to know they are dis-

covered; I have seen them both '

 

'Then it is as I always hoped.' cried Jane: 'they are mar-

ried!'

 

Elizabeth read on:

 

'I have seen them both. They are not married, nor can I find

there was any intention of being so; but if you are willing to

perform the engagements which I have ventured to make on your

side, I hope it will not be long before they are. All that is re-

quired of you is, to assure to your daughter, by settlement, her

equal share of the five thousand pounds secured among your children

after the decease of yourself and my sister; and, moreover, to enter

into an engagement of allowing her, during your life, one hundred

pounds per annum. These are conditions which, considering every-

thing, I had no hesitation in complying with, as far as I thought

myself privileged, for you. I shall send this by express, that no

time may be lost in bringing me your answer. You will easily

comprehend, from these particulars, that Mr. Wickham's circum-

stances are not so hopeless as they are generally believed to be.

The world has been deceived in that respect; and I am happy to

say there will be some little money, even when all his debts are

discharged, to settle on my niece, in addition to her own fortune.

If, as I conclude will be the case, you send me full powers to act in

your name throughout the whole of this business, I will immediately

give directions to Haggerston for preparing a proper settlement.

There will not be the smallest occasion for your coming to town

again; therefore stay quietly at Longbourn, and depend on my dili-

gence and care. Send back your answer as soon as you can, and

be careful to write explicitly. We have judged it best that my niece

should be married from this house, of which I hope you will approve.

She comes to us to-day. I shall write again as soon as anything

more is determined on. Yours, etc.

 

'Edw. Gardiner.'

 

'Is it possible?' cried Elizabeth, when she had finished.

'Can it be possible that he will marry her?'

 

 [432]

 
{{prhprp433.jpg}}

 

 

'Wickham is not so undeserving:, then, as we have thought

him,' said her sister. 'My dear father, I congratulate you.'

 

'And have you answered the letter?' said Elizabeth.

 

'No; but it must be done soon.'

 

Most earnestly did she then entreat him to lose no more

time before he wrote.

 

'Oh, my dear father,' she cried, 'come back and write

immediately. Consider how important every moment is in

such a case.'

 

'Let me write for you,' said Jane, 'if you dislike the trouble

yourself.'

 

'I dislike it very much,' he replied; 'but it must be done.'

 

And so saying, he turned back with them, and walked

towards the house.

 

'And may I ask?' said Elizabeth; 'but the terms, I sup-

pose, must be complied with.'

 

'Complied with! I am only ashamed of his asking so little.'

 

'And they must marry! Yet he is such a man.'

 

'Yes, yes, they must marry. There is nothing else to be

done. But there are two things that I want very much

to know: -- one is, how much money your uncle has laid

down to bring it about; and the other, how I am ever to

pay him.'

 

'Money! my uncle!' cried Jane, 'what do you mean, sir?'

 

'I mean that no man in his senses would marry Lydia on

so slight a temptation as one hundred a year during my life,

and fifty after I am gone.'

 

'That is very true,' said Elizabeth; 'though it had not

occurred to me before. His debts to be discharged, and

something still to remain! Oh, it must be my uncle's doings!

Generous, good man, I am afraid he has distressed himself.

A small sum could not do all this.'

 

'No,' said her father. 'Wickham's a fool if he takes her

with a farthing less than ten thousand pounds: I should be

sorry to think so ill of him, in the very beginning of our

relationship.'

 

'Ten thousand pounds! Heaven forbid! How is half

such a sum to be repaid?'

 

Mr. Bennet made no answer; and each of them, deep in

thought, continued silent till they reached the house. Their

 

 [433]

 
{{prhprp434.jpg}}

 

father then went to the library to write, and the girls walked

into the breakfast-room.

 

'And they are really to be married!' cried Elizabeth,

as soon as they were by themselves. 'How strange this

is! and for this we are to be thankful. That they

should marry, small as is their chance of happiness, and

wretched as is his character, we are forced to rejoice!

Oh, Lydia!'

 

'I comfort myself with thinking,' replied Jane, 'that he

certainly would not marry Lydia if he had not a real regard

for her. Though our kind uncle has done something towards

clearing him, I cannot believe that ten thousand pounds, or

anything like it, has been advanced. He has children of his

own, and may have more. How could he spare half ten

thousand pounds?'

 

'If we are ever able to learn what Wickham's debts have

been,' said Elizabeth, 'and how much is settled on his side on

our sister, we shall exactly know what Mr. Gardiner has done

for them, because Wickham has not sixpence of his own.

The kindness of my uncle and aunt can never be requited.

Their taking her home, and affording her their personal

protection and countenance, is such a sacrifice to her ad-

vantage as years of gratitude cannot enough acknowledge.

By this time she is actually with them! If such goodness

does not make her miserable now, she will never deserve

to be happy! What a meeting for her, when she first sees

my aunt!'

 

'We must endeavour to forget all that has passed on either

side,' said Jane: 'I hope and trust they will yet be happy.

His consenting to marry her is a proof, I will believe, that he

is come to a right way of thinking. Their mutual affection

will steady them; and I flatter myself they will settle so

quietly, and live in so rational a manner, as may in time

make their past imprudence forgotten.'

 

'Their conduct has been such,' replied Elizabeth, 'as

neither you, nor I, nor anybody, can ever forget. It is use-

less to talk of it.'

 

It now occurred to the girls that their mother was in all

likelihood perfectly ignorant of what had happened. They

went to the library, therefore, and asked their father whether

 

 [434]

 
{{prhprp435.jpg}}

 

he would not wish them to make it known to her. He was

writing, and, without raising his head, coolly replied, --

 

'Just as you please.'

 

'May we take my uncle's letter to read to her?'

 

'Take whatever you like, and get away.'

 

Elizabeth took the letter from his writing-table, and they

went upstairs together. Mary and Kitty were both with Mrs.

Bennet: one communication would, therefore, do for all.

After a slight preparation for good news, the letter was read

aloud. Mrs. Bennet could hardly contain herself. As soon

as Jane had read Mr. Gardiner's hope of Lydia's being soon

married, her joy burst forth, and every following sentence

added to its exuberance. She was now in an irritation as

violent from delight as she had ever been fidgety from alarm

and vexation. To know that her daughter would be married

was enough. She was disturbed by no fear for her felicity,

nor humbled by any remembrance of her misconduct.

 

'My dear, dear Lydia!' she cried: 'this is delightful in-

deed I She will be married! I shall see her again! She

will be married at sixteen! My good, kind brother! I

knew how it would be -- I knew he would manage everything.

How I long to see her! and to see dear Wickham too! But

the clothes, the wedding clothes! I will write to my sister

Gardiner about them directly. Lizzy, my dear, run down to

your father, and ask him how much he will give her. Stay,

stay, I will go myself. Ring the bell, Kitty, for Hill. I will

put on my things in a moment. My dear, dear Lydia! How

merry we shall be together when we meet!'

 

Her eldest daughter endeavoured to give some relief to

the violence of these transports, by leading her thoughts to

the obligations which Mr. Gardiner's behaviour laid them

all under.

 

'For we must attribute this happy conclusion,' she added,

'in a great measure to his kindness. We are persuaded that

he has pledged himself to assist Mr. Wickham with money.'

 

'Well,' cried her mother, 'it is all very right; who should

do it but her own uncle? If he had not had a family of his

own, I and my children must have had all his money, you

know; and it is the first time we have ever had anything from

him except a few presents. Well! I am so happy. In a

 

 [435]

 
{{prhprp436.jpg}}

 

short time I shall have a daughter married. Mrs. Wickham!

How well it sounds. And she was only sixteen last June.

My dear Jane, I am in such a flutter, that I am sure I can't

write; so I will dictate, and you write for me. We will

settle with your father about the money afterwards; but

the things should be ordered immediately.'

 

She was then proceeding to all the particulars of calico,

muslin, and cambric, and would shortly have dictated some

very plentiful orders, had not Jane, though with some dif-

ficulty, persuaded her to wait till her father was at leisure

to be consulted. One day's delay, she observed, would be

of small importance; and her mother was too happy to be

quite so obstinate as usual. Other schemes, too, came into

her head.

 

'I will go to Meryton,' said she, 'as soon as I am dressed,

and tell the good, good news to my sister Philips. And as I

come back, I can call on Lady Lucas and Mrs. Long. Kitty.

run down and order the carriage. An airing would do me a

great deal of good, I am sure. Girls, can I do anything for

you in Meryton? Oh! here comes Hill. My dear Hill, have

you heard the good news? Miss Lydia is going to be

married; and you shall all have a bowl of punch to make

merry at her wedding.'

 

Mrs. Hill began instantly to express her joy. Elizabeth

received her congratulations amongst the rest, and then, sick

of this folly, took refuge in her own room, that she might

think with freedom. Poor Lydia's situation must, at best,

be bad enough; but that it was no worse, she had need to be

thankful. She felt it so; and though, in looking forward,

neither rational happiness nor worldly prosperity could be

justly expected for her sister, in looking back to what they

had feared, only two hours ago, she felt all the advantages

of what they had gained.

 

 [436]

 
{{prhprp437.jpg}}

 

 

 

 

Chapter L

 

MR. BENNET had very often wished, before this

period of his life, that, instead of spending his whole

income, he had laid by an annual sum, for the better

provision of his children, and of his wife, if she survived

him. He now wished it more than ever. Mad he done his

duty in that respect, Lydia need not have been indebted to

her uncle for whatever of honour or credit could now be

purchased for her. The satisfaction of prevailing on one

of the most worthless young men in Great Britain to be her

husband might then have rested in its proper place.

 

He was seriously concerned that a cause of so little ad-

vantage to any one should be forwarded at the sole expense

of his brother-in-law; and he was determined, if possible,

to find out the extent of his assistance, and to discharge the

obligation as soon as he could.

 

When first Mr. Bennet had married, economy was held

to be perfectly useless; for, of course, they were to have a

son. This son was to join in cutting off the entail, as soon

as he should be of age, and the widow and younger children

would by that means be provided for. Five daughters suc-

cessively entered the world, but yet the son was to come; and

Mrs. Bennet, for many years after Lydia's birth, had been

certain that he would. This event had at last been despaired

of, but it was then too late to be saving. Mrs. Bennet had

no turn for economy; and her husband's love of independence

had alone prevented their exceeding their income.

 

Five thousand pounds was settled by marriage articles on

Mrs. Bennet and the children. But in what proportions it

should be divided amongst the latter depended on the will

of the parents. This was one point, with regard to Lydia

at least, which was now to be settled, and Mr. Bennet could

have no hesitation in acceding to the proposal before him.

In terms of grateful acknowledgment for the kindness of his

brother, though expressed most concisely, he then delivered

 

 [437]

 
{{prhprp438.jpg}}

 

on paper his perfect approbation of all that was done, and

his willingness to fulfil the engagements that had been made

for him. He had never before supposed that, could Wick-

ham be prevailed on to marry his daughter, it would be

done with so little inconvenience to himself as by the present

arrangement. He would scarcely be ten pounds a year the

loser, by the hundred that was to be paid them; for, what with

her board and pocket allowance, and the continual presents

in money which passed to her through her mother's hands,

Lydia's expenses had been very little within that sum.

 

That it would be done with such trifling exertion on his

side, too, was another very welcome surprise; for his chief

wish at present was to have as little trouble in the business

as possible. When the first transports of rage which had

produced his activity in seeking her were over, he naturally

returned to all his former indolence. His letter was soon

despatched; for though dilatory in undertaking business, he

was quick in its execution. He begged to know further par-

ticulars of what he was indebted to his brother; but was

too angry with Lydia to send any message to her.

 

The good news quickly spread through the house; and

with proportionate speed through the neighbourhood. It

was borne in the latter with decent philosophy. To be sure,

it would have been more for the advantage of conversation,

had Miss Lydia Bennet come upon the town; or, as the hap-

piest alternative, been secluded from the world, in some dis-

tant farmhouse. But there was much to be talked of, in

marrying her; and the good-natured wishes for her well-

doing, which had proceeded before from all the spiteful old

ladies in Meryton, lost but little of their spirit in this change

of circumstances, because with such a husband her misery

was considered certain.

 

It was a fortnight since Mrs. Bennet had been down-

stairs, but on this happy day she again took her seat at the

head of her table, and in spirits oppressively high. No senti-

ment of shame gave a damp to her triumph. The marriage

of a daughter, which had been the first object of her wishes

since Jane was sixteen, was now on the point of accom-

plishment, and her thoughts and her words ran wholly on

those attendants of elegant nuptials, fine muslins, new car-

 

 [438]

 
{{prhprp439.jpg}}

 

riages, and servants. She was busily searching through the

neighbourhood for a proper situation for her daughter; and,

without knowing or considering what their income might

be, rejected many as deficient in size and importance.

 

'Haye Park might do,' said she, 'if the Gouldings would

quit it, or the great house at Stoke, if the drawing-room

were larger; but Ashworth is too far off. I could not bear

to have her ten miles from me; and as for Purvis Lodge, the

attics are dreadful.'

 

Her husband allowed her to talk on without interruption

while the servants remained. But when they had with-

drawn, he said to her, 'Mrs. Bennet, before you take any,

or all of these houses, for your son and daughter, let us

come to a right understanding. Into one house in this

neighbourhood they shall never have admittance. I will

not encourage the imprudence of either, by receiving them

at Longbourn.'

 

A long dispute followed this declaration; but Mr. Bennet

was firm: it soon led to another; and Mrs. Bennet found,

with amazement and horror, that her husband would not

advance a guinea to buy clothes for his daughter. He pro-

tested that she should receive from him no mark of affection

whatever on the occasion. Mrs. Bennet could hardly com-

prehend it. That his anger could be carried to such a point

of inconceivable resentment as to refuse his daughter a

privilege, without which her marriage would scarcely seem

valid, exceeded all that she could believe possible. She was

more alive to the disgrace which her want of new clothes

must reflect on her daughter's nuptials, than to any sense of

shame at her eloping and living with Wickham a fortnight

before they took place.

 

Elizabeth was now most heartily sorry that she had, from

the distress of the moment, been led to make Mr. Darcy

acquainted with their fears for her sister; for since her

marriage would so shortly give the proper termination to

the elopement, they might hope to conceal its unfavourable

beginning from all those who were not immediately on the

spot.

 

She had no fear of its spreading farther through his

means. There were few people on whose secrecy she would

 

 [439]

 
{{prhprp440.jpg}}

 

have more confidently depended; but at the same time there

was no one whose knowledge of a sister's frailty would have

mortified her so much. Not, however, from any fear of

disadvantage from it individually to herself; for at any

rate there seemed a gulf impassable between them. Had

Lydia's marriage been concluded on the most honourable

terms, it was not to be supposed that Mr. Darcy would con-

nect himself with a family, where to every other objection

would now be added an alliance and relationship of the

nearest kind with the man whom he so justly scorned.

 

From such a connection she could not wonder that he

should shrink. The wish of procuring her regard, which she

had assured herself of his feeling in Derbyshire, could not

in rational expectation survive such a blow as this. She was

humbled, she was grieved; she repented, though she hardly

knew of what. She became jealous of his esteem, when she

could no longer hope to be benefited by it. She wanted to

hear of him, when there seemed the least chance of gaining

intelligence. She was convinced that she could have been

happy with him, when it was no longer likely they should

meet.

 

What a triumph for him, as she often thought, could he

know that the proposals which she had proudly spurned only

four months ago would now have been gladly and gratefully

received! He was as generous, she doubted not, as the most

generous of his sex. But while he was mortal, there must be

a triumph.

 

She began now to comprehend that he was exactly the

man who, in disposition and talents, would most suit her.

His understanding and temper, though unlike her own.

would have answered all her wishes. It was an union that

must have been to the advantage of both; by her ease and

liveliness his mind might have been softened, his manners

improved; and from his judgment, information, and knowl-

edge of the world, she must have received benefit of

greater importance.

 

But no such happy marriage could now teach the admiring

multitude what connubial felicity really was. An union of a

different tendency, and precluding the possibility of the

other, was soon to be formed in their family.

 

 [440]

 
{{prhprp441.jpg}}

 

 

How W'ickham and Lydia were to be supported in toler-

able independence she could not imagine. But how little of

permanent happiness could belong to a couple who were

only brought together because their passions were stronger

than their virtue, she could easily conjecture.

 

Mr. Gardiner soon wrote again to his brother. To Mr.

Bennet's acknowledgments he briefly replied, with assurances

of his eagerness to promote the welfare of any of his family;

and concluded with entreaties that the subject might never

be mentioned to him again. The principal purport of his

letter was to inform them that Mr. Wickham had resolved

on quitting the militia.

 

'It was greatly my wish that he should do so,' he added, 'as soon

as his marriage was fixed on. And I think you will agree with me

in considering a removal from that corps as highly advisable, both

on his account and my niece's. It is Mr. Wickham's intention to go

into the Regulars; and, among his former friends, there are still

some who are able and willing to assist him in the army. He has

the promise of an ensigncy in General's regiment, now quar-

tered in the north. It is an advantage to have it so far from this

part of the kingdom. He promises fairly; and I hope among dif-

ferent people, where they may each have a character to preserve,

they will both be more prudent. I have written to Colonel Forster,

to inform him of our present arrangements, and to request that he

will satisfy the various creditors of Mr. Wickham in and near

Brighton with assurances of speedy payment, for which I have pledged

myself. And will you give yourself the trouble of carrying similar

assurances to his creditors in Meryton, of whom I shall subjoin a

list, according to his information? He has given in all his debts;

I hope at least he has not deceived us. Haggerston has our direc-

tions, and all will be completed in a week. They will then join his

regiment, unless they are first invited to Longbourn; and I under-

stand from Mrs. Gardiner that my niece is very desirous of seeing

you all before she leaves the south. She is well, and begs to be

dutifully remembered to you and her mother. -- Yours, etc.

 

'E. Gardiner.'

 

Mr. Bennet and his daughters saw all the advantages of

Wickham's removal from the shire, as clearly as Mr.

Gardiner could do. But Mrs. Bennet was not so well pleased

with it. Lydia's being settled in the north, just when she

had expected most pleasure and pride in her company, for

she had by no means given up her plan of their residing in

Hertfordshire, was a severe disappointment: and, besides,

it was such a pity that Lydia should be taken from a regi-

 

 [441]

 
{{prhprp442.jpg}}

 

ment where she was acquainted with everybody, and had so

many favourites.

 

'She is so fond of Mrs. Forster,' said she, 'It will be quite

shocking to send her away! And there are several of the

young men, too, that she likes very much. The officers may

not be so pleasant in General's regiment.'

 

His daughter's request, for such it might be considered, of

being admitted into her family again, before she set off for

the north, received at first an absolute negative. But Jane

and Elizabeth, who agreed in wishing, for the sake of their

sister's feelings and consequence, that she should be noticed

on her marriage by her parents, urged him so earnestly, yet

so rationally and so mildly, to receive her and her husband

at Longbourn, as soon as they were married, that he was

prevailed on to think as they thought and act as they wished.

And their mother had the satisfaction of knowing that she

should be able to show her married daughter in the neigh-

bourhood, before she was banished to the north. When Mr.

Bennet wrote again to his brother, therefore, he sent his

permission for them to come; and it was settled that, as soon

as the ceremony was over, they should proceed to Long-

bourn. Elizabeth was surprised, however, that Wickham

should consent to such a scheme; and, had she consulted

only her own inclination, any meeting with him would have

been the last object of her wishes.

 

 [442]

 
{{prhprp443.jpg}}

 

 

 

 

Chapter LI

 

THEIR sister's wedding day arrived; and Jane and

Elizabeth felt for her probably more than she felt

for herself. The carriage was sent to meet them at

____, and they were to return in it by dinner-time. Their

arrival was dreaded by the elder Miss Bonnets; and Jane

more especially, who gave Lydia the feelings which would

have attended herself had she been the culprit, and was

wretched in the thought of what her sister must endure.

 

They came. The family were assembled in the breakfast-

room to receive them. Smiles decked the face of Mrs.

Bennet, as the carriage drove up to the door; her husband

looked impenetrably grave; her daughters, alarmed, anxious,

uneasy.

 

Lydia's voice was heard in the vestibule; the door was

thrown open, and she ran into the room. Her mother stepped

forwards, embraced her, and welcomed her with rapture;

gave her hand with an affectionate smile to Wickham, who

followed his lady, and wished them both joy, with an alacrity

which showed no doubt of their happiness.

 

Their reception from Mr. Bennet, to whom they then

turned, was not quite so cordial. His countenance rather

gained in austerity; and he scarcely opened his lips. The

easy assurance of the young couple, indeed, was enough to

provoke him. Elizabeth was disgusted, and even Miss Ben-

net was shocked. Lydia was Lydia still; untamed, un-

abashed, wild, noisy, and fearless. She turned from sister

to sister, demanding their congratulations; and when at

length they all sat down, looked eagerly round the room,

took notice of some little alteration in it, and observed, with

a laugh, that it was a great while since she had been there.

 

Wickham was not at all more distressed than herself; but

his manners were always so pleasing, that had his character

and his marriage been exactly what they ought, his smiles

and his easy address, while he claimed their relationship,

 

 [443]

 
{{prhprp444.jpg}}

 

would have delighted them all. Elizabeth had not before

believed him quite equal to such assurance; but she sat down,

resolving within herself to draw no limits in future to the

impudence of an impudent man. She blushed, and Jane

blushed; but the cheeks of the two who caused their con-

fusion suffered no variation of colour.

 

There was no want of discourse. The bride and her

mother could neither of them talk fast enough; and Wick-

ham, who happened to sit near Elizabeth, began inquiring

after his acquaintance in that neighbourhood, with a good-

humoured ease which she felt very unable to equal in her

replies. They seemed each of them to have the happiest

memories in the world. Nothing of the past was recollected

with pain; and Lydia led voluntarily to subjects which her

sisters would not have alluded to for the world.

 

'Only think of its being three months.' she cried, 'since I

went away: it seems but a fortnight, I declare; and yet there

have been things enough happened in the time. Good

gracious! when I went away, I am sure I had no more idea

of being married till I came back again! though I thought

it would be very good fun if I was.'

 

Her father lifted up his eyes, Jane was distressed, Eliza-

beth looked expressively at Lydia; but she, who never heard

nor saw anything of which she chose to be insensible, gaily

continued, 'Oh, mamma, do the people hereabouts know I

am married to-day? I was afraid they might not; and we

overtook William Goulding in his curricle, so I was de-

termined he should know it, and so I let down the side glass

next to him, and took off my glove and let my hand just

rest upon the window frame, so that he might see the ring,

and then I bowed and smiled like anything.'

 

Elizabeth could bear it no longer. She got up and ran

out of the room; and returned no more till she heard them

passing through the hall to the dining parlour. She then

joined them soon enough to see Lydia, with anxious parade,

walk up to her mother's right hand, and hear her say to her

eldest sister, 'Ah, Jane I take your place now, and you must

go lower, because I am a married woman.'

 

It was not to be supposed that time would give Lydia that

embarrassment from which she had been so wholly free at

 

 [444]

 
{{prhprp445.jpg}}

 

first. Her ease and good spirits increased. She longed to

see Mrs. Philips, the Lucases, and all their other neighbours,

and to hear herself called 'Mrs. Wickham' by each of them:

and in the meantime she went after dinner to show her ring

and boast of being married to Mrs. Hill and the two house-

maids.

 

'Well, mamma,' said she, when they were all returned to

the breakfast-room, 'and what do you think of my husband?

Is not he a charming man? I am sure my sisters must all

envy me. I only hope they may have half my good luck.

They must all go to Brighton. That is the place to get

husbands. What a pity it is, mamma, we did not all go.'

 

'Very true; and if I had my will we should. But, my

dear Lydia, I don't at all like your going such a way off.

Must it be so?'

 

'O Lord! yes; there is nothing in that. I shall like it

of all things. You and papa, and my sisters, must come down

and see us. We shall be at Newcastle all the winter, and I

daresay there will be some balls, and I will take care to get

good partners for them all.'

 

'I should like it beyond anything!' said her mother.

 

'And then when you go away, you may leave one or two of

my sisters behind you; and I daresay I shall get husbands

for them before the winter is over.'

 

'I thank you for my share of the favour.' said Elizabeth;

'but I do not particularly like your way of getting husbands.'

 

Their visitors were not to remain above ten days with

them. Mr. Wickham had received his commission before he

left London, and he was to join his regiment at the end of a

fortnight.

 

No one but Mrs. Bennet regretted that their stay would be

so short; and she made the most of the time by visiting about

with her daughter, and having very frequent parties at home.

These parties were acceptable to all; to avoid a family circle

was even more desirable to such as did think than such as

did not.

 

Wickham's affection for Lydia was just what Elizabeth

had expected to find it: not equal to Lydia's for him. She

had scarcely needed her present observation to be satisfied,

from the reason of things, that their elopement had been

 

 [445]

 
{{prhprp446.jpg}}

 

brought on by the strength of her love rather than by his;

and she would have wondered why, without violently caring

for her, he chose to elope with her at all, had she not felt

certain that his flight was rendered necessary by distress of

circumstances; and if that were the case, he was not the

young man to resist an opportunity of having a companion.

 

Lydia was exceedingly fond of him. He was her dear

Wickham on every occasion; no one was to be put in com-

petition with him. He did everything best in the world; and

she was sure he would kill more birds on the first of Septem-

ber than anybody else in the country.

 

One morning, soon after their arrival, as she was sitting

with her two elder sisters, she said to Elizabeth, --

 

'Lizzy, I never gave you an account of my wedding, I

believe. You were not by when I told mamma and the

others all about it. Are not you curious to hear how it was

managed?'

 

'No, really,' replied Elizabeth; 'I think there cannot be

too little said on the subject.'

 

'La! You are so strange! But I must tell you how it

went off. We were married, you know, at St. Clement's,

because Wickham's lodgings were in that parish. And it

was settled that we should all be there by eleven o'clock.

My uncle and aunt and I were to go together; and the others

were to meet us at the church. Well, Monday morning

came, and I was in such a fuss! I was so afraid, you know,

that something would happen to put it off, and then I should

have gone quite distracted. And there was my aunt, all the

time I was dressing, preaching and talking away just as if

she was reading a sermon. However, I did not hear above

one word in ten, for I was thinking, you may suppose, of my

dear Wickham. I longed to know whether he would be

married in his blue coat.

 

'Well, and so we breakfasted at ten as usual: I thought

it would never be over; for, by the bye, you are to under-

stand that my uncle and aunt were horrid unpleasant all the

time I was with them. If you'll believe me, I did not once

put my foot out of doors, though I was there a fortnight.

Not one party, or scheme, or anything. To be sure, London

was rather thin, but, however, the Little Theatre was open.

 

 [446]

 
{{prhprp447.jpg}}

 

Well, and so just as the carriage came to the door, my uncle

was called away upon business to that horrid man Mr. Stone.

And then, you know, when once they get together, there is

no end of it. Well, I was so frightened I did not know what

to do, for my uncle was to give me away; and if we were

beyond the hour we could not be married all day. But,

luckily, he came back again in ten minutes' time, and then

we all set out. However, I recollected afterwards, that if he

had been prevented going, the wedding need not be put off,

for Mr. Darcy might have done as well.'

 

'Mr. Darcy!' repeated Elizabeth, in utter amazement.

 

'Oh yes! he was to come there with Wickham, you know.

But gracious me! I quite forgot! I ought not to have said

a word about it. I promised them so faithfully! What will

Wickham say? It was to be such a secret!'

 

'If it was to be a secret,' said Jane, 'say not another word

on the subject. You may depend upon my seeking no

further.'

 

'Oh, certainly,' said Elizabeth, though burning with curi-

osity; 'we will ask you no questions.'

 

'Thank you,' said Lydia; 'for if you did, I should cer-

tainly tell you all, and then Wickham would be so angry.'

 

On such encouragement to ask, Elizabeth was forced to

put it out of her power by running away.

 

But to live in ignorance on such a point was impossible;

or at least it was impossible not to try for information. Mr.

Darcy had been at her sister's wedding. It was exactly a

scene, and exactly among people, where he had apparently

least to do, and least temptation to go. Conjectures as to

the meaning of it, rapid and wild, hurried into her brain,

but she was satisfied with none. Those that best pleased her,

as placing his conduct in the noblest light, seemed most im-

probable. She could not bear such suspense; and hastily

seizing a sheet of paper, wrote a short letter to her aunt,

to request an explanation of what Lydia had dropped, if it

were compatible with the secrecy which had been intended.

 

'You may readily comprehend,' she added, 'what my curi-

osity must be to know how a person unconnected with any

of us, and, comparatively speaking, a stranger to our family,

should have been amongst you at such a time. Pray write

 

 [447]

 
{{prhprp448.jpg}}

 

instantly, and let me understand it -- unless it is, for very

cogent reasons, to remain in the secrecy which Lydia seems

to think necessary; and then I must endeavour to be satis-

fied with ignorance.'

 

'Not that I shall though,' she added to herself, and she

finished the letter; 'and, my dear aunt, if you do not tell me

in an honourable manner. I shall certainly be reduced to

tricks and stratagems to find it out.'

 

Jane's delicate sense of honour would not allow her to

speak to Elizabeth privately of what Lydia had let fall;

Elizabeth was glad of it: -- till it appeared whether her in-

quiries would receive any satisfaction, she had rather be

without a confidante.

 

 [448]

 
{{prhprp449.jpg}}

 

 

 

 

Chapter LII

 

ELIZABETH had the satisfaction of receiving an an-

swer to her letter as soon as she possibly could. She

was no sooner in possession of it, than hurrying

into the little copse, where she was least likely to be inter-

rupted, she sat down on one of the benches, and prepared

to be happy; for the length of the letter convinced her that

it did not contain a denial.

 

Gracechurch Street, Sept. 6.

 

'My DEAR Niece -- I have just received your letter, and shall devote

this whole morning to answering it, as I foresee that a little writing

will not comprise what I have to tell you. I must confess myself

surprised by your application: I did not expect it from you. Don't

think me angry, however, for I only mean to let you know that I had

not imagined such inquiries to be necessary on your side. If you

do not choose to understand me, forgive my impertinence. Your

uncle is as much surprised as I am; and nothing but the belief of

your being a party concerned would have allowed him to act as he

has done. But if you are really innocent and ignorant, I must be

more explicit. On the very day of my coming home from Longbourn,

your uncle had a most unexpected visitor. Mr. Darcy called, and

was shut up with him several hours. It was all over before I

arrived; so my curiosity was not so dreadfully racked as yours seems

to have been. He came to tell Mr. Gardiner that he had found out

where your sister and Mr. Wickham were, and that he had seen

and talked with them both -- Wickham repeatedly, Lydia once. From

what I can collect, he left Derbyshire only one day after ourselves,

and came to town with the resolution of hunting for them. The

motive professed was his conviction of its being owing to himself

that Wickham's worthlessness had not been so well known as to

make it impossible for any young woman of character to love or

confide in him. He generously imputed the whole to his mistaken

pride, and confessed that he had before thought it beneath him to

lay his private actions open to the world. His character was to

speak for itself. He called it, therefore, his duty to step forward,

and endeavour to remedy an evil which had been brought on by

himself. If he had another motive, I am sure it would never disgrace

him. He had been some days in town before he was able to discover

them: but he had something to direct his search, which was more

than we had; and the consciousness of this was another reason for

his resolving to follow us. There is a lady, it seems, a Mrs. Younge,

 

 [449]

 
{{prhprp450.jpg}}

 

who was some time ago governess to Miss Darcy, and was dismissed

from her charge on some cause of disapprobation, though he did

not say what. She then took a large house in Edward Street, and

has since maintained herself by letting lodgings. This Mrs. Younge

was, he knew, intimately acquainted with Wickham; and he went to

her for intelligence of him, as soon as he got to town. But it was

two or three days before he could get from her what he wanted. She

would not betray her trust, I suppose, without bribery and corruption,

for she really did know where her friend was to be found. Wick-

ham, indeed, had gone to her on their first arrival in London, and

had she been able to receive them into her house, they would have

taken up their abode with her. At length, however, our kind friend

procured the wished-for direction. They were in -- Street. He

saw Wickham, and afterwards insisted on seeing Lydia. His first

object with her, he acknowledged had been to persuade her to quit

her present disgraceful situation, and return to her friends as soon

as they could be prevailed on to receive her, offering his assistance

as far as it would go. But he found Lydia absolutely resolved on

remaining where she was. She cared for none of her friends; she

wanted no help of his; she would not hear of leaving Wickham. She

was sure they should be married some time or other, and it did not

much signify when. Since such were her feelings, it only remained,

he thought, to secure and expedite a marriage, which, in his very

first conversation with Wickham, he easily learnt had never been his

design. He confessed himself obliged to leave the regiment on

account of some debts of honour which were very pressing; and

scrupled not to lay all the ill consequences of Lydia's flight on her

own folly alone. He meant to resign his commission immediately;

and as to his future situation, he could conjecture very little about

it. He must go somewhere, but he did not know where, and he

knew he should have nothing to live on. Mr. Darcy asked why he

did not marry your sister at once. Though Mr. Bennet was not

imagined to be very rich, he would have been able to do something

for him, and his situation must have been benefited by marriage.

But he found, in reply to this question, that Wickham still cherished

the hope of more effectually making his fortune by marriage, in some

other country. Under such circumstances, however, he was not likely

to be proof against the temptation of immediate relief. They met

several times, for there was much to be discussed. Wickham, of

course, wanted more than he could get; but at length was reduced

to be reasonable. Everything being settled between them, Mr.

Darcy's next step was to make your uncle acquainted with it, and

he first called in Gracechurch Street the evening before I came home.

But Mr. Gardiner could not be seen; and Mr. Darcy found, on

further inquiry, that your father was still with him, but would quit

town the next morning. He did not judge your father to be a person

whom he could so properly consult as your uncle, and therefore

readily postponed seeing him till after the departure of the former.

He did not leave his name, and till the next day it was only known

that a gentleman had called on business. On Saturday he came

 

 [450]

 
{{prhprp451.jpg}}

 

again. Your father was gone, your uncle at home, and, as I said

before, they had a great deal of talk together. They met again on

Sunday, and then I saw him too. It was not all settled before

Monday: as soon as it was, the express was sent off to Longbourn.

But our visitor was very obstinate. I fancy, Lizzy, that obstinacy

is the real defect of his character, after all. He has been accused

of many faults at different times; but this is the true one. Nothing

was to be done that he did not do himself; though I am sure (and

I do not speak it to be thanked, therefore say nothing about it)

your uncle would most readily have settled the whole. They battled

it together for a long time, which was more than either the gentleman

or lady concerned in it deserved. But at last your uncle was forced

to yield, and instead of being allowed to be of use to his niece, was

forced to put up with only having the probable credit of it, which

went sorely against the grain; and I really believe your letter this

morning gave him great pleasure, because it required an explanation

that would rob him of his borrowed feathers, and give the praise

where it was due. But, Lizzy, this must go no further than yourself,

or Jane at most. You know pretty well, I suppose, what has been

done for the young people. His debts are to be paid, amounting,

I believe, to considerably more than a thousand pounds, another

thousand in addition to her own settled upon her, and his commission

purchased. The reason why all this was to be done by him alone

was such as I have given above. It was owing to him, to his reserve

and want of proper consideration, that Wickham's character had

been so misunderstood, and consequently that he had been received

and noticed as he was. Perhaps there was some truth in this;

though I doubt whether his reserve, or anybody's reserve, can be

answerable for the event. But in spite of all this fine talking, my

dear Lizzy, you may rest perfectly assured that your uncle would

never have yielded, if we had not given him credit for another

interest in the affair. When all this was resolved on, he returned

again to his friends, who were still staying at Pemberley; but it

was agreed that he should be in London once more when the wedding

took place, and all money matters were then to receive the last finish.

I believe I have now told you everything. It is a relation which you

tell me is to give you great surprise; I hope at least it will not

afford you any displeasure. Lydia came to us, and Wickham had

constant admission to the house. He was exactly what he had been

when I knew him in Hertfordshire; but I would not tell you how

little I was satisfied with her behaviour while she stayed with us,

if I had not perceived, by Jane's letter last Wednesday, that her

conduct on coming home was exactly of a piece with it, and there-

fore what I now tell you can give you no fresh pain. I talked to

her repeatedly in the most serious manner, representing to her the

wickedness of what she had done, and all the unhappiness she had

brought on her family. If she heard me, it was by good luck, for

I am sure she did not listen. I was sometimes quite provoked; but

then I recollected my dear Elizabeth and Jane, and for their sakes

had patience with her. Mr. Darcy was punctual in his return, and.

 

 [451]

 
{{prhprp452.jpg}}

 

as Lydia informed you, attended the wedding. He dined with us

the next day, and was to leave town again on Wednesday or Thurs-

day. Will you be very angry with me, my dear Lizzy, if I take this

opportunity of saying (what I was never bold enough to say before)

how much I like him? His behaviour to us has, in every respect,

been as pleasing as when we were in Derbyshire. His understanding

and opinions all please me; he wants nothing but a little more

liveliness, and that, if he marry prudently, his wife may teach him.

I thought him very sly; he hardly ever mentioned your name. But

slyness seems the fashion. Pray forgive me, if I have been very

presuming, or at least do not punish me so far as to exclude me

from P. I shall never be quite happy till I have been all round the

park. A low phaeton with a nice little pair of ponies would be the

very thing. But I must write no more. The children have been

wanting me this half-hour. -- 'Yours very sincerely,

 

'M. Gardiner'

 

The contents of this letter threw Elizabeth into a flutter

of spirits, in which it was difficult to determine whether

pleasure or pain bore the greatest share. The vague and

unsettled suspicions which uncertainty had produced of what

Mr. Darcy might have been doing to forward her sister's

match, which she had feared to encourage, as an exertion

of goodness too great to be probable, and at the same time

dreaded to be just, from the pain of obligation, were proved

beyond their greatest extent to be true! He had followed

them purposely to town, he had taken on himself all the

trouble and mortification attendant on such a research; in

which supplication had been necessary to a woman whom

he must abominate and despise, and where he was reduced

to meet, frequently meet, reason with, persuade, and finally

bribe, the man whom he always most wished to avoid, and

whose very name it was punishment to him to pronounce.

He had done all this for a girl whom he could neither

regard nor esteem. Her heart did whisper that he had

done it for her. But it was a hope shortly checked by

other considerations; and she soon felt that even her vanity

was insufficient, when required to depend on his affection

for her, for a woman who had already refused him, as

able to overcome a sentiment so natural as abhorrence

against relationship with Wickham. Brother-in-law of

Wickham! Every kind of pride must revolt from the con-

nection. He had, to be sure, done much. She was ashamed

to think how much. But he had given a reason for his

 

 [452]

 
{{prhprp453.jpg}}

 

interference, which asked no extraordinary stretch of belief.

It was reasonable that he should feel he had been wrong;

he had liberality, and he had the means of exercising it;

and though she would not place herself as his principal

inducement, she could perhaps believe that remaining par-

tiality for her might assist his endeavours in a cause where

her peace of mind must be materially concerned. It was

painful, exceedingly painful, to know that they were under

obligations to a person who could never receive a return.

They owed the restoration of Lydia, her character, every-

thing, to him. Oh how heartily did she grieve over every

ungracious sensation she had ever encouraged, every saucy

speech she had ever directed towards him. For herself she

was humbled; but she was proud of him, -- proud that in a

cause of compassion and honour he had been able to get the

better of himself. She read over her aunt's commendation

of him again and again. It was hardly enough; but it

pleased her. She was even sensible of some pleasure,

though mixed with regret, on finding how steadfastly both

she and her uncle had been persuaded that affection and

confidence subsisted between Mr. Darcy and herself.

 

She was roused from her seat and her reflections by some

one's approach; and, before she could strike into another

path, she was overtaken by Wickham.

 

'I am afraid I interrupt your solitary ramble, my dear

sister?' said he, as he joined her.

 

'You certainly do,' she replied with a smile; 'but it does

not follow that the interruption must be unwelcome.'

 

'I should be sorry, indeed, if it were. We were always

good friends, and now we are better.'

 

'True. Are the others coming out?'

 

'I do not know. Mrs. Bennet and Lydia are going in

the carriage to Meryton. And so, my dear sister, I find,

from our uncle and aunt, that you have actually seen

Pemberley.'

 

She replied in the affirmative.

 

'I almost envy you the pleasure, and yet I believe it

would be too much for me, or else I could take it in my

way to Newcastle. And you saw the old housekeeper.

I suppose? Poor Reynolds, she was always very fond

 

 [453]

 
{{prhprp454.jpg}}

 

of me. But of course she did not mention my name to

you.'

 

'Yes, she did.'

 

'And what did she say?'

 

'That you were gone into the army, and she was afraid

had -- not turned out well. At such a distance as that, you

know, things are strangely misrepresented.'

 

'Certainly,' he replied, biting his lips. Elizabeth hoped

she had silenced him; but he soon afterwards said, --

 

'I was surprised to see Darcy in town last month. We

passed each other several times. I wonder what he can be

doing there.'

 

'Perhaps preparing for his marriage with Miss de Bourgh,'

said Elizabeth. 'It must be something particular to take him

there at this time of year.'

 

'Undoubtedly. Did you see him while you were at

Lambton? I thought I understood from the Gardiners that

you had.'

 

'Yes; he introduced us to his sister.'

 

'And do you like her?'

 

'Very much.'

 

'I have heard, indeed, that she is uncommonly improved

within this year or two. When I last saw her, she was not

very promising. I am very glad you liked her. I hope she

will turn out well.'

 

'I daresay she will; she has got over the most trying age.'

 

'Did you go by the village of Kympton?'

 

'I do not recollect that we did.'

 

'I mention it because it is the living which I ought to have

had. A must delightful place! Excellent parsonage house!

It would have suited me in every respect.'

 

'How should you have liked making sermons?'

 

'Exceedingly well. I should have considered it as part

of my duty, and the exertion would soon have been noth-

ing. One ought not to repine; but, to be sure, it would

have been such a thing for me! The quiet, the retire-

ment of such a life, would have answered all my ideas

of happiness! But it was not to be. Did you ever

hear Darcy mention the circumstance when you were in

Kent?'

 

 [454]

 
{{prhprp455.jpg}}

 

 

'I have heard from authority, which I thought as good,

that it was left you conditionally only, and at the will of

the present patron.'

 

'You have! Yes, there was something in that; I told you

so from the first, you may remember.'

 

'I did hear, too, that there was a time when sermon-

making was not so palatable to you as it seems to be at

present; that you actually declared your resolution of never

taking orders, and that the business had been compromised

accordingly.'

 

'You did! and it was not wholly without foundation. You

may remember what I told you on that point, when first we

talked of it.'

 

They were now almost at the door of the house, for she

had walked fast to get rid of him; and unwilling, for her

sister's sake, to provoke him, she only said in reply, with a

good-humoured smile, --

 

'Come, Mr. Wickham, we are brother and sister, you

know. Do not let us quarrel about the past. In future, I

hope we shall be always of one mind.'

 

She held out her hand: he kissed it with affectionate

gallantry, though he hardly knew how to look, and they

entered the house.

 

 [455]

 
{{prhprp456.jpg}}

 

 

 

 

Chapter LIII

 

MR. WICKHAM was so perfectly satisfied with this

conversation, that he never again distressed him-

self, or provoked his dear sister Elizabeth, by intro-

ducing the subject of it; and she was pleased to find that

she had said enough to keep him quiet.

 

The day of his and Lydia's departure soon came, and

Mrs. Bennet was forced to submit to a separation, which,

as her husband by no means entered into her scheme of

their all going to Newcastle, was likely to continue at least

a twelvemonth.

 

'Oh, my dear Lydia,' she cried, 'when shall we meet

again?'

 

'O Lord! I don't know. Not these two or three years,

perhaps.'

 

'Write to me very often, my dear.'

 

'As often as I can. But you know married women have

never much time for writing. My sisters may write to vie.

They will have nothing else to do.'

 

Mr. Wickham's adieus were much more affectionate than

his wife's. He smiled, looked handsome, and said many

pretty things.

 

'He is as fine a fellow,' said Mr. Bennet, as soon as they

were out of the house, 'as ever I saw. He simpers, and

smirks, and makes love to us all. I am prodigiously proud

of him. I defy even Sir William Lucas himself to produce a

more valuable son-in-law.'

 

The loss of her daughter made Mrs. Bennet very dull for

several days.

 

'I often think,' said she, 'that there is nothing so bad as

parting with one's friends. One seems so forlorn without

them.'

 

'This is the consequence, you see, madam, of marrying

a daughter,' said Elizabeth. 'It must make you better satis-

fied that your other four are single.'

 

 [456]

 
{{prhprp457.jpg}}

 

 

'It is no such thing. Lydia does not leave me because

she is married; but only because her husband's regiment

happens to be so far off. If that had been nearer, she would

not have gone so soon.'

 

But the spiritless condition which this event threw her

into was shortly relieved, and her mind opened again to the

agitation of hope, by an article of news, which then began

to be in circulation. The housekeeper at Netherfield had

received orders to prepare for the arrival of her master, who

was coming down in a day or two, to shoot there for several

weeks. Mrs. Bennet was quite in the fidgets. She looked

at Jane, and smiled, and shook her head, by turns.

 

'Well, well, and so Mr. Bingley is coming down, sister,'

(for Mrs. Philips first brought her the news). 'Well, so

much the better. Not that I care about it, though. He is

nothing to us, you know, and I am sure I never want to see

him again. But, however, he is very welcome to come to

Netherfield, if he likes it. And who knows what may

happen? But that is nothing to us. You know, sister, we

agreed long ago never to mention a word about it. And so,

it is quite certain he is coming?'

 

'You may depend on it,' replied the other, 'for Mrs.

Nichols was in Meryton last night: I saw her passing by,

and went out myself on purpose to know the truth of it;

and she told me that it was certainly true. He comes down

on Thursday, at the latest, very likely on Wednesday. She

was going to the butcher's, she told me, on purpose to order

in some meat on Wednesday, and she has got three couple

of ducks just fit to be killed.'

 

Miss Bennet had not been able to hear of his coming

without changing colour. It was many months since she

had mentioned his name to Elizabeth; but now, as soon as

they were alone together, she said, --

 

'I saw you look at me to-day, Lizzy, when my aunt told

us of the present report; and I know I appeared distressed;

but don't imagine it was from any silly cause. I was only

confused for the moment, because I felt that I should be

looked at. I do assure you that the news does not affect

me either with pleasure or pain. I am glad of one thing,

that he comes alone; because we shall sec the less of him.

 

 [457]

 
{{prhprp458.jpg}}

 

 

Not that I am afraid of myself, but I dread other people's

remarks.'

 

Elizabeth did not know what to make of it. Had she not

seen him in Derbyshire, she might have supposed him

capable of coming there with no other view than what was

acknowledged; but she still thought him partial to Jane,

and she wavered as to the greater probability of his com-

ing there with his friend's permission, or being bold enough

to come without it.

 

'Yet it is hard,' she sometimes thought, 'that this poor

man cannot come to a house, which he has legally hired,

without raising all this speculation! I will leave him to him-

self.'

 

In spite of what her sister declared, and really believed

to be her feelings, in the expectation of his arrival, Elizabeth

could easily perceive that her spirits were affected by it.

They were more disturbed, more unequal, than she had often

seen them.

 

The subject which had been so warmly canvassed between

their parents, about a twelvemonth ago, was now brought

forward again.

 

'As soon as ever Mr. Bingley comes, my dear,' said Mrs.

Bennet, 'you will wait on him of course.'

 

'No, no. You forced me into visiting him last year, and

promised, if I went to see him, he should marry one of my

daughters. But it ended in nothing, and I will not be sent

on a fool's errand again.'

 

His wife represented to him how absolutely necessary such

an attention would be from all the neighbouring gentle-

men, on his returning to Netherfield.

 

'Tis an etiquette I despise,' said he. 'If he wants our

society, let him seek it. He knows where we live. I will

not spend my hours in running after my neighbours every

time they go away and come back again.'

 

'Well, all I know is, that it will be abominably rude if you

do not wait on him. But, however, that shan't prevent my

asking him to dine here, I am determined. We must have

Mrs. Long and the Gouldings soon. That will make thirteen

with ourselves, so there will be just room at the table for

him.'

 

 [458]

 
{{prhprp459.jpg}}

 

 

Consoled by this resolution, she was the better able to

bear her husband's incivility; though it was very mortifying

to know that her neighbours might all see Mr. Bingley in

consequence of it before they did. As the day of his arrival

drew near, --

 

'I begin to be sorry that he comes at all,' said Jane to

her sister. 'It would be nothing; I could seem him with

perfect indifference; but I can hardly bear to hear it thus

perpetually talked off. My mother means well; but she does

not know, no one can know, how much I suffer from what

she says. Happy shall I be when his stay at Netherfield is

over!'

 

'I wish I could say anything to comfort you,' replied

Elizabeth; 'but it is wholly out of my power. You must

feel it; and the usual satisfaction of preaching patience to a

sufferer is denied me, because you have always so much.'

 

Mr. Bingley arrived. Mrs. Bennet, through the assist-

ance of servants, contrived to have the earliest tidings of it,

that the period of anxiety and fretfulness on her side might

be as long as it could. She counted the days that must

intervene before their invitation could be sent; hopeless of

seeing him before. But on the third morning after his

arrival in Hertfordshire, she saw him from her dressing-

room window enter the paddock, and ride towards the

house.

 

Her daughters were eagerly called to partake of her joy.

Jane resolutely kept her place at the table; but Elizabeth,

to satisfy her mother, went to the window -- she looked -- she

saw Mr. Darcy with him, and sat down again by her sister.

 

'There is a gentleman with him, mamma,' said Kitty;

'who can it be?'

 

'Some acquaintance or other, my dear, I suppose; I am

sure I do not know.'

 

'La!' replied Kitty, 'it looks just like that man that used

to be with him before. Mr. what's his name -- that tall, proud

man.'

 

'Good gracious! Mr. Darcy! -- and so it does, I vow.

Well, any friend of Mr. Bingley's will always be welcome

here to be sure; but else I must say that I hate the very

sight of him.'

 

 [459]

 
{{prhprp460.jpg}}

 

 

Jane looked at Elizabeth with surprise and concern. She

knew but little of their meeting in Derbyshire, and therefore

felt for the awkwardness which must attend her sister, in

seeing him almost for the first time after receiving his

explanatory letter. Both sisters were uncomfortable enough.

Each felt for the other, and of course for themselves; and

their mother talked on of her dislike of Mr. Darcy, and her

resolution to be civil to him only as Mr. Bingley's friend,

without being heard by either of them. But Elizabeth had

sources of uneasiness which could not be suspected by Jane,

to whom she had never yet had courage to show Mrs.

Gardiner's letter, or to relate her own change of sentiment

towards him.

 

To Jane he could be only a man whose proposals she

had refused, and whose merits she had undervalued;

but to her own more extensive information he was the

person to whom the whole family were indebted for the

first of benefits, and whom she regarded herself with an

interest, if not quite so tender, at least as reasonable and

just, as what Jane felt for Bingley. Her astonishment at

his coming -- at his coming to Netherfield, to Longbourn,

and voluntarily seeking her again, was almost equal to what

she had known on first witnessing his altered behaviour in

Derbyshire.

 

The colour which had been driven from her face returned

for half a minute with an additional glow, and a smile of

delight added lustre to her eyes, as she thought for that

space of time that his affection and wishes must still be

unshaken; but she would not be secure.

 

'Let me first see how he behaves,' said she; 'it will then

be early enough for expectation.'

 

She sat intently at work, striving to be composed, and

without daring to lift up her eyes, till anxious curiosity

carried them to the face of her sister as the servant was

approaching the door. Jane looked a little paler than usual,

but more sedate than Elizabeth had expected. On the

gentlemen's appearing, her colour increased; yet she received

them with tolerable ease, and with a propriety of behaviour

equally free from any symptom of resentment, or any unnec-

essary complaisance.

 

 [460]

 
{{prhprp461.jpg}}

 

 

Elizabeth said as little to either as civility would allow,

and sat down again to her work, with an eagerness which

it did not often command. She had ventured only one glance

at Darcy. He looked serious as usual; and she thought,

more as he had been used to look in Hertfordshire, than

as she had seen him at Pemberley. But, perhaps, he could

not in her mother's presence be what he was before her

uncle and aunt. It was a painful, but not an improbable,

conjecture.

 

Bingley she had likewise seen for an instant, and in that

short period saw him looking both pleased and embarrassed.

He was received by Mrs. Bennet with a degree of civility

which made her two daughters ashamed, especially when

contrasted with the cold and ceremonious politeness of her

courtesy and address of his friend.

 

Elizabeth particularly, who knew that her mother owed

to the latter the preservation of her favourite daughter from

irremediable infamy, was hurt and distressed to a most pain-

ful degree by a distinction so ill applied.

 

Darcy, after inquiring of her how Mr. and Mrs. Gardiner

did, a question which she could not answer without con-

fusion, said scarcely anything. He was not seated by her:

perhaps that was the reason of his silence; but it had not

been so in Derbyshire. There he had talked to her friends

when he could not to herself. But now several minutes

elapsed, without bringing the sound of his voice; and when

occasionally, unable to resist the impulse of curiosity, she

raised her eyes to his face, she as often found him looking

at Jane as at herself, and frequently on no object but the

ground. More thought fulness and less anxiety to please,

than when they last met, were plainly expressed. She was

disappointed, and angry with herself for being so.

 

'Could I expect it to be otherwise?' said she. 'Yet why

did he come?'

 

She was in no humour for conversation with any one but

himself; and to him she had hardly courage to speak.

 

She inquired after his sister, but could do no more.

 

'It is a long time, Mr. Bingley, since you went away,' said

Mrs. Bennet.

 

He readily agreed to it.

 

 [461]

 
{{prhprp462.jpg}}

 

 

'I began to be afraid you would never come back again.

People did say, you meant to quit the place entirely at

Michaelmas; but, however, I hope it is not true. A great

many changes have happened in the neighbourhood since

you went away. Miss Lucas is married and settled: and one

of my own daughters. I suppose you have heard of it;

indeed, you must have seen it in the papers. In was in the

Times and the Courier, I know; though it was not put in as

it ought to be. It was only said, 'Lately, George Wickham,

Esq., to Miss Lydia Bennet,' without there being a syllable

said of her father, or the place where she lived, or anything.

It was my brother Gardiner's drawing up, too, and I wonder

how he came to make such an awkward business of it. Did

you see it?'

 

Bingley replied that he did, and made his congratulations.

Elizabeth dared not lift up her eyes. How Mr. Darcy looked,

therefore, she could not tell.

 

'It is a delightful thing, to be sure, to have a daughter well

married,' continued her mother; 'but at the same time, Mr.

Bingley, it is very hard to have her taken away from me.

They are gone down to Newcastle, a place quite northward it

seems, and there they are to stay, I do not know how long.

His regiment is there; for I suppose you have heard of his

leaving the shire, and of his being gone into the Regu-

lars. Thank heaven! he has some friends, though, perhaps,

not so many as he deserves.'

 

Elizabeth, who knew this to be levelled at Mr. Darcy, was

in such misery of shame that she could hardly keep her seat.

It drew from her, however, the exertion of speaking, which

nothing else had so effectually done before; and she asked

Bingley whether he meant to make any stay in the country

at present. A few weeks, he believed.

 

'When you have killed all your own birds, Mr. Bingley,'

said her mother, 'I beg you will come here and shoot as many

as you please on Mr. Bennet's manor. I am sure he will be

vastly happy to oblige you, and will save all the best of the

coveys for you.'

 

Elizabeth's misery increased at such unnecessary, such

officious attention! Were the same fair prospect to arise at

present, as had flattered them a year ago, everything, she was

 

 [462]

 
{{prhprp463.jpg}}

 

persuaded, would be hastening to the same vexatious conclu-

sion. At that instant she felt that years of happiness could

not make Jane or herself amends for moments of such painful

confusion.

 

'The first wish of my heart,' said she to herself, 'is never

more to be in company with either of them. Their society

can afford no pleasure that will atone for such wretchedness

as this! Let me never see either one or the other again!'

 

Yet the misery, for which years of happiness were to offer

no compensation, received soon afterwards material relief,

from observing how much the beauty of her sister rekindled

the admiration of her former lover. When first he came in,

he had spoken to her but little; but every five minutes seemed

to be giving her more of his attention. He found her as

handsome as she had been last year; as good-natured, and as

unaffected, though not quite so chatty. Jane was anxious that

no difference should be perceived in her at all, and was really

persuaded that she talked as much as ever; but her mind was

so busily engaged, that she did not always know when she

was silent.

 

When the gentlemen rose to go away, Mrs. Bennet was

mindful of her intended civility, and they were invited and

engaged to dine at Longbourn in a few days' time.

 

'You are quite a visit in my debt, Mr. Bingley,' she added;

'for when you went to town last winter, you promised to take

a family dinner with us as soon as you returned. I have not

forgot, you see; and I assure you I was very much dis-

appointed that you did not come back and keep your engage-

ment.'

 

Bingley looked a little silly at this reflection, and said

something of his concern at having been prevented by busi-

ness. They then went away.

 

Mrs. Bennet had been strongly inclined to ask them to stay

and dine there that day; but, though she always kept a very

good table, she did not think anything less than two courses

could be good enough for a man on whom she had such

anxious designs, or satisfy the appetite and pride of one who

had ten thousand a year.

 

 [463]

 
{{prhprp464.jpg}}

 

 

 

 

Chapter LIV

 

AS soon as they were gone, Elizabeth walked out to re-

cover her spirits; or, in other words, to dwell without

interruption on those subjects that must deaden them

more. Mr. Darcy's behaviour astonished and vexed her.

 

'Why, if he came only to be silent, grave, and indifferent,'

said she, 'did he come at all?'

 

She could settle it in no way at all that gave her pleasure.

 

'He could be still amiable, still pleasing, to my uncle and

aunt, when he was in town; and why not to me? If he fears

me, why come hither? If he no longer cares for me, why

silent? Teasing, teasing man! I will think no more about

him.'

 

Her resolution was for a short time involuntarily kept by

the approach of her sister, who joined her with a cheerful

look which showed her better satisfied with their visitors than

Elizabeth.

 

'Now,' said she, 'that this first meeting is over, I feel

perfectly easy. I know my own strength, and I shall never

be embarrassed again by his coming. I am glad he dines

here on Tuesday. It will then be publicly seen that on both

sides we meet only as common and indifferent acquaintance.'

 

'Yes, very indifferent indeed,' said Elizabeth, laughingly.

'Oh, Jane! take care.'

 

'My dear Lizzy, you cannot think me so weak as to be in

danger now.'

 

'I think you are in very great danger of making him as

much in love with you as ever.'

 

They did not see the gentlemen again till Tuesday; and

Mrs. Bennet, in the meanwhile, was giving way to all the

happy schemes which the good-humour and common polite-

ness of Bingley, in half an hour's visit, had revived.

 

On Tuesday there was a large party assembled at Long-

bourn; and the two who were most anxiously expected, to

the credit of their punctuality as sportsmen, were in very

 

 [464]

 
{{prhprp465.jpg}}

 

good time. When they repaired to the dining-room. Elizabeth

eagerly watched to see whether Bingley would take the place

which, in all their former parties, had belonged to him, by

her sister. Her prudent mother, occupied by the same ideas,

forbore to invite him to sit by herself. On entering the room,

he seemed to hesitate: but Jane happened to look round,

and happened to smile: it was decided. He placed himself

by her.

 

Elizabeth, with a triumphant sensation, looked towards his

friend. He bore it with noble indifference; and she would

have imagined that Bingley had received his sanction to be

happy, had she not seen his eyes likewise turned towards Mr.

Darcy, with an expression of half-laughing alarm.

 

His behaviour to her sister was such during dinner-time

as showed an admiration of her, which, though more guarded

than formerly, persuaded Elizabeth that, if left wholly to

himself, Jane's happiness, and his own, would be speedily

secured. Though she dared not depend upon the consequence,

she yet received pleasure from observing his behaviour. It

gave her all the animation that her spirits could boast; for

she was in no cheerful humour. Mr. Darcy was almost as

far from her as the table could divide them. He was on one

side of her mother. She knew how little such a situation

would give pleasure to either, or make either appear to

advantage. She was not near enough to hear any of their

discourse; but she could see how seldom they spoke to each

other, and how formal and cold was their manner whenever

they did. Her mother's ungraciousness made the sense of

what they owed him more painful to Elizabeth's mind; and

she would, at times, have given anything to be privileged to

tell him that his kindness was neither unknown nor unfelt by

the whole of the family.

 

She was in hopes that the evening would afford some

opportunity of bringing them together; that the whole of the

visit would not pass away without enabling them to enter into

something more of conversation than the mere ceremonious

salutation attending his entrance. Anxious and uneasy, the

period which passed in the drawing-room before the gentle-

men came was wearisome and dull to a degree that almost

made her uncivil. She looked forward to their entrance as

 

 [465]

 
{{prhprp466.jpg}}

 

the point on which all her chance of pleasure for the evening

must depend.

 

'If he does not come to me, then,' said she, 'I shall give

him up for ever.'

 

The gentlemen came; and she thought he looked as if he

would have answered her hopes; but, alas! the ladies had

crowded round the table, where Miss Bennet was making

tea and Elizabeth pouring out the coffee, in so close a con-

federacy, that there was not a single vacancy near her which

would admit of a chair. And on the gentlemen's approaching,

one of the girls moved closer to her than ever, and said, in

a whisper, --

 

'The men shan't come and part us, I am determined. We

want none of them; do we?'

 

Darcy had walked away to another part of the room. She

followed him with her eyes, envied every one to whom he

spoke, had scarcely patience enough to help anybody to

coffee, and then was enraged against herself for being so

silly!

 

'A man who has once been refused! How could I ever

be foolish enough to expect a renewal of his love? Is there

one among the sex who would not protest against such a

weakness as a second proposal to the same woman? There

is no indignity so abhorrent to their feelings.'

 

She was a little revived, however, by his bringing back his

coffee-cup himself; and she seized the opportunity of say-

ing.--

 

'Is your sister at Pemberley still?'

 

'Yes; she will remain there till Christmas.'

 

'And quite alone? Have all her friends left her?'

 

'Mrs. Annesley is with her. The others have been gone

on to Scarborough these three weeks.'

 

She could think of nothing more to say; but if he wished

to converse with her, he might have better success. He

stood by her, however, for some minutes, in silence; and, at

last, on the young lady's whispering to Elizabeth again, he

walked away.

 

When the tea things were removed, and the card-tables

placed, the ladies all rose, and Elizabeth was then hoping

to be soon joined by him, when all her views were over-

 

 [466]

 
{{prhprp467.jpg}}

 

thrown by seeing him fall a victim to her mother's rapacity

for whist-players, and in a few moments after seated with the

rest of the party. She now lost every expectation of pleas-

ure. They were confined for the evening at different tables,

and she had nothing to hope, but that his eyes were so often

turned towards her side of the room as to make him play as

unsuccessfully as herself.

 

Mrs. Bennet had designed to keep the two Netherfield

gentlemen to supper: but their carriage was, unluckily,

ordered before any of the others, and she had no opportunity

of detaining them.

 

'Well, girls,' said she, as soon as they were left to them-

selves, 'what say you to the day? I think everything has

passed off uncommonly well, I assure you. The dinner was

as well dressed as any I ever saw. The venison was roasted

to a turn -- and everybody said they never saw so fat a

haunch. The soup was fifty times better than what we had

at the Lucases' last week; and even Mr. Darcy acknowledged

that the partridges were remarkably well done; and I suppose

he has two or three French cooks at least. And, my dear

Jane, I never saw you look in greater beauty. Mrs. Long

said so too, for I asked her whether you did not. And what

do you think she said besides? 'Ah! Mrs. Bennet, we shall

have her at Netherfield at last!' She did, indeed. I do

think Mrs. Long is as good a creature as ever lived -- and her

nieces are very pretty behaved girls, and not at all handsome:

I like them prodigiously.'

 

Mrs. Bennet, in short, was in very great spirits: she had

seen enough of Bingley's behaviour to Jane to be convinced

that she would get him at last: and her expectations of

advantage to her family, when in a happy humour, were so

far beyond reason, that she was quite disappointed at not

seeing him there again the next day to make his proposals.

 

'It has been a very agreeable day,' said Miss Bennet to

Elizabeth. 'The party seemed so well selected, so suitable

one with the other. I hope we may often meet again.'

 

Elizabeth smiled.

 

'Lizzy, you must not do so. You must not suspect me.

It mortifies me. I assure you that I have now learnt to enjoy

his conversation as an agreeable and sensible young man

 

 [467]

 
{{prhprp468.jpg}}

 

without having a wish beyond it. I am perfectly satisfied,

from what his manners now are, that he never had any de-

sign of engaging my affection. It is only that he is blessed

with greater sweetness of address, and a stronger desire of

generally pleasing, than any other man.'

 

'You are very cruel,' said her sister; 'you will not let me

smile, and are provoking me to it every moment.'

 

'How hard it is in some cases to be believed! And how

impossible in others! But why should you wish to persuade

me that I feel more than I acknowledge?'

 

'That is a question which I hardly know how to answer.

We all love to instruct, though we can teach only what is not

worth knowing. Forgive me; and if you persist in indiffer-

ence, do not make me your confidante.'

 

 [468]

 
{{prhprp469.jpg}}

 

 

 

 

Chapter LV

 

A FEW days after this visit, Mr. Bingley called again,

and alone. His friend had left him that morning for

London, but was to return home in ten days' time.

He sat with them above an hour, and was in remarkably good

spirits. Mrs. Bennet invited him to dine with them; but,

with many expressions of concern, he confessed himself en-

gaged elsewhere.

 

'Next time you call,' said she, 'I hope we shall be more

lucky.'

 

He should be particularly happy at any time, etc.;

and if she would give him leave, would take an early oppor-

tunity of waiting on them.

 

'Can you come to-morrow?'

 

Yes, he had no engagement at all for to-morrow; and her

invitation was accepted with alacrity.

 

He came, and in such very good time that the ladies were

none of them dressed. In ran Mrs. Bennet to her daughter's

room, in her dressing gown, and with her hair half-finished,

crying out, --

 

'My dear Jane, make haste and hurry down. He is come --

Mr. Bingley is come. He is, indeed. Make haste, make

haste. Here, Sarah, come to Miss Bennet this moment, and

help her on with her gown. Never mind Miss Lizzy's hair.'

 

'We will be down as soon as we can,' said Jane, 'but I

daresay Kitty is forwarder than either of us, for she went

upstairs half an hour ago.'

 

'Oh! hang Kitty! what has she to do with it? Come, be

quick, be quick! where is your sash, my dear?'

 

But when her mother was gone. Jane would not be pre-

vailed on to go down without one of her sisters.

 

The same anxiety to get them by themselves was visible

again in the evening. After tea. Mr. Bennet retired to the

library, as was his custom, and Mary went upstairs to her

instrument. Two obstacles of the five being thus removed,

 

 [469]

 
{{prhprp470.jpg}}

 

Mrs. Bennet sat looking and winking at Elizabeth and Cath-

erine for a considerable time, without making any impres-

sion on them. Elizabeth would not observe her; and when

at last Kitty did, she very innocently said, 'What is the mat-

ter, mamma? What do you keep winking at me for? What

am I to do?'

 

'Nothing, child, nothing. I did not wink at you.' She then

sat still five minutes longer; but, unable to waste such a

precious occasion, she suddenly got up, and saying to Kitty. --

 

'Come here, my love, I want to speak to you,' took her out

of the room, Jane instantly gave a look at Elizabeth which

spoke her distress at such premeditation, and her entreaty

that she would not give in to it. In a few minutes, Mrs.

Bennet half opened the door and called out, --

 

'Lizzy, my dear, I want to speak with you.'

 

Elizabeth was forced to go.

 

'We may as well leave them by themselves, you know,' said

her mother as soon as she was in the hall. 'Kitty and I are

going upstairs to sit in my dressing-room.'

 

Elizabeth made no attempt to reason with her mother, but

remained quietly in the hall till she and Kitty were out of

sight, then returned into the drawing-room.

 

Mrs. Bennet's schemes for this day were ineffectual. Bing-

ley was everything that was charming, except the professed

lover of her daughter. His ease and cheerfulness rendered

him a most agreeable addition to their evening party; and

he bore with the ill-judged officiousness of the mother, and

heard all her silly remarks with a forbearance and command

of countenance particularly grateful to the daughter.

 

He scarcely needed an invitation to stay to supper; and

before he went away an engagement was formed, chiefly

through his own and Mrs. Bennet's means, for his coming

next morning to shoot with her husband.

 

After this day, Jane said no more of her indifference.

Not a word passed between the sisters concerning Bingley;

but Elizabeth went to bed in the happy belief that all must

speedily be concluded, unless Mr. Darcy returned within the

stated time. Seriously, however, she felt tolerably persuaded

that all this must have taken place with that gentleman's con-

currence.

 

 [470]

 
{{prhprp471.jpg}}

 

 

Bingley was punctual to his appointment; and he and Mr.

Bennet spent the morning together, as had been agreed on.

The latter was much more agreeable than his companion

expected. There was nothing of presumption or folly in

Bingley that could provoke his ridicule, or disgust him into

silence; and he was more communicative, and less eccentric,

than the other had ever seen him. Bingley of course re-

turned with him to dinner; and in the evening Mrs. Bennet's

invention was again at work to get everybody away from

him and her daughter. Elizabeth, who had a letter to write,

went into the breakfast-room for that purpose soon after

tea; for as the others were all going to sit down to cards,

she could not be wanted to counteract her mother's schemes.

 

But on her returning to the drawing-room, when her letter

was finished, she saw, to her infinite surprise, there was rea-

son to fear that her mother had been too ingenious for her.

On opening the door, she perceived her sister and Bingley

standing together over the hearth, as if engaged in earnest

conversation; and had this led to no suspicion, the faces of

both, as they hastily turned round and moved away from each

other, would have told it all. Their situation was awkward

enough; but hers she thought was still worse. Not a syllable

was uttered by either; and Elizabeth was on the point of go-

ing away again, when Bingley, who as well as the other had

sat down, suddenly rose, and, whispering a few words to her

sister, ran out of the room.

 

Jane could have no reserves from Elizabeth, where confi-

dence would give pleasure; and instantly embracing her

acknowledged, with the liveliest emotion, that she was the

happiest creature in the world.

 

'Tis too much!' she added, 'by far too much. I do not

deserve it. Oh, why is not everybody as happy?'

 

Elizabeth's congratulations were given with a sincerity, a

warmth, a delight, which words could but poorly express.

Every sentence of kindness was a fresh source of happiness

to Jane. But she would not allow herself to stay with her

sister, or say half that remained to be said, for the present.

 

'I must go instantly to my mother,' she cried. 'I would

not on any account trifle with her affectionate solicitude, or

allow her to hear it from any one but myself. He is gone to

 

 [471]

 
{{prhprp472.jpg}}

 

my father already. Oh, Lizzy, to know that what I have to

relate will give such pleasure to all my dear family; how

shall I bear so much happiness?'

 

She then hastened away to her mother, who had purposely

broken up the card party, and was sitting upstairs with Kitty.

 

Elizabeth, who was left by herself, now smiled at the rapid-

ity and ease with which an affair was finally settled, that had

given them so many previous months of surprise and vexa-

tion.

 

'And this,' said she, 'is the end of all his friend's anxious

circumspection! of all his sister's falsehood and contrivance!

the happiest, wisest, and most reasonable end!'

 

In a few minutes she was joined by Bingley, whose con-

ference with her father had been short and to the purpose.

 

'Where is your sister?' said he hastily, as he opened the

door.

 

'With my mother upstairs. She will be down in a moment,

I daresay.'

 

He then shut the door, and, coming up to her, claimed the

good wishes and affection of a sister. Elizabeth honestly and

heartily expressed her delight in the prospect of their rela-

tionship. They shook hands with great cordiality; and then,

till her sister came down, she had to listen to all he had to

say of his own happiness, and of Jane's perfections; and in

spite of his being a lover, Elizabeth really believed all his

expectations of felicity to be rationally founded, because

they had for basis the excellent understanding and super-

excellent disposition of Jane, and a general similarity of feel-

ing and taste between her and himself.

 

It was an evening of no common delight to them all; the

satisfaction of Miss Bennet's mind gave such a glow of sweet

animation to her face, as made her look handsomer than

ever. Kitty simpered and smiled, and hoped her turn was

coming soon. Mrs. Bennet could not give her consent, or

speak her approbation, in terms warm enough to satisfy her

feelings, though she talked to Bingley of nothing else for half

an hour; and when Mr. Bennet joined them at supper, his

voice and manner plainly showed how really happy he was.

 

Not a word, however, passed his lips in allusion to it, till

their visitor took his leave for the night, but as soon as he

was gone, he turned to his daughter and said, --

 

 [472]

 
{{prhprp473.jpg}}

 

 

'Jane. I congratulate you. You will be a very happy

woman.'

 

Jane went to him instantly, kissed him, and thanked him

for his goodness.

 

'You are a good girl,' he replied, 'and I have great pleasure

in thinking you will be so happily settled. I have not a doubt

of your doing very well together. Your tempers are by no

means unlike. You are each of you so complying, that noth-

ing will ever be resolved on; so easy, that every servant will

cheat you; and so generous, that you will always exceed your

income.'

 

'I hope not so. Imprudence or thoughtlessness in money

matters would be unpardonable in me.'

 

'Exceed their income! My dear Mr. Bennet,' cried his

wife, 'what are you talking of? Why, he has four or five

thousand a year, and very likely more.' Then addressing her

daughter. 'Oh, my dear, dear Jane, I am so happy! I am

sure I shan't get a wink of sleep all night. I knew how it

would be. I always said it must be so, at last. I was sure

you could not be so beautiful for nothing! I remember, as

soon as ever I saw him, when he first came into Hertford-

shire last year, I thought how likely it was that you should

come together. Oh, he is the handsomest young man that

ever was seen!'

 

Wickham, Lydia, were all forgotten. Jane was beyond

competition her favourite child. At that moment she cared

for no other. Her younger sisters soon began to make inter-

est with her for objects of happiness which she might in

future be able to dispense.

 

Mary petitioned for the use of the library at Netherfield;

and Kitty begged very hard for a few balls there every

winter.

 

Bingley, from this time, was of course a daily visitor at

Longbourn; coming frequently before breakfast, and always

remaining till after supper; unless when some barbarous

neighbour, who could not be enough detested, had given him

an invitation to dinner, which he thought himself obliged to

accept.

 

Elizabeth had now but little time for conversation with her

sister; for while he was present Jane had no attention to be-

 

 [473]

 
{{prhprp474.jpg}}

 

stow on any one else: but she found herself considerably

useful to both of them in those hours of separation that must .

sometimes occur. In the absence of Jane, he always attached

himself to Elizabeth for the pleasure of talking of her; and

when Bingley was gone, Jane constantly sought the same

means of relief.

 

'He has made me so happy,' said she, one evening, 'by

telling me that he was totally ignorant of my being in town

last spring! I had not believed it possible.'

 

'I suspected as much,' replied Elizabeth. 'But how did he

account for it?'

 

'It must have been his sisters' doing. They were certainly

no friends to his acquaintance with me, which I cannot won-

der at, since he might have chosen so much more advantage-

ously in many respects. But when they see, as I trust they

will, that their brother is happy with me, they will learn to

be contented, and we shall be on good terms again: though

we can never be what we once were to each other.'

 

'That is the most unforgiving speech,' said Elizabeth, 'that

I ever heard you utter. Good girl! It would vex me, indeed,

to see you again the dupe of Miss Bingley's pretended regard.'

 

'Would you believe it, Lizzy, that when he went to town

last November he really loved me, and nothing but a persua-

sion of my being indifferent would have prevented his com-

ing down again?'

 

'He made a little mistake, to be sure; but it is to the credit

of his modesty.'

 

This naturally introduced a panegyric from Jane on his

diffidence, and the little value he put on his own good

qualities.

 

Elizabeth was pleased to find that he had not betrayed the

interference of his friend; for, though Jane had the most

generous and forgiving heart in the world, she knew it was a

circumstance which must prejudice her against him.

 

'I am certainly the most fortunate creature that ever ex-

isted!' cried Jane. 'Oh, Lizzy, why am I thus singled from

my family, and blessed above them all? If I could but see

you as happy! If there were but such another man for you!'

 

'If you were to give me forty such men I never could be

so happy as you. Till I have your disposition, your goodness,

 

 [474]

 
{{prhprp475.jpg}}

 

I never can have your happiness. No, no, let me shift for

myself; and, perhaps, if I have very good luck, I may meet

with another Mr. Collins in time.'

 

The situation of affairs in the Longbourn family could not

be long a secret. Mrs. Bennet was privileged to whisper it

to Mrs. Philips, and she ventured, without any permission, to

do the same by all her neighbours in Meryton.

 

The Bennets were speedily pronounced to be the luckiest

family in the world; though only a few weeks before, when

Lydia had first run away, they had been generally proved to

be marked out for misfortune.

 

 [475]

 
{{prhprp476.jpg}}

 

 

 

 

Chapter LVI

 

ONE morning, about a week after Bingleys engagement

with Jane had been formed, as he and the females of

the family were sitting together in the dining-room,

their attention was suddenly drawn to the window by the

sound of a carriage; and they perceived a chaise and four

driving up the lawn. It was too early in the morning for

visitors, and besides, the equipage did not answer to that of

any of their neighbours. The horses were post; and neither

the carriage, nor the livery of the servant who preceded it,

was familiar to them. As it was certain, however, that some-

body was coming, Bingley instantly prevailed on Miss Ben-

net to avoid the confinement of such an intrusion, and walk

away with him into the shrubbery. They both set off, and

the conjectures of the remaining three continued, though

with little satisfaction, till the door was thrown open, and

their visitor entered. It was Lady Catherine de Bourgh.

 

They were of course all intending to be surprised: but

their astonishment was beyond their expectation; and on the

part of Mrs. Bennet and Kitty, though she was perfectly un-

known to them, even inferior to what Elizabeth felt.

 

She entered the room with an air more than usually un-

gracious, made no other reply to Elizabeth's salutation than

a slight inclination of the head, and sat down without saying

a word. Elizabeth had mentioned her name to her mother

on her Ladyship's entrance, though no request of introduc-

tion had been made.

 

Mrs. Bennet, all amazement, though flattered by having a

guest of such high importance, received her with the utmost

politeness. After sitting for a moment in silence, she said,

very stiffly, to Elizabeth, --

 

'I hope you are well. Miss Bennet. That lady, I suppose,

is your mother?'

 

Elizabeth replied very concisely that she was.

 

'And that, I suppose, is one of your sisters?'

 

 [476]

 
{{prhprp477.jpg}}

 

 

'Yes, madam,' said Mrs. Bennet, delighted to speak to a

Lady Catherine. 'She is my youngest girl but one. My

youngest of all is lately married, and my eldest is somewhere

about the ground, walking with a young man, who, I believe,

will soon become a part of the family.'

 

'You have a very small park here,' returned Lady Cath-

erine, after a short silence.

 

'It is nothing in comparison of Rosings, my Lady, I dare-

say; but I assure you it is much larger than Sir William

Lucas's.'

 

'This must be a most inconvenient sitting-room for the

evening in summer; the windows are full west.'

 

Mrs. Bennet assured her that they never sat there after

dinner; and then added, --

 

'May I take the liberty of asking your Ladyship whether

you left Mr. and Mrs. Collins well?'

 

'Yes, very well. I saw them the night before last.'

 

Elizabeth now expected that she would produce a letter for

her from Charlotte, as it seemed the only probable motive for

her calling. But no letter appeared, and she was completely

puzzled.

 

Mrs. Bennet, with great civility, begged her Ladyship to

take some refreshment: but Lady Catherine very resolutely,

and not very politely, declined eating anything; and then,

rising up, said to Elizabeth, --

 

'Miss Bennet, there seemed to be a prettyish kind of a

little wilderness on one side of your lawn. I should be glad

to take a turn in it, if you will favour me with your com-

pany.'

 

'Go, my dear,' cried her mother, 'and show her Ladyship

about the different walks. I think she will be pleased with

the hermitage.'

 

Elizabeth obeyed; and, running into her own room

for her parasol, attended her noble guest downstairs. As

they passed through the hall. Lady Catherine opened the

doors into the dining-parlour and drawing-room, and pro-

nouncing them, after a short survey, to be decent-looking

rooms, walked on.

 

Her carriage remained at the door, and Elizabeth saw that

her waiting-woman was in it. They proceeded in silence

 

 [477]

 
{{prhprp478.jpg}}

 

along the gravel walk that led to the copse: Elizabeth was

determined to make no effort for conversation with a woman

who was now more than usually insolent and disagreeable.

 

'How could I ever think her like her nephew?' said she,

as she looked in her face.

 

As soon as they entered the copse, Lady Catherine began

in the following manner: --

 

'You can be at no loss, Miss Bennet, to understand the rea-

son of my journey hither. Your own heart, your own con-

science, must tell you why I come.'

 

Elizabeth looked with unaffected astonishment.

 

'Indeed, you are mistaken, madam; I have not been at all

able to account for the honour of seeing you here.'

 

'Miss Bennet,' replied her Ladyship, in an angry tone, 'you

ought to know that I am not to be trifled with. But however

insincere you may choose to be, you shall not find me so.

My character has ever been celebrated for its sincerity and

frankness; and in a cause of such moment as this, I shall

certainly not depart from it. A report of a most alarming

nature reached me two days ago. I was told, that not only

your sister was on the point of being most advantageously

married, but that you, that Miss Elizabeth Bennet would, in

all likelihood, be soon afterwards united to my nephew, my

own nephew, Mr. Darcy. Though I know it must be a scan-

dalous falsehood, though I would not injure him so much as

to suppose the truth of it possible, I instantly resolved on

setting off for this place, that I might make my sentiments

known to you.'

 

'If you believed it impossible to be true,' said Elizabeth,

colouring with astonishment and disdain, 'I wonder you took

the trouble of coming so far. What could your Ladyship

propose by it?'

 

'At once to insist upon having such a report universally

contradicted.'

 

'Your coming to Longbourn, to see me and my family,' said

Elizabeth coolly, 'will be rather a confirmation of it; if, in-

deed, such a report is in existence.'

 

'If! do you then pretend to be ignorant of it? Has it not

been industriously circulated by yourselves? Do you not

know that such a report is spread abroad?'

 

 [478]

 
{{prhprp479.jpg}}

 

 

'I never heard that it was.'

 

'And can you likewise declare that there is no foundation

for it?'

 

'I do not pretend to possess equal frankness with your

Ladyship. You may ask questions which I shall not choose

to answer.'

 

'This is not to be borne. Miss Bennet. I insist on being

satisfied. Has he, has my nephew, made you an offer of

marriage?'

 

'Your Ladyship has declared it to be impossible.'

 

'It ought to be so; it must be so while he retains the use

of his reason. But your arts and allurements may, in a

moment of infatuation, have made him forget what he owes

to himself and to all his family. You may have drawn

him in.'

 

'If I have, I shall be the last person to confess it.'

 

'Miss Bennet, do you know who I am? I have not been

accustomed to such language as this. I am almost the nearest

relation he has in the world, and am entitled to know all his

dearest concerns.'

 

'But you are not entitled to know mine; nor will such

behaviour as this ever induce me to be explicit.'

 

'Let me be rightly understood. This match, to which you

have the presumption to aspire, can never take place. No,

never. Mr. Darcy is engaged to my daughter. Now, what

have you to say?'

 

'Only this, -- that if he is so, you can have no reason to

suppose he will make an offer to me.'

 

Lady Catherine hesitated for a moment, and then re-

plied, --

 

'The engagement between them is of a peculiar kind. From

their infancy, they have been intended for each other. It

was the favourite wish of his mother, as well as of hers.

While in their cradles we planned the union; and now, at the

moment when the wishes of both sisters would be accom-

plished, in their marriage, to be prevented by a young woman

of inferior birth, of no importance in the world, and wholly

unallied to the family! Do you pay no regard to the wishes of

his friends? To his tacit engagement with Miss de Bourgh?

Are you lost to every feeling of propriety and delicacy? Have

 

 [479]

 
{{prhprp480.jpg}}

 

you not heard me say that from his earliest hours he was

destined for his cousin?'

 

'Yes; and I had heard it before. But what is that to me?

If there is no other objection to my marrying your nephew, I

shall certainly not be kept from it by knowing that his mother

and aunt wished him to marry Miss de Bourgh. You both

did as much as you could in planning the marriage. Its com-

pletion depended on others. If Mr. Darcy is neither by hon-

our nor inclination confined to his cousin, why is not he to

make another choice. And if I am that choice, why may not

I accept him?'

 

'Because honour, decorum, prudence, nay interest, forbid

it. Yes, Miss Bennet, interest; for do not expect to be no-

ticed by his family or friends, if you wilfully act against the

inclinations of all. You will be censured, slighted, and de-

spised by every one connected with him. Your alliance will

be a disgrace; your name will never even be mentioned by

any of us.'

 

These are heavy misfortunes,' replied Elizabeth. 'But

the wife of Mr. Darcy must have such extraordinary sources

of happiness necessarily attached to her situation, that she

could, upon the whole, have no cause to repine.'

 

'Obstinate, headstrong girl! I am ashamed of you! Is

this your gratitude for my attentions to you last spring? Is

nothing due to me on that score? Let us sit down. You

are to understand, Miss Bennet, that I came here with the

determined resolution of carrying my purpose; nor will I be

dissuaded from it. I have not been used to submit to any

person's whims. I have not been in the habit of brooking

disappointment.'

 

'That will make your Ladyship's situation at present more

pitiable; but it will have no effect on me.'

 

'I will not be interrupted! Hear me in silence. My daugh-

ter and my nephew are formed for each other. They are

descended, on the maternal side, from the same noble line;

and, on the father's, from respectable, honourable, and an-

cient, though untitled, families. Their fortune on both sides

is splendid. They are destined for each other by the voice of

every member of their respective houses; and what is to

divide them? -- the upstart pretensions of a young woman

 

 [480]

 
{{prhprp481.jpg}}

 

without family, connections, or fortune! Is this to be en-

dured? But it must not, shall not be! If you were sensible

of your own good, you would not wish to quit the sphere in

which you have been brought up.'

 

'In marrying your nephew, I should not consider myself as

quitting that sphere. He is a gentleman; I a gentleman's

daughter; so far we are equal.'

 

'True. You are a gentleman's daughter. But what was

your mother? Who are your uncles and aunts? Do not

imagine me ignorant of their condition.'

 

'Whatever my connection may be,' said Elizabeth, 'if your

nephew does not object to them, they can be nothing to you.'

 

'Tell me, once for all, are you engaged to him?'

 

Though Elizabeth would not, for the mere purpose of

obliging Lady Catherine, have answered this question, she

could not but say, after a moment's deliberation, --

 

'I am not.'

 

Lady Catherine seemed pleased.

 

'And will you promise me never to enter into such an

engagement?'

 

'I will make no promise of the kind.'

 

'Miss Bennet. I am shocked and astonished. I expected

to find a more reasonable young woman. But do not deceive

yourself into a belief that I will ever recede. I shall not go

away till you have given me the assurance I require.'

 

'And I certainly never shall give it. I am not to be intim-

idated into anything so wholly unreasonable. Your Ladyship

wants Mr. Darcy to marry your daughter; but would my giv-

ing you the wished-for promise make their marriage at all

more probable? Supposing him to be attached to me, would

my refusing to accept his hand make him wish to bestow it on

his cousin? Allow me to say, Lady Catherine, that the argu-

ments with which you have supported this extraordinary ap-

plication have been as frivolous as the application was ill-

judged. You have widely mistaken my character, if you think

I can be worked on by such persuasions as these. How far

your nephew might approve of your interference in his af-

fairs, I cannot tell; but you have certainly no right to concern

yourself in mine. I must beg, therefore, to be importuned

no further on the subject,'

 

 [481]

 
{{prhprp482.jpg}}

 

 

'Not so hasty, if you please. I have by no means done.

To all the objections I have already urged I have still another

to add. I am no stranger to the particulars of your youngest

sister's infamous elopement. I know it all; that the young

man's marrying her was a patched-up business, at the ex-

pense of your father and uncle. And is such a girl to be my

nephew's sister? Is her husband, who is the son of his late

father's steward, to be his brother? Heaven and earth! -- of

what are you thinking? Are the shades of Pemberley to be

thus polluted?'

 

'You can now have nothing further to say,' she resentfully

answered. 'You have insulted me in every possible method.

I must beg to return to the house.'

 

And she rose as she spoke. Lady Catherine rose also, and

they turned back. Her Ladyship was highly incensed.

 

'You have no regard, then, for the honour and credit of

my nephew! Unfeeling, selfish girl! Do you not consider

that a connection with you must disgrace him in the eyes of

everybody?'

 

'Lady Catherine, I have nothing further to say. You know

my sentiments.'

 

'You are then resolved to have him?

 

'I have said no such thing. I am only resolved to act in

that manner which will, in my own opinion, constitute my

happiness, without reference to you, or to any person so

wholly unconnected with me.'

 

'It is well. You refuse, then, to oblige me. You refuse

to obey the claims of duty, honour, and gratitude. You are

determined to ruin him in the opinion of all his friends, and

make him the contempt of the world.'

 

'Neither duty, nor honour, nor gratitude,' replied Elizabeth,

'has any possible claim on me, in the present instance. No

principle of either would be violated by my marriage with Mr.

Darcy. And with regard to the resentment of his family, or

the indignation of the world, if the former were excited by

his marrying me, it would not give me one moment's concern

and the world in general would have too much sense to

join in the scorn.'

 

'And this is your real opinion! This is your final resolve!

Very well. I shall now know how to act. Do not imagine,

 

 [482]

 
{{prhprp483.jpg}}

 

Miss Bennet, that your ambition will ever be gratified. I

came to try you. I hoped to find you reasonable; but depend

upon it I will carry my point.'

 

In this manner Lady Catherine talked on till they were at

the door of the carriage, when, turning hastily round, she

added, --

 

'I take no leave of you, Miss Bennet. I send no compli-

ments to your mother. You deserve no such attention. I

am most seriously displeased.'

 

Elizabeth made no answer; and without attempting to per-

suade her Ladyship to return into the house, walked quietly

into it herself. She heard the carriage drive away as she

proceeded upstairs. Her mother impatiently met her at the

door of her dressing-room, to ask why Lady Catherine would

not come in again and rest herself.

 

'She did not choose it,' said her daughter; 'she would go.'

 

'She is a very fine-looking woman! and her calling here was

prodigiously civil! for she only came, I suppose, to tell us the

Collinses were well. She is on her road somewhere, I dare-

say; and so, passing through Meryton, thought she might as

well call on you. I suppose she had nothing particular to say

to you, Lizzy?'

 

Elizabeth was forced to give in to a little falsehood here;

for to acknowledge the substance of their conversation was

impossible.

 

 [483]

 
{{prhprp484.jpg}}

 

 

 

 

Chapter LVII

 

THE discomposure of spirits which this extraordinary

visit threw Elizabeth into could not be easily over-

come: nor could she for many hours learn to think of

it less than incessantly. Lady Catherine, it appeared, had

actually taken the trouble of this journey from Rosings for

the sole purpose of breaking off her supposed engagement

with Mr. Darcy. It was a rational scheme to be sure! but

from what the report of their engagement could originate.

Elizabeth was at a loss to imagine; till she recollected that

his being the intimate friend of Bingley, and her being the

sister of Jane, was enough, at a time when the expectation

of one wedding made everybody eager for another, to supply

the idea. She had not herself forgotten to feel that the

marriage of her sister must bring them more frequently to-

gether. And her neighbours at Lucas Lodge, therefore (for

through their communication with the Collinses, the report,

she concluded, had reached Lady Catherine), had only set

that down as almost certain and immediate which she had

looked forward to as possible at some future time.

 

In revolving Lady Catherine's expressions, however, she

could not help feeling some uneasiness as to the possible

consequence of her persisting in this interference. From

what she had said of her resolution to prevent the marriage,

it occurred to Elizabeth that she must meditate an application

to her nephew; and how he might take a similar representa-

tion of the evils attached to a connection with her she dared

not pronounce. She knew not the exact degree of his affec-

tion for his aunt, or his dependence on her judgment, but it

was natural to suppose that he thought much higher of her

Ladyship than she could do; and it was certain, that in

enumerating the miseries of a marriage with one whose

immediate connections were so unequal to his own, his aunt

would address him on his weakest side. With his notions

of dignity, he would probably feel that the arguments, which

 

 [484]

 
{{prhprp485.jpg}}

 

to Elizabeth had appeared weak and ridiculous, contained

much good sense and solid reasoning.

 

If he had been wavering before as to what he should do,

which had often seemed likely, the advice and entreaty of

so near a relation might settle every doubt, and determine

him at once to be as happy as dignity unblemished could

make him. In that case he would return no more. Lady

Catherine might see him in her way through town: and his

engagement to Bingley of coming again to Netherfield must

give way.

 

'If, therefore an excuse for not keeping his promise should

come to his friend within a few days,' she added, 'I shall

know how to understand it. I shall then give over every

expectation, every wish, of his constancy. If he is satis-

fied with only regretting me, when he might have obtained

my affections and hand, I shall soon cease to regret him

at all.'

 

The surprise of the rest of the family, on hearing who their

visitor had been, was very great: but they obligingly satisfied

it with the same kind of supposition which had appeased

Mrs. Bennet's curiosity; and Elizabeth was spared from much

teasing on the subject.

 

The next morning, as she was going downstairs, she was

met by her father, who came out of his library with a letter

in his hand.

 

'Lizzy,' said he, 'I was going to look for you: come into

my room.'

 

She followed him thither; and her curiosity to know what

he had to tell her was heightened by the supposition of its

being in some manner connected with the letter he held. It

suddenly struck her that it might be from Lady Catherine,

and she anticipated with dismay all the consequent explana-

tions.

 

She followed her father to the fireplace, and they both sat

down. Pie then said, --

 

'I have received a letter this morning that has astonished

me exceedingly. As it principally concerns yourself, you

ought to know its contents. I did not know before that I

had two daughters on the brink of matrimony. Let me

congratulate you on a very important conquest.'

 

 [485]

 
{{prhprp486.jpg}}

 

 

The colour now rushed into Elizabeth's cheeks in the in-

stantaneous conviction of its being a letter from the nephew,

instead of the aunt; and she was undetermined whether most

to be pleased that he explained himself at all, or offended that

his letter was not rather addressed to herself, when her

father continued. --

 

'You look conscious. Young ladies have great penetration

in such matters as these; but I think I may defy even your

sagacity to discover the name of your admirer. This letter

is from Mr. Collins.'

 

'From Mr. Collins! and what can he have to say?'

 

'Something very much to the purpose, of course. He

begins with congratulations on the approaching nuptials of

my eldest daughter, of which, it seems, he has been told by

some of the good-natured, gossiping Lucases. I shall not

sport with your impatience by reading what he says on that

point. What relates to yourself is as follows: -- 'Having thus

offered you the sincere congratulations of Mrs. Collins and

myself on this happy event, let me now add a short hint on

the subject of another, of which we have been advertised by

the same authority. Your daughter Elizabeth, it is presumed,

will not long bear the name of Bennet, after her eldest sister

has resigned it; and the chosen partner of her fate may be

reasonably looked up to as one of the most illustrious per-

sonages in this land.'

 

'Can you possibly guess, Lizzy, who is meant by this?'

 

'This young gentleman is blessed, in a peculiar way, with

everything the heart of mortal can most desire, -- splendid

property, noble kindred, and extensive patronage. Yet, in

spite of all these temptations, let me warn my cousin Eliza-

beth, and yourself, of what evils you may incur by a pre-

cipitate closure with this gentleman's proposals, which, of

course, you will be inclined to take immediate advantage of.'

 

'Have you any idea, Lizzy, who this gentleman is? But

now it comes out.'

 

'My motive for cautioning you is as follows: -- We have

reason to imagine that his aunt. Lady Catherine de Bourgh,

does not look on the match with a friendly eye.'

 

'Mr. Darcy, you see, is the man? Now, Lizzy, I think I

have surprised you. Could he, or the Lucases, have pitched

 

 [486]

 
{{prhprp487.jpg}}

 

on any man, within the circle of our acquaintance, whose

name would have given the lie more effectually to what they

related? Mr. Darcy, who never looks at any woman but to

see a blemish, and who probably never looked at you in his

life! It is admirable!'

 

Elizabeth tried to join in her father's pleasantry, but could

only force one most reluctant smile. Never had his wit been

directed in a manner so little agreeable to her.

 

'Are you not diverted?'

 

'Oh yes. Pray read on.'

 

'After mentioning the likelihood of this marriage to her

Ladyship last night, she immediately, with her usual con-

descension, expressed what she felt on the occasion: when it

became apparent that on the score of some family objections

on the part of my cousin she would never give her consent to

what she termed so disgraceful a match. I thought it my

duty to give the speediest intelligence of this to my cousin,

that she and her noble admirer may be aware of what they

are about, and not run hastily into a marriage which has not

been properly sanctioned.' Mr. Collins, moreover, adds, 'I

am truly rejoiced that my cousin Lydia's sad business has

been so well hushed up, and am only concerned that their

living together before the marriage took place should be so

generally known. I must not, however, neglect the duties of

my station, or refrain from declaring my amazement, at hear-

ing that you received the young couple into your house as

soon as they were married. It was an encouragement of

vice; and had I been the rector of Longbourn, I should very

strenuously have opposed it. You ought certainly to forgive

them as a Christian, but never to admit them in your sight,

or allow their names to be mentioned in your hearing.' That

is his notion of Christian forgiveness! The rest of his

letter is only about his dear Charlotte's situation, and his

expectation of a young olive-branch. But, Lizzy, you look

as if you did not enjoy it. You are not going to be missish.

I hope and pretend to be affronted at an idle report. For

what do we live, but to make sport for our neighbours, and

laugh at them in our turn?'

 

'Oh,' cried Elizabeth, 'I am exceedingly diverted. But it

is so strange!'

 

 [487]

 
{{prhprp488.jpg}}

 

 

'Yes, that is what makes it amusing. Had they fixed on

any other man it would have been nothing; but his perfect

indifference and your pointed dislike make it so delightfully

absurd! Much as I abominate writing, I would not give up

Dr. Collins's correspondence for any consideration. Nay,

when I read a letter of his, I cannot help giving him the

preference even over Wickham, much as I value the impu-

dence and hypocrisy of my son-in-law. And pray, Lizzy,

what said Lady Catherine about this report? Did she call to

refuse her consent?'

 

To this question his daughter replied only with a laugh;

and as it had been asked without the least suspicion, she was

not distressed by his repeating it. Elizabeth had never been

more at a loss to make her feelings appear what they were

not. It was necessary to laugh when she would rather have

cried. Her father had most cruelly mortified her by what he

said of Mr. Darcy's indifference; and she could do nothing

but wonder at such a want of penetration, or fear that, per-

haps, instead of his seeing too little, she might have fancied

too much.

 

 [488]

 
{{prhprp489.jpg}}

 

 

 

 

Chapter LVIII

 

INSTEAD of receiving any such letter of excuse from

his friend as Elizabeth half expected Mr. Bingley to do,

he was able to bring Darcy with him to Longbourn be-

fore many days had passed after Lady Catherine's visit. The

gentlemen arrived early; and, before Mrs. Bennet had time

to tell him of their having seen his aunt, of which her

daughter sat in momentary dread. Bingley, who wanted to be

alone with Jane, proposed their all walking out. It was

agreed to. Mrs. Bennet was not in the habit of walking,

Mary could never spare time, but the remaining five set off

together. Bingley and Jane, however, soon allowed the

others to outstrip them. They lagged behind, while Eliza-

beth, Kitty, and Darcy were to entertain each other. Very

little was said by either; Kitty was too much afraid of him to

talk; Elizabeth was secretly forming a desperate resolution;

and, perhaps, he might be doing the same.

 

They walked toward the Lucases', because Kitty wished to

call upon Maria; and as Elizabeth saw no occasion for mak-

ing it a general concern, when Kitty left them she went

boldly on with him alone. Now was the moment for her reso-

lution to be executed; and while her courage was high she

immediately said, --

 

'Mr. Darcy, I am a very selfish creature, and for the sake

of giving relief to my own feelings care not how much I may

be wounding yours. I can no longer help thanking you for

your unexampled kindness to my poor sister. Ever since I

have known it I have been most anxious to acknowledge to

you how gratefully I feel it. Were it known to the rest of

my family I should not have merely my own gratitude to

express.'

 

'I am sorry, exceedingly sorry,' replied Darcy, in a tone of

surprise and emotion, 'that you have ever been informed of

what may, in a mistaken light, have given you uneasiness. I

did not think Mrs. Gardiner was so little to be trusted.'

 

 [489]

 
{{prhprp490.jpg}}

 

 

'You must not blame my aunt. Lydia's thoughtlessness

first betrayed to me that you had been concerned in the mat-

ter; and, of course, I could not rest till I knew the particu-

lars. Let me thank you again and again, in the name of all

my family, for that generous compassion which induced you

to take so much trouble, and bear so many mortifications, for

the sake of discovering them.'

 

'If you will thank me,' he replied, 'let it be for yourself

alone. That the wish of giving happiness to you might add

force to the other inducements which led me on I shall not

attempt to deny. But your family owe me nothing. Much as

I respect them, I believe I thought only of you.'

 

Elizabeth was too much embarrassed to say a word. After

a short pause, her companion added, 'You are too generous to

trifle with me. If your feelings are still what they were last

April, tell me so at once. My affections and wishes are

unchanged; but one word from you will silence me on this

subject for ever.'

 

Elizabeth, feeling all the more than common awkwardness

and anxiety for his situation, now forced herself to speak;

and immediately, though not very fluently, gave him to under-

stand that her sentiments had undergone so material a

change since the period to which he alluded as to make her

receive with gratitude and pleasure his present assurances.

The happiness which this reply produced was such as he had

probably never felt before; and he expressed himself on the

occasion as sensibly and as warmly as a man violently in love

can be supposed to do. Had Elizabeth been able to encounter

his eyes, she might have seen how well the expression of

heartfelt delight, diffused over his face, became him;

but though she could not look she could listen; and he

told her of feelings which, in proving of what impor-

tance she was to him, made his affection every moment more

valuable.

 

They walked on without knowing in what direction. There

was too much to be thought, and felt, and said, for attention

to any other objects. She soon learnt that they were indebted

for their present good understanding to the efforts of his

aunt, who did call on him in her return through London, and

there relate her journey to Longbourn, its motive, and the

 

 [490]

 
{{prhprp491.jpg}}

 

substance of her conversation with Elizabeth; dwelling

emphatically on every expression of the latter, which,

in her Ladyship's apprehension, peculiarly denoted her

perverseness and assurance, in the belief that such a re-

lation must assist her endeavours to obtain that promise

from her nephew which she had refused to give. But,

unluckily for her Ladyship, its effect had been exactly

contrariwise.

 

'It taught me to hope,' said he, 'as I had scarcely ever

allowed myself to hope before. I knew enough of your

disposition to be certain that had you been absolutely, irrevo-

cably decided against me, you would have acknowledged it to

Lady Catherine frankly and openly.'

 

Elizabeth coloured and laughed as she replied, 'Yes, you

know enough of my frankness to believe me capable of that.

After abusing you so abominably to your face, I could have

no scruple in abusing you to all your relations.'

 

'What did you say of me that I did not deserve? For

though your accusations were ill founded, formed on mis-

taken premises, my behaviour to you at the time had merited

the severest reproof. It was unpardonable. I cannot think

of it without abhorrence.'

 

'We will not quarrel for the greater share of blame an-

nexed to that evening,' said Elizabeth. 'The conduct of

neither, if strictly examined, will be irreproachable; but since

then we have both, I hope, improved in civility.'

 

'I cannot be so easily reconciled to myself. The recollec-

tion of what I then said, of my conduct, my manners, my

expressions, during the whole of it, is now, and has been

many months, inexpressibly painful to me. Your reproof, so

well applied, I shall never forget: "Had you behaved in a

more gentlemanlike manner." Those were your words. You

know not, you can scarcely conceive, how they have tortured

me; though it was some time, I confess, before I was reason-

able enough to allow their justice.'

 

'I was certainly very far from expecting them to make so

strong an impression. I had not the smallest idea of their

being ever felt in such a way.'

 

'I can easily believe it. You thought me then devoid of

every proper feeling, I am sure you did. The turn of your

 

 [491]

 
{{prhprp492.jpg}}

 

countenance I shall never forget, as you said that I could not

have addressed you in any possible way that would induce

you to accept me.'

 

'Oh, do not repeat what I then said. These recollections

will not do at all. I assure you that I have long been most

heartily ashamed of it.'

 

Darcy mentioned his letter. 'Did it,' said he. -- 'did it

soon make you think better of me? Did you, on reading it,

give any credit to its contents?'

 

She explained what its effects on her had been, and how

gradually all her former prejudices had been removed.

 

'I knew,' said he, 'that what I wrote must give you pain,

but it M'as necessary. I hope you have destroyed the letter.

There was one part, especially the opening of it, which I

should dread your having the power of reading again. I can

remember some expressions which might justly make you

hate me.'

 

'The letter shall certainly be burnt, if you believe it

essential to the preservation of my regard; but though we

have both reason to think my opinions not entirely unalter-

able, they are not, I hope, quite so easily changed as that

implies.'

 

'When I wrote that letter,' replied Darcy, 'I believed my-

self perfectly calm and cool; but I am since convinced that

it was written in a dreadful bitterness of spirit.'

 

'The letter, perhaps, began in bitterness, but it did not

end so. The adieu is charity itself. But think no more of

the letter. The feelings of the person who wrote and the

person who received it are now so widely different from

what they were then, that every unpleasant circumstance

attending it ought to be forgotten. You must learn some

of my philosophy. Think only of the past as its remem-

brance gives you pleasure.'

 

'I cannot give you credit for any philosophy of the kind.

Your retrospections must be so totally void of reproach,

that the contentment arising from them is not of philosophy,

but, what is much better, of ignorance. But with me, it

is not so. Painful recollections will intrude, which cannot,

which ought not to be repelled. I have been a selfish being

all my life, in practice, though not in principle. As a child

 

 [492]

 
{{prhprp493.jpg}}

 

I was taught what was right, but I was not taught to cor-

rect my temper. I was given good principles, but left to

follow them in pride and conceit. Unfortunately an only

son (for many years an only child), I was spoiled by my

parents, who, though good themselves (my father particu-

larly, all that was benevolent and amiable), allowed, en-

couraged, almost taught me to be selfish and overbear-

ing, to care for none beyond my own family circle, to think

meanly of all the rest of the world, to wish at least to think

meanly of their sense and worth compared with my own.

Such I was, from eight to eight-and-twenty; and such I

might still have been but for you, dearest, loveliest Eliza-

beth! What do I owe you! You taught me a lesson

hard indeed at first, but most advantageous. By you

I was properly humbled. I came to you without a doubt

of my reception. You showed me how insufficient were

all my pretensions to please a woman worthy of being

pleased.'

 

'Had you then persuaded yourself that I should?'

 

'Indeed I had. What will you think of my vanity? I

believed you to be wishing, expecting my addresses.'

 

'My manners must have been in fault, but not intentionally,

I assure you. I never meant to deceive you, but my spirits

might often lead me wrong. How you must have hated me

after that evening!'

 

'Hate you! I was angry, perhaps, at first, but my anger

soon began to take a proper direction.'

 

'I am almost afraid of asking what you thought of

me when we met at Pemberley. You blamed me for

coming?'

 

'No, indeed, I felt nothing but surprise.'

 

'Your surprise could not be greater than mine in being

noticed by you. My conscience told me that I deserved no

extraordinary politeness, and I confess that I did not expect

to receive more than my due.'

 

'My object then,' replied Darcy, 'was to show you, by

every civility in my power, that I was not so mean as to

resent the past; and I hoped to obtain your forgiveness, to

lessen you ill-opinion, by letting you see that your reproofs

had been attended to. How soon any other wishes intro-

 

 [493]

 
{{prhprp494.jpg}}

 

duced themselves I can hardly tell, but I believe in about

half an hour after I had seen you.'

 

He then told her of Georgiana's delight in her acquaint-

ance, and of her disappointment at its sudden interruption;

which naturally leading to the cause of that interruption,

she soon learnt that his resolution of following her from

Derbyshire in quest of her sister had been formed before,

he quitted the inn, and that his gravity and thoughtfulness

there had arisen from no other struggles than what such a

purpose must comprehend.

 

She expressed her gratitude again, but it was too painful

a subject for each to be dwelt on farther.

 

After walking several miles in a leisurely manner, and too

busy to know anything about it, they found at last, on ex-

amining their watches, that it was time to be at home.

 

'What could have become of Mr. Bingley and Jane!' was

a wonder which introduced the discussion of their affairs.

Darcy was delighted with their engagement; his friend had

given him the earliest information of it.

 

'I must ask whether you were surprised?' said Elizabeth.

 

'Not at all. When I went away, I felt that it would soon

happen.'

 

'That is to say, you had given your permission. I

guessed as much.' And though he exclaimed at the term,

she found that it had been pretty much the case.

 

'On the evening before my going to London,' said he,

'I made a confession to him, which I believe I ought to

have made long ago. I told him of all that had occurred

to make my former interference in his affairs absurd and

impertinent. Her surprise was great. He had never had

the slightest suspicion. I told him, moreover, that I believed

myself mistaken in supposing, as I had done, that your

sister was indifferent to him; and as I could easily perceive

that his attachment to her was unabated, I felt no doubt of

their happiness together.'

 

Elizabeth could not help smiling at his easy manner of

directing his friend.

 

'Did you speak from your own observation,' said she,

'when you told him that my sister loved him, or merely

from my information last spring?'

 

 [494]

 
{{prhprp495.jpg}}

 

 

'From the former. I had narrowly observed her, during

the two visits which I had lately made her here; and I was

convinced of her affection.' '

 

'And your assurance of it, I suppose, carried immediate

conviction to him.'

 

'It did. Bingley is most unaffectedly modest. His diffi-

dence had prevented his depending on his own judgment

in so anxious a case, but his reliance on mine made every-

thing easy. I was obliged to confess one thing, which for a

time, and not unjustly, offended him. I could not allow

myself to conceal that your sister had been in town three

months last winter, that I had known it, and purposely kept

it from him. He was angry. But his anger, I am per-

suaded, lasted no longer than he remained in any doubt

of your sister's sentiments. He has heartily forgiven me

now.'

 

Elizabeth longed to observe that Mr. Bingley had been

a most delightful friend; so easily guided that his worth was

invaluable; but she checked herself. She remembered that

he had yet to learn to be laughed at, and it was rather too

early to begin. In anticipating the happiness of Bingley,

which of course was to be inferior only to his own, he con-

tinued the conversation till they reached the house. In the

hall they parted.

 

 [495]

 
{{prhprp496.jpg}}

 

 

 

 

Chapter LIX

 

'MY dear Lizzy, where can yon have been walking

to?' was a question which Elizabeth received from

Jane as soon as she entered the room, and from

all the others when they sat down to table. She had only

to say in reply, that they had wandered about till she was

beyond her own knowledge. She coloured as she spoke; but

neither that, nor anything else, awakened a suspicion of

the truth.

 

The evening passed quietly, unmarked by anything ex-

traordinary. The acknowledged lovers talked and laughed;

the unacknowledged were silent. Darcy was not of a dis-

position in which happiness overflows in mirth: and Eliz-

abeth, agitated and confused, rather knew that she was

happy than felt herself to be so; for, besides the immediate

embarrassment, there were other evils before her. She

anticipated what would be felt in the family when her situ-

ation became known: she was aware that no one liked him

but Jane; and even feared that with the others it was a

dislike which not all his fortune and consequence might do

away.

 

At night she opened her heart to Jane. Though suspicion

was very far from Miss Bennet's general habits, she was

absolutely incredulous here.

 

'You are joking, Lizzy. This cannot be! Engaged to

Mr. Darcy! No, no, you shall not deceive me: I know it

to be impossible.'

 

'This is a wretched beginning, indeed! My sole depend-

ence was on you; and I am sure nobody else will believe me,

if you do not. Yet, indeed, I am in earnest. I speak noth-

ing but the truth. He still loves me, and we are engaged.'

 

Jane looked at her doubtingly. 'Oh, Lizzy, it cannot be.

I know how much you dislike him.'

 

'You know nothing of the matter. That is all to be

forgot. Perhaps I did not always love him so well as I do

 

 [496]

 
{{prhprp497.jpg}}

 

now; but in such cases as these a good memory is unpardon-

able. This is the last time I shall ever remember it myself.'

 

Miss Bennet still looked all amazement. Elizabeth again,

and more seriously, assured her of its truth.

 

'Good heaven! can it be really so? Yet now I must

believe you,' cried Jane. 'My dear, dear Lizzy, I would, I

do congratulate you; but are you certain -- forgive the ques-

tion -- are you quite certain that you can be happy with

him?'

 

'There can be no doubt of that. It is settled between us

already that we are to be the happiest couple in the world.

But are you pleased, Jane? Shall you like to have such a

brother?'

 

'Very, very much. Nothing could give either Bingley or

myself more delight. But we considered it, we talked of

it as impossible. And do you really love him quite well

enough? Oh, Lizzy, do anything rather than marry without

affection. Are you quite sure that you feel what you ought

to do?'

 

'Oh, yes! You will only think I feel more than I ought

to do when I tell you all.'

 

'What do you mean?'

 

'Why, I must confess that I love him better than I do

Bingley. I am afraid you will be angry.'

 

'My dearest sister, now be, be serious. I want to talk very

seriously. Let me know everything that I am to know with-

out delay. Will you tell me how long you have loved him?'

 

'It has been coming on so gradually, that I hardly know

when it began; but I believe I must date it from my first

seeing his beautiful grounds at Pemberley.'

 

Another entreaty that she would be serious, however,

produced the desired effect; and she soon satisfied Jane by

her solemn assurances of attachment. When convinced on

that article, Miss Bennet had nothing further to wish.

 

'Now I am quite happy,' said she, 'for you will be as

happy as myself. I always had a value for him. Were it

for nothing but his love of you, I must always have esteemed

him; but now, as Bingley's friend and your husband, there

can be only Bingley and yourself more dear to me. But,

Lizzy, you have been very sly, very reserved with me. How

 

 [497]

 
{{prhprp498.jpg}}

 

little did you tell me of what passed at Pemberley and

Lambton! I owe all that I know of it to another, not to

you.'

 

Elizabeth told her the motives of her secrecy. She had

been unwilling to mention Bingley; and the unsettled state

of her own feelings had made her equally avoid the name

of his friend: but now she would no longer conceal from

her his share in Lydia's marriage. All was acknowledged,

and half the night spent in conversation.

 

'Good gracious!' cried Mrs. Bennet, as she stood at a

window the next morning, 'if that disagreeable Mr. Darcy is

not coming here again with our dear Bingley! What can

he mean by being so tiresome as to be always coming here?

I had no notion but he would go a shooting, or something

or other, and not disturb us with his company. What shall

we do with him? Lizzy, you must walk out with him again,

that he may not be in Bingley's way.'

 

Elizabeth could hardly help laughing at so convenient a

proposal; yet was really vexed that her mother should be

always giving him such an epithet.

 

As soon as they entered. Bingley looked at her so ex-

pressively, and shook hands with such warmth, as left no

doubt of his good information; and he soon afterwards said

aloud, 'Mrs. Bennet, have you no more lanes hereabouts in

which Lizzy may lose her way again to-day?'

 

'I advise Mr. Darcy, and Lizzy, and Kitty,' said Mrs.

Bennet, 'to walk to Oakham Mount this morning. It is a

nice long walk, and Mr. Darcy has never seen the view.'

 

'It may do very well for the others,' replied Mr. Bingley;

'but I am sure it will be too much for Kitty. Won't it

Kitty?'

 

Kitty owned that she had rather stay at home. Darcy

professed a great curiosity to see the view from the Mount,

and Elizabeth silently consented. As she went upstairs to

get ready, Mrs. Bennet followed her, saying, --

 

'I am quite sorry, Lizzy, that you should be forced to have

that disagreeable man all to yourself; but I hope you will

not mind it. It is all for Jane's sake, you know; and there

is no occasion for talking to him except just now and then,

so do not put yourself to inconvenience.'

 

 [498]

 
{{prhprp499.jpg}}

 

 

During their walk, it was resolved that Mr. Bennet's con-

sent should be asked in the course of the evening: Elizabeth

reserved to herself the application for her mother's. She

could not determine how her mother would take it; some-

times doubting whether all his wealth and grandeur would

be enough to overcome her abhorrence of the man; but

whether she were violently set against the match, or violently

delighted with it, it was certain that her manner would

be equally ill adapted to do credit to her sense; and she

could no more bear that Mr. Darcy should hear the first

raptures of her joy, than the first vehemence of her dis-

approbation.

 

In the evening, soon after Mr. Bennet withdrew to the

library, she saw Mr. Darcy rise also and follow him, and her

agitation on seeing it was extreme. She did not fear her

father's opposition, but he was going to be made unhappy, and

that it should be through her means; that she, his favourite

child, should be distressing him by her choice, should be

filling him with fears and regrets in disposing of her, was

a wretched reflection, and she sat in misery till Mr. Darcy

appeared again, when, looking at him, she was a little re-

lieved by his smile. In a few minutes he approached the

table where she was sitting with Kitty; and, while pre-

tending to admire her work, said in a whisper, 'Go to your

father; he wants you in the library.' She was gone directly.

 

Her father was walking about the room, looking grave

and anxious. 'Lizzy,' said he, 'what are you doing? Are

you out of your senses to be accepting this man? Have

not you always hated him?'

 

How earnestly did she then wish that her former opin-

ions had been more reasonable, her expressions more mod-

erate! It would have spared her from explanations and

professions which it was exceedingly awkward to give; but

they were now necessary, and she assured him, with some

confusion, of her attachment to Mr. Darcy.

 

'Or, in other words, you are determined to have him. He

is rich, to be sure, and you may have more fine clothes and

fine carriages than Jane. But will they make you happy?'

 

'Have you any other object,' said Elizabeth, 'than your

belief of my indifference?'

 

 [499]

 
{{prhprp500.jpg}}

 

 

'None at all. We all know him to be a proud, unpleasant

sort of man; but this would be nothing if you really liked

him;

 

'I do, I do like him,' she replied, with tears in her eyes;

'I love him. Indeed he has no improper pride. He is per-

fectly amiable. You do not know what he really is; then

pray do not pain me by speaking of him in such terms.'

 

'Lizzy,' said her father, 'I have given him my consent.

He is the kind of man, indeed, to whom I should never dare

refuse anything which he condescended to ask. I now give

it to you, if you are resolved on having him. But let me

advise you to think better of it. I know your disposition,

Lizzy. I know that you could be neither happy nor respect-

able, unless you truly esteemed your husband; unless you

looked up to him as a superior. Your lively talents would

place you in the greatest danger in an unequal marriage.

You could scarcely escape discredit and misery. My child,

let me not have the grief of seeing yon unable to respect

your partner in life. You know not what you are about.'

 

Elizabeth, still more affected, was earnest and solemn in

her reply; and, at length, by repeated assurances that Mr.

Darcy was really the object of her choice, by explaining the

gradual change which her estimation of him had undergone,

relating her absolute certainty that his affection was not the

work of a day, but had stood the test of many months' sus-

pense, and enumerating with energy all his good qualities,

she did conquer her father's incredulity, and reconcile him

to the match.

 

'Well, my dear,' said he, when she ceased speaking, 'I

have no more to say. If this be the case, he deserves you.

I could not have parted with you, my Lizzy, to any one less

worthy.'

 

To complete the favourable impression, she then told him

what Mr. Darcy had voluntarily done for Lydia. He heard

her with astonishment.

 

'This is an evening of wonders, indeed! And so, Darcy

did everything; made up the match, gave the money, paid

the fellow's debts, and got him his commission! So much

the better. It will save me a world of trouble and economy.

Had it been your uncle's doing, I must and would have paid

 

 [500]

 
{{prhprp501.jpg}}

 

him; but these violent young lovers carry everything their

own way. I shall offer to pay him to-morrow, he will rant

and storm about his love for you, and there will be an end

of the matter.'

 

He then recollected her embarrassment a few days before

on his reading Mr. Collins's letter; and after laughing at her

some time, allowed her at last to go, saying, as she quitted

the room, 'If any young men come for Mary or Kitty, send

them in, for I am quite at leisure.'

 

Elizabeth's mind was now relieved from a very heavy

weight; and, after half an hour's quiet reflection in her own

room, she was able to join the others with tolerable com-

posure. Everything was too recent for gaiety, but the eve-

ning passed tranquilly away; there was no longer anything

material to be dreaded, and the comfort of ease and famili-

arity would come in time.

 

When her mother went up to her dressing-room at night.

she followed her, and made the important communication.

Its effect was most extraordinary; for, on first hearing it,

Mrs. Bennet sat quite still, and unable to utter a syllable.

Nor was it under many, many minutes, that she could com-

prehend what she heard, though not in general backward

to credit what was for the advantage of her family, or that

came in the shape of a lover to any of them. She began

at length to recover, to fidget about in her chair, get up,

sit down again, wonder, and bless herself.

 

'Good gracious! Lord bless me! only think! dear me!

Mr. Darcy! Who would have thought it? And is it really

true? Oh, my sweetest Lizzy! how rich and how great you

will be! What pin-money, what jewels, what carriages you

will have! Jane's is nothing to it -- nothing at all. I am so

pleased -- so happy. Such a charming man! so handsome!

so tall! Oh, my dear Lizzy! pray apologise for my having

disliked him so much before. I hope he will overlook it.

Dear, dear Lizzy. A house in town! Everything that is

charming! Three daughters married' Ten thousand a

year! Oh, Lord! what will become of me? I shall go dis-

tracted.'

 

This was enough to prove that her approbation need not

be doubted; and Elizabeth, rejoicing that such an effusion

 

 [501]

 
{{prhprp502.jpg}}

 

was heard only by herself, soon went away. But before

she had been three minutes in her room, her mother fol-

lowed her.

 

'My dearest child,' she cried. 'I can think of nothing else.

Ten thousand a year, and very likely more! Tis as good

as a lord! And a special license -- you must and shall be

married by a special license. But, my dearest love, tell me

what dish Mr. Darcy is particularly fond of, that I may

have it to-morrow.'

 

This was a sad omen of what her mother's behaviour to

the gentleman himself might be; and Elizabeth found that,

though in the certain possession of his warmest affection,

and secure of her relations' consent, there was still some-

thing to be wished for. But the morrow passed off much

better than she expected; for Mrs. Bennet luckily stood in

such awe of her intended son-in-law, that she ventured not

to speak to him, unless it was in her power to offer him

any attention, or mark her deference for his opinion.

 

Elizabeth had the satisfaction of seeing her father taking

pains to get acquainted with him; and Mr. Bennet soon

assured her that he was rising every hour in his esteem.

 

'I admire all my three sons-in-law highly,' said he. 'Wick-

ham, perhaps, is my favourite; but I think I shall like your

husband quite as well as Jane's.'

 

 [502]

 
{{prhprp503.jpg}}

 

 

 

 

Chapter LX

 

ELIZABETH'S spirits soon rising to playfulness again,

she wanted Mr. Darcy to account for his having ever

fallen in love with her. 'How could you begin?' said

she. I can comprehend your going on charmingly, when

you had once made a beginning, but what could set you off

in the first place?'

 

'I cannot fix on the hour, or the spot, or the look, or the

words, which laid the foundation. It is too long ago. I was

in the middle before I knew that I had begun.'

 

'My beauty you had early withstood, and as for my man-

ners -- my behaviour to you was at least always bordering on

the uncivil, and I never spoke to you without rather wishing

to give you pain than not. Now, be sincere; did you ad-

mire me for my impertinence?

 

'For the liveliness of your mind I did.'

 

'You may as well call it impertinence at once. It was very

little less. The fact is, that you were sick of civility, of

deference, of officious attention. You were disgusted with

the women who were always speaking, and looking, and

thinking for your approbation alone. I roused and interested

you, because I was so unlike them. Had you not been

really amiable you would have hated me for it: but in spite

of the pains you took to disguise yourself, your feelings

were always noble and just; and in your heart you thoroughly

despised the persons who so assiduously courted you. There

-- I have saved you the trouble of accounting for it; and

really, all things considered, I begin to think it perfectly

reasonable. To be sure you know no actual good of me --

but nobody thinks of that when they fall in love.'

 

'Was there no good in your affectionate behaviour to

Jane, while she was ill at Netherfield?'

 

'Dearest Jane! who could have done less for her? But

make a virtue of it by all means. My good qualities are

under your protection, and you are to exaggerate them as

 

 [503]

 
{{prhprp504.jpg}}

 

much as possible; and, in return, it belongs to me to find

occasions for teasing and quarrelling with you as often as

may be; and I shall begin directly, by asking you what

made you so unwilling to come to the point at last? What

made you so shy of me, when you first called, and after-

wards dined here? Why, especially, when you called did

you look as if you did not care about me?'

 

'Because you were grave and silent, and gave me no en-

couragement.'

 

'But I was embarrassed.'

 

'And so was I.'

 

'You might have talked to me more when you came to

dinner.'

 

'A man who had felt less might,'

 

'How unlucky that you should have a reasonable answer

to give, and that I should be so reasonable as to admit it!

But I wonder how long you would have gone on, if you

had been left to yourself. I wonder when you would have

spoken if I had not asked you! My resolution of thanking

you for your kindness to Lydia had certainly great effect.

Too much I am afraid; for what becomes of the moral,

if our comfort springs from a breach of promise, for I

ought not to have mentioned the subject? This will never

do.'

 

'You need not distress yourself. The moral will be

perfectly fair. Lady Catherine's unjustifiable endeavours to

separate us were the means of removing all my doubts. I

am not indebted for my present happiness to your eager

desire of expressing your gratitude. I was not in a humour

to wait for an opening of yours. My aunt's intelligence had

given me hope, and I was determined at once to know every-

thing.'

 

'Lady Catherine has been of infinite use, which ought to

make her happy, for she loves to be of use. But tell me.

what did you come down to Netherfield for? Was it merely

to ride to Longbourn and be embarrassed? or had you in-

tended any more serious consequences?'

 

'My real purpose was to see you, and to judge, if I could,

whether I might ever hope to make you love me. My

avowed one, or what I avowed to myself, was to see whether

 

 [504]

 
{{prhprp505.jpg}}

 

your sister was still partial to Bingley, and if she were, to

make the confession to him which I have since made.'

 

'Shall you ever have courage to announce to Lady Cathe-

rine what is to befall her?'

 

'I am more likely to want time than courage, Elizabeth.

But it ought to be done; and if you will give me a sheet

of paper it shall be done directly.'

 

'And if I had not a letter to write myself, I might sit by

you, and admire the evenness of your writing, as another

young lady once did. But I have an aunt, too, who must not

be longer neglected.'

 

From an unwillingness to confess how much her intimacy

with Mr. Darcy had been over-rated, Elizabeth had never

yet answered Mrs. Gardiner's long letter; but now, having

that to communicate which she knew would be most wel-

come, she was almost ashamed to find that her uncle and

aunt had already lost three days of happiness, and imme-

diately wrote as follows: --

 

'I would have thanked you before, my dear aunt, as I ought to have

done, for your long, kind, satisfactory detail of particulars; but, to

say the truth, I was too cross to write. You supposed more than

really existed. But now suppose as much as you choose: give a

loose to your fancy, indulge your imagination in every possible flight

which the subject will afford, and unless you believe me actually

married, you cannot greatly err. You must write again very soon,

and praise him a great deal more than you did in your last. I thank

you again and again for not going to the Lakes. How could I be so

silly as to wish it? Your idea of the ponies is delightful. We will

go round the park every day. I am the happiest creature in the

world. Perhaps other people have said so before, but no one with

such justice. I am happier even than Jane; she only smiles, I laugh.

Mr. Darcy sends you all the love in the world that can he spared

from me. You are all to come to Pemberley at Christmas. Yours, etc.

 

Mr. Darcy's letter to Lady Catherine was in a different

style, and still different from either was what Mr. Bennet

sent to Mr. Collins, in return for his last.

 

'Dear Sir -- I must trouble you once more for congratulations.

Elizabeth will soon be the wife of Mr. Darcy. Console Lady Cath-

erine as well as you can. But, if I were you, I would stand by the

nephew. He has more to give. -- Yours sincerely,' etc.

 

Miss Bingley's congratulations to her brother on his ap-

proaching marriage were all that was affectionate and in-

 

 [505]

 
{{prhprp506.jpg}}

 

sincere. She wrote even to Jane on the occasion, to express

her delight, and repeat all her former professions of regard.

Jane was not deceived, but she was affected; and though

feeling no reliance on her, could not help writing her a

much kinder answer than she knew was deserved.

 

The joy which Miss Darcy expressed on receiving similar

information was as sincere as her brother's in sending it.

Four sides of paper were insufficient to contain all her

delight, and all her earnest desire of being loved by her

sister.

 

Before any answer could arrive from Mr, Collins, or any

congratulations to Elizabeth from his wife, the Longbourn

family heard that the Collinses were come themselves to

Lucas Lodge. The reason of this sudden removal was soon

evident. Lady Catherine had been rendered so exceedingly

angry by the contents of her nephews letter, that Char-

lotte, really rejoicing in the match, was anxious to get

away till the storm was blown over. At such a moment the

arrival of her friend was a sincere pleasure to Elizabeth,

though in the course of their meetings she must sometimes

think the pleasure dearly bought, when she saw Mr. Darcy

exposed to all the parading and obsequious civility of her

husband. He bore it, however, with admirable calmness. He

could even listen to Sir William Lucas, when he compli-

mented him on carrying away the brightest jewel of the

country, and expressed his hopes of their all meeting fre-

quently at St. James's, with very decent composure. If he

did shrug his shoulders, it was not till Sir William was out

of sight.

 

Mrs. Philips's vulgarity was another, and, perhaps, a

greater tax on his forbearance; and though Mrs. Philips, as

well as her sister, stood in too much awe of him to speak

with the familiarity which Bingley's good humour en-

couraged, yet, whenever she did speak, she must be vulgar.

Nor was her respect for him, though it made her more quiet,

at all likely to make her more elegant. Elizabeth did all she

could to shield him from the frequent notice of either, and

was ever anxious to keep him to herself, and to those of her

family with whom he might converse without mortification;

and though the uncomfortable feelings arising from all this

 

 [506]

 
{{prhprp507.jpg}}

 

took from the season of courtship much of its pleasure, it

added to the hope of the future; and she looked forward

with delight to the time when they should be removed from

society so little pleasing to either, to all the comfort and

elegance of their family party at Pemberley.

 

 [507]

 
{{prhprp508.jpg}}

 

 

 

 

Chapter LXI

 

HAPPY for all her maternal feelings was the day on

which Mrs. Bennet got rid of her two most deserv-

ing daughters. With what delighted pride she after-

wards visited Mrs. Bingley, and talked of Mrs. Darcy, may

be guessed. I wish I could say, for the sake of her family,

that the accomplishment of her earnest desire in the es-

tablishment of so many of her children produced so happy

an effect as to make her a sensible amiable, well-informed

woman for the rest of her life: though, perhaps, it was lucky

for her husband, who might not have relished domestic

felicity in so unusual a form, that she still was occasionally

nervous and invariably silly.

 

Mr. Bennet missed his second daughter exceedingly; his

affection for her drew him oftener from home than any-

thing else could do. He delighted in going to Pemberley,

especially when he was least expected.

 

Mr. Bingley and Jane remained at Netherfield only a

twelvemonth. So near a vicinity to her mother and Meryton

relations was not desirable even to his easy temper, or her

affectionate heart. The darling wish of his sisters was then

gratified: he bought an estate in a neighbouring county to

Derbyshire: and Jane and Elizabeth, in addition to every

other source of happiness, were within thirty miles of each

other.

 

Kitty, to her very material advantage, spent the chief of

her time with her two elder sisters. In society so superior to

what she had generally known, her improvement was great.

She was not of so ungovernable a temper as Lydia; and,

removed from the influence of Lydia's example, she became,

by proper attention and management, less irritable, less

ignorant, and less insipid. From the further disadvantage of

Lydia's society she was of course carefully kept; and though

Mrs. Wickham frequently invited her to come and stay with

her, with the promise of balls and young men, her father

would never consent to her going.

 

 [508]

 
{{prhprp509.jpg}}

 

 

Mary was the only daughter who remained at home; and

she was necessarily drawn from the pursuit of accomplish-

ments by Mrs. Bennet's being quite unable to sit alone.

Mary was obliged to mix more with the world, but she could

still moralise over every morning visit; and as she was no

longer mortified by comparisons between her sisters' beauty

and her own, it was suspected by her father that she sub-

mitted to the change without much reluctance.

 

As for Wickham and Lydia, their characters suffered no

revolution from the marriage of her sisters. He bore with

philosophy the conviction that Elizabeth must now become

acquainted with whatever of his ingratitude and falsehood

had before been unknown to her; and, in spite of everything

was not wholly without hope that Darcy might yet be pre-

vailed on to make his fortune. The congratulatory letter

which Elizabeth received from Lydia on her marriage ex-

plained to her that, by his wife at least, if not by himself,

such a hope was cherished. The letter was to this effect: --

 

'My DEAR Lizzy -- I wish you joy. If you love Mr. Darcy half so

well as I do my dear Wickham, you must be very happy. It is a

great comfort to have you so rich; and when you have nothing else

to do, I hope you will think of us. I am sure Wickham would like

a place at court very much; and I do not think we shall have quite

money enough to live upon without some help. Any place would

do of about three or four hundred a year; but, however, do not speak

to Mr. Darcy about it, if you had rather not. -- Yours,' etc.

 

As it happened that Elizabeth had much rather not, she

endeavoured in her answer to put an end to every entreaty

and expectation of the kind. Such relief, however, as it was

in her power to afford, by the practice of what might be

called economy in her own private expenses, she frequently

sent them. It had always been evident to her that such an

income as theirs, under the direction of two persons so ex-

travagant in their wants, and heedless of the future, must

he very insufficient to their support; and whenever they

changed their quarters, either Jane or herself was sure of

being applied lo for some little assistance towards discharg-

ing their hills. Their manner of living, even when the

restoration of peace dismissed them to a home, was un-

settled in the extreme. They were always moving from

 

 [509]

 
{{prhprp510.jpg}}

 

place to place in quest of a cheap situation, and always

spending more than they ought. His affection for her soon

sank into indifference: hers lasted a little longer; and, in

spite of her youth and her manners, she retained all the

claims to reputation which her marriage had given her.

 

Though Darcy could never receive him at Pemberley, yet,

for Elizabeth's sake, he assisted him further in his profes-

sion. Lydia was occasionally a visitor there, when her hus-

band was gone to enjoy himself in London or Bath; and

with the Bingleys they both of them frequently stayed so

long that even Bingley's good humour was overcome, and

he proceeded so far as to talk of giving them a hint to be

gone.

 

Miss Bingley was very deeply mortified by Darcy's mar-

riage; but as she thought it advisable to retain the right of

visiting at Pemberley, she dropped all her resentment; was

fonder than ever of Georgiana, almost as attentive to Darcy

as heretofore, and paid off every arrear of civility to Eliza-

beth.

 

Pemberley was now Georgiana's home; and the attach-

ment of the sisters was exactly what Darcy had hoped to

see. They were able to love each other, even as well as

they intended. Georgiana had the highest opinion in the

world of Elizabeth; though at first she often listened with

an astonishment bordering on alarm at her lively, sportive

manner of talking to her brother. Him who had always in-

spired in herself a respect which almost overcame her affec-

tion she now saw the object of open pleasantry. Her mind

received knowledge, which had never before fallen in her

way. By Elizabeth's instructions she began to comprehend

that a woman may take liberties with her husband, which

a brother will not always allow in a sister more than ten

years younger than himself.

 

Lady Catherine was extremely indignant on the marriage

of her nephew; and as she gave way to all the genuine

frankness of her character, in her reply to the letter which

announced its arrangement, she sent him language so very

abusive, especially of Elizabeth, that for some time all inter-

course was at an end. But at length, by Elizabeth's per-

suasion, he was prevailed on to overlook the offence, and

 

 [510]

 
{{prhprp511.jpg}}

 

seek a reconciliation; and, after a little further resistance

on the part of his aunt, her resentment gave way, either to

her affection for him, or her curiosity to see how his wife

conducted herself; and she condescended to wait on them

at Pemberley, in spite of that pollution which its woods had

received, not merely from the presence of such a mistress,

but visits of her uncle and aunt from the city.

 

With the Gardiners they were always on the most inti-

mate terms. Darcy, as well as Elizabeth, really loved them;

and they were both ever sensible of the warmest gratitude

towards the persons who, by bringing her into Derbyshire,

had been the means of uniting them.

 

 [511]

 
{{prhprp512.jpg}}

 

 

 

 

 

the end

 

 [512]